Selected quad for the lemma: authority_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
authority_n king_n power_n successor_n 2,893 5 9.1968 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A04779 The right and iurisdiction of the prelate, and the prince. Or, A treatise of ecclesiasticall, and regall authoritie. Compyled by I.E. student in diuinitie for the ful instruction and appeaceme[n]t of the consciences of English Catholikes, co[n]cerning the late oath of pretended allegeance. Togeather with a cleare & ample declaratio[n], of euery clause thereof, newlie reuewed and augmented by the authoure Kellison, Matthew. 1621 (1621) STC 14911; ESTC S107942 213,012 425

There are 52 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o synagogue_n yet_o can_v it_o not_o thence_o be_v infer_v that_o prince_n be_v to_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o first_o the_o synagogue_n be_v more_o terrene_a and_o less_o perfect_a than_o the_o church_n and_o so_o as_o their_o sacrifice_n and_o priest_n be_v terrene_a in_o respect_n of_o we_o so_o god_n may_v have_v give_v they_o terrene_a prince_n for_o their_o chief_a ecclesiastical_a superior_n which_o manner_n of_o government_n be_v not_o to_o be_v make_v a_o pattern_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v a_o more_o perfect_a common_a wealth_n more_o spiritual_a govern_v by_o more_o spiritual_a pastor_n enrich_v with_o a_o more_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n secondlie_o if_o prince_n than_o be_v ruler_n of_o the_o synagogue_n it_o be_v by_o god_n special_a and_o indiciall_a law_n and_o see_v the_o judicial_a and_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v abrogate_a they_o can_v not_o bind_v christian_n or_o if_o bilson_n will_v needs_o have_v it_o that_o christian_a prince_n must_v now_o govern_v the_o church_n because_o they_o then_o rule_v the_o synagogue_n one_o may_v infer_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o england_n must_v be_v circumcise_v and_o must_v offer_v calde_v because_o then_o the_o jewish_a priest_n do_v so_o wherefore_o that_o law_n as_o ceremonial_a and_o judicial_a be_v abrogate_a we_o must_v look_v to_o the_o new_a law_n in_o which_o not_o withstand_v there_o be_v no_o one_o text_n or_o example_n that_o give_v prince_n the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n thirdlie_o i_o answer_v that_o none_o of_o all_o the_o king_n allege_v by_o d._n bilson_n and_o d._n andrew_n do_v govern_v the_o synagogue_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n but_o do_v only_o assist_v the_o priest_n that_o govern_v and_o punish_v malefactor_n and_o transgressor_n of_o the_o law_n suarez_n suarez_n according_a to_o the_o prescript_n of_o the_o law_n interpret_v by_o the_o priest_n as_o suarez_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o our_o sovereign_a have_v learned_o declare_v 6._o the_o second_o argument_n against_o prince_n spiritual_a supremacy_n shall_v be_v this_o if_o a_o prince_n have_v authority_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o his_o kingdom_n either_o he_o have_v it_o preciselie_o because_o he_o be_v a_o king_n or_o because_o he_o be_v a_o christian_a king_n but_o by_o neither_o of_o these_o way_n he_o have_v it_o ergo_fw-la by_o no_o way_n he_o have_v it_o not_o because_o he_o be_v a_o king_n for_o kingly_a power_n only_o meddle_v with_o temporal_a and_o humane_a matter_n and_o therefore_o king_n be_v call_v humanae_fw-la creaturae_fw-la 2._o 1._o petri._n 2._o humane_a creature_n and_o they_o have_v their_o authority_n from_o the_o people_n in_o manner_n afore_o say_v which_o people_n can_v give_v no_o ecclesiastical_a power_n that_o be_v spiritual_a and_o supernatural_a yea_o if_o king_n as_o king_n have_v this_o authority_n than_o the_o king_n which_o reign_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n though_o infidel_n shall_v have_v be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n although_o they_o be_v no_o member_n at_o all_o and_o consequent_o nero_n shall_v have_v be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v commit_v to_o a_o raven_a wolf_n which_o though_o it_o be_v most_o absurd_a to_o imagine_v yet_o tomsom_n as_o becanus_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v the_o english_a jar_n recite_v be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o avouch_v it_o say_v omnes_fw-la principes_fw-la etiam_fw-la pagani_n obiectiuè_fw-fr habent_fw-la supremam_fw-la potestatem_fw-la in_o omnes_fw-la omnino_fw-la personas_fw-la suorum_fw-la subditorum_fw-la generatim_fw-la in_o res_fw-la ipsas_fw-la sive_fw-la civiles_fw-la sunt_fw-la sive_fw-la sacrae_fw-la all_o prince_n even_o pagan_n obiectivelie_o have_v supreme_a authority_n over_o all_o the_o person_n of_o their_o subject_n and_o general_o over_o their_o good_n whether_o they_o be_v civil_a or_o holy_a not_o because_o he_o be_v a_o christian_a king_n because_o baptism_n by_o which_o he_o be_v make_v a_o christian_a and_o member_n of_o the_o church_n give_v the_o king_n no_o new_a power_n no_o more_o than_o it_o do_v to_o other_o that_o be_v baptize_v and_o therefore_o if_o before_o baptism_n he_o be_v no_o head_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o be_v he_o after_o baptism_n rather_o baptism_n as_o above_o we_o have_v see_v make_v he_o a_o subject_n to_o the_o church_n whereas_o before_o he_o be_v not_o and_o only_o give_v he_o a_o new_a charge_n to_o obey_v serve_v and_o assist_v the_o church_n whereby_o it_o may_v appear_v how_o fowlie_a doctor_n andrews_n be_v deceive_v when_o he_o say_v that_o a_o ethnic_a king_n when_o he_o become_v a_o christian_n gain_v and_o get_v a_o new_a right_n and_o power_n over_o the_o church_n and_o spiritual_a matter_n for_o these_o be_v his_o word_n quin_fw-la rex_fw-la quivis_fw-la 40._o tortura_fw-la torti_n pag._n 40._o cum_fw-la de_fw-la ethnico_fw-la christianus_n fit_a non_fw-la perdit_fw-la terrenum_fw-la ius_fw-la sed_fw-la acquirit_fw-la ius_fw-la nowm_fw-la in_o bonis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la spiritualibus_fw-la yea_o every_o king_n when_o of_o a_o ethnic_n he_o become_v christian_a do_v not_o loose_v his_o terrene_a right_n but_o get_v a_o new_a right_n in_o the_o spiritual_a good_n of_o the_o church_n and_o cite_v bellarmine_n he_o say_v omnia_fw-la haec_fw-la dominus_fw-la tuus_fw-la totidem_fw-la verbis_fw-la all_o those_o thing_n thy_o master_n bellarmin_n in_o so_o many_o word_n affirm_v 3_o bollar_n lib._n 5._o de_fw-fr pont._n ca._n 2._o &_o 3_o as_o though_o bellarmine_n have_v affirm_v that_o a_o pagan_a king_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v right_a and_o power_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n whereas_o bellarmine_n be_v too_o learned_a to_o make_v so_o gross_a a_o error_n and_o only_o affirm_v that_o pagan_a king_n be_v true_a prince_n and_o lord_n of_o their_o country_n 7._o but_o perchance_o they_o will_v say_v that_o the_o prince_n have_v this_o authority_n by_o a_o special_a grant_v from_o god_n himself_o this_o they_o may_v say_v but_o with_o how_o little_a reason_n may_v appear_v by_o that_o which_o already_o i_o have_v handle_v in_o this_o chapter_n for_o i_o have_v prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n that_o christ_n give_v all_o authority_n concern_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n to_o his_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n and_o not_o any_o at_o all_o to_o king_n and_o prince_n which_o because_o our_o state_n pleaser_n perceave_v well_o enough_o they_o be_v enforce_v to_o play_v the_o jew_n and_o to_o allege_v example_n out_o of_o the_o old_a law_n as_o d._n bilson_n and_o d._n andrews_n do_v which_o example_n not_o witstanding_n as_o i_o have_v show_v do_v not_o ●rt_n their_o purpose_n for_o they_o know_v and_o d._n andrews_n confess_v say_v exemplum_fw-la inde_fw-la nobis_fw-la snmendum_fw-la est_fw-la 363._o tortura_fw-la torti_n pa._n 363._o cum_fw-la in_o testaemento_fw-la novo_fw-la nullum_fw-la habeamus_fw-la thence_o we_o must_v take_v a_o example_n since_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n we_o have_v none_o that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o text_n or_o example_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o give_v prince_n any_o power_n over_o the_o church_n but_o rather_o give_v it_o from_o they_o unto_o the_o pastor_n 8._o thirdlie_o if_o princess_n be_v supreme_a commander_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v monarchiall_a which_o yet_o be_v the_o best_a government_n 21._o aristo●_n l._n 8._o eth_n c._n 1●_n plato_n in_o poli._n senec_n lib._n 2._o the_o benef_n plut._n in_o opusc_n ●a_o de_fw-mi re_fw-mi homer_n 2._o iliad_n justorat_n ad_fw-la gent._n athan._n orat_fw-la ad_fw-la idola_fw-la gypr_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr vanit_fw-la idolorun_n mat._n 16._o joan._n 21._o as_o aristocle_n with_o all_o the_o best_a philosopher_n and_o ancient_a father_n do_v affirm_v and_o be_v in_o deed_n choose_v by_o christ_n for_o his_o church_n as_o the_o writer_n of_o this_o time_n prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o especial_o out_o of_o those_o word_n speak_v to_o s._n peter_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o on_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o those_o also_o pafce_n oves_fw-la meas_fw-la seed_n my_o sheep_n but_o rather_o if_o king_n be_v every_o one_o head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o kingdom_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v aristocratical_a because_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v govern_v by_o diverse_a prince_n which_o be_v most_o inconvenient_a in_o the_o church_n and_o subject_a to_o schism_n and_o tumult_n for_o if_o every_o king_n be_v supreme_a head_n in_o his_o kingdom_n when_o a_o general_n council_n shall_v be_v call_v as_o his_o majesty_n of_o england_n desire_v i_o demand_v who_o shall_v call_v it_o the_o emperor_n the_o king_n of_o england_n spain_n and_o france_n though_o they_o give_v he_o precedence_n in_o place_n and_o honour_n yet_o they_o pretend_v by_o prescription_n and_o
he_o may_v make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n propose_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o preach_v and_o true_a interpretation_n of_o it_o in_o counsel_n separate_a heretic_n from_o the_o sheepefould_a by_o excommunication_n lest_o they_o pervert_v other_o yea_o if_o the_o prince_n be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n all_o authority_n of_o preach_v administration_n of_o sacrament_n call_v counsel_n judge_v and_o define_v in_o they_o collation_n of_o benefice_n give_v of_o order_n jurisdiction_n absolve_a dispense_n excommunicate_v proceed_v from_o he_o wherefore_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o as_o he_o challenge_v the_o title_n of_o supreme_a head_n so_o he_o challenge_v almost_o all_o this_o authority_n as_o we_o have_v see_v and_o to_o queen_n elizabeth_z in_o the_o first_o parliament_n and_o first_o year_n of_o her_o reign_n the_o like_a authority_n be_v grant_v statute_n vide_fw-la saunder_n de_fw-fr schis_n angl._n fol._n 149.150.151_o see_v also_o poultons_n abbridgement_n of_o the_o statute_n for_o in_o that_o parliament_n it_o be_v decree_v that_o she_o her_o heir_n and_o successor_n shall_v have_v all_o privilege_n preeminence_n prerogative_n and_o spiritual_a superiority_n which_o may_v be_v exercise_v or_o have_v of_o any_o power_n or_o man_n ecclesiastical_a that_o she_o and_o her_o successor_n shall_v have_v all_o power_n of_o nominate_v and_o substitute_v who_o she_o will_v to_o correct_v heresy_n schism_n abuse_n and_o to_o use_v all_o authority_n which_o a_o ecclesiastical_a magistrate_n may_v do_v there_o also_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o no_o synod_n shall_v be_v call_v but_o by_o the_o prince_n letter_n and_o commandment_n and_o that_o a_o bishop_n shall_v not_o be_v nominate_v or_o elect_v by_o any_o other_o than_o the_o prince_n authority_n nor_o shall_v exercise_v any_o jurisdiction_n but_o at_o the_o queen_n pleasure_n nor_o otherwise_o then_o by_o authority_n from_o her_o regal_a majesty_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o prince_n write_v to_o the_o archbishop_n in_o this_o manner_n for_o as_o much_o as_o all_o jurisdiction_n as_o well_o ecclesiastical_a as_o secular_a proceed_v from_o kingly_a power_n as_o from_o the_o head_n we_o give_v thou_o power_n to_o promote_v by_o these_o present_n to_o holy_a order_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n use_v this_o stile_n we_o n._n by_o the_o divine_a permission_n archbishop_n and_o primate_n of_o england_n authorize_v sufficient_o by_o the_o king_n or_o queen_n majesty_n etc._n etc._n this_o argue_v that_o in_o england_n all_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n to_o excommunicare_fw-la absolve_v to_o preach_v and_o minister_v sacrament_n to_o call_v synod_n to_o decree_v in_o they_o to_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n etc._n etc._n proceed_v from_o the_o prince_n as_o from_o the_o head_n and_o fountain_n and_o consequent_o see_v that_o what_o authority_n the_o prince_n give_v to_o other_o he_o have_v himself_o he_o may_v excommunicate_v make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n call_v counsel_n sit_v as_o supreme_a judge_n in_o they_o as_o other_o by_o his_o authority_n do_v and_o see_v he_o can_v give_v to_o other_o jurisdiction_n to_o give_v order_n he_o may_v also_o minister_v sacrament_n preach_v and_o teach_v for_o this_o authority_n he_o give_v to_o other_o and_o therefore_o as_o in_o all_o common_a wealth_n the_o prince_n can_v do_v those_o thing_n which_o his_o inferior_a officer_n do_v though_o it_o be_v not_o always_o so_o convenient_a so_o if_o all_o ecclesiastical_a power_n proceed_v from_o the_o king_n as_o from_o the_o head_n and_o fountain_n look_v what_o the_o bishop_n and_o minister_n can_v do_v by_o authority_n receive_v from_o he_o that_o he_o also_o himself_o may_v do_v which_o yet_o be_v so_o ridiculous_a that_o our_o prince_n hitherto_o have_v be_v ashamed_a of_o many_o of_o those_o office_n and_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v anon_o even_o the_o protestant_n of_o england_n when_o they_o be_v press_v be_v ashamed_a of_o this_o monstrous_a authority_n 14._o seventhlie_a if_o christian_a king_n for_o few_o of_o our_o adversary_n dare_v say_v that_o pagan_a king_n have_v ecclesiastical_a authority_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n it_o follow_v that_o till_o constantine_n or_o philip_n the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n the_o church_n be_v without_o a_o head_n for_o three_o hundred_o year_n if_o you_o say_v that_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n be_v head_n till_o constantine_n than_o i_o demand_v who_o depose_v pope_n sylvester_n when_o constantine_n come_v to_o be_v christian_a and_o consequent_o head_n or_o if_o s._n sylvester_n be_v not_o depose_v than_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v two_o head_n at_o once_o and_o those_o not_o subordinate_a 28._o eightlie_o i_o prove_v this_o by_o king_n and_o emperor_n confession_n and_o as_o towch_a king_n we_o have_v see_v their_o confession_n in_o the_o former_a chapter_n as_o for_o emperor_n constantine_n as_o we_o have_v see_v call_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n 24._o ruffinus_n li._n 1._o cap._n 2._o euseb_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la vita_fw-la constant_n cap._n 24._o his_o god_n and_o judge_n and_o as_o eusebius_n report_v he_o be_v wont_a to_o say_v to_o bishop_n vos_fw-fr o_o episcopi_fw-la intra_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la ego_fw-la extra_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la episcopus_fw-la constitutus_fw-la sum_fw-la you_o o_o bishop_n in_o affair_n with_o in_o the_o church_n i_o in_o matter_n without_o the_o church_n be_o appoint_v point_a bishop_n by_o god_n mean_v that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v a_o vigilant_a prince_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o empire_n but_o not_o to_o meddle_v with_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n and_o therefore_o when_o the_o donatist_n in_o a_o matter_n pertaininge_v to_o the_o church_n decide_v appeal_v from_o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n hold_v by_o pope_n meichiade_n unto_o he_o non_fw-la est_fw-la ausus_fw-la say_v s._n 162._o august_n epi._n 162._o augustin_n christianus_n imperator_n sic_fw-la eorum_fw-la tumultuosas_fw-la &_o fallace_n quaerelas_n suscipere_fw-la ut_fw-la de_fw-la iudicio_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la qui_fw-la romae_fw-la sederant_fw-la ipse_fw-la iudicaret_fw-la he_o dare_v not_o so_o to_o admit_v their_o complaint_n as_o to_o judge_n of_o the_o bishop_n who_o in_o rome_n have_v sit_v in_o judgement_n yea_o optatus_n say_v finem_fw-la optat._n lib._n 1._o cont_n parm._n circa_fw-la finem_fw-la that_o when_o he_o see_v they_o appeal_v in_o such_o a_o matter_n unto_o he_o he_o exclame_v o_o rabida_fw-la furoris_fw-la audacia_fw-la sicut_fw-la in_o causis_fw-la gentilium_fw-la fieri_fw-la solet_fw-la appellationem_fw-la interposuerunt_fw-la o_o wood_n mad_a audacity_n of_o fury_n they_o have_v interpose_v a_o appellation_n as_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o gentile_n 174._o tortura_fw-la tort._n pa._n 174._o whereas_o doctor_n andrews_n say_v that_o constantin_n delegated_a the_o bishop_n to_o hear_v the_o donatist_n cause_n i_o demand_n whereon_o he_o ground_v that_o for_o if_o he_o may_v delegate_v he_o may_v have_v judge_v of_o the_o bishop_n sentence_n and_o yet_o s._n augustin_n say_v he_o dare_v not_o and_o although_o at_o last_o overcome_v by_o their_o importunity_n he_o hear_v they_o yet_o not_o as_o judge_v but_o as_o a_o arbiter_n theodosius_fw-la the_o young_a send_v count_n candidianu●_n to_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n with_o this_o caveat_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o meddle_v in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n because_o illicitum_fw-la est_fw-la eum_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la ex_fw-la ordine_fw-la sanctissimoram_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la sese_fw-la eccelesiasticis_fw-la immiscere_fw-la tractatibus_fw-la it_o be_v unlawful_a for_o he_o that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o order_n of_o most_o holy_a bishop_n to_o intermeddle_v himself_o in_o ecclesiastical_a treaty_n and_o affair_n but_o doctor_n andrew_n answer_v 175._o tortura_fw-la torti_n pa._n 175._o that_o it_o be_v no_o good_a argument_n to_o say_v a_o count_n can_v not_o meddle_v in_o counsel_n ergo_fw-la a_o emperor_n can_v but_o he_o shall_v have_v remember_v that_o this_o count_n be_v send_v to_o supply_v the_o emperor_n place_n and_o therefore_o if_o he_o as_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n can_v not_o meddle_v in_o counsel_n neither_o can_v the_o emperor_n himself_o he_o shall_v also_o have_v mark_v the_o emperor_n reason_n which_o be_v because_o it_o be_v unlawful_a for_o he_o that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o order_n of_o bishop_n to_o meddle_v in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n which_o reason_n aswell_o exclude_v the_o emperor_n as_o the_o count_n unless_o doctor_n andrew_n will_v make_v all_o king_n and_o emperor_n bishop_n valentinian_n the_o elder_a say_v 2.1_o sozom._n 16_o ca._n 7._o &_o 2.1_o sibi_fw-la qui_fw-la unus_fw-la è_fw-la laicorum_fw-la numero_fw-la erat_fw-la non_fw-la licere_fw-la se_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la rebus_fw-la interponere_fw-la it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o he_o who_o be_v one_o of_o the_o laiety_n to_o meddle_v in_o such_o matter_n and_o although_o doctor_n andrew_n will_v expound_v zozomen_n who_o report_v this_o speech_n of_o the_o emperor_n by_o nicephorus_n 8._o hist_o tri._n part_n lib._n 7._o
regna_fw-la that_fw-mi coelestia_fw-la that_o christ_n be_v come_v why_o do_v thou_o dread_a o_o herode_fw-la thau_fw-fr ungodlie_a foe_n he_o do_v not_o earthly_a kingdom_n reave_v that_o heavenly_a kingdom_n do_v bestow_v 4._o and_o so_o although_o christ_n be_v even_o as_o man_n a_o temporal_a king_n yet_o he_o not_o actual_o reign_v himself_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o he_o shall_v give_v any_o such_o authority_n to_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o pope_n his_o successor_n and_o although_o he_o have_v actual_o reign_v himself_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v give_v that_o authority_n to_o s._n peter_n for_o he_o have_v also_o the_o power_n of_o excellency_n by_o which_o he_o may_v command_v even_o infidel_n not_o baptize_v and_o by_o which_o he_o institute_v a_o church_n sacrament_n and_o a_o priesthood_n which_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o pope_n his_o successor_n can_v not_o do_v certes_o none_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o christ_n may_v have_v give_v s._n peter_n supreme_a jurisdiction_n spiritual_a over_o the_o church_n without_o temporal_a because_o as_o spiritual_a power_n be_v not_o necessary_o annex_v to_o the_o temporal_a as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n so_o temporal_a power_n be_v not_o necessary_o join_v to_o the_o spiritual_a and_o therefore_o see_v that_o neither_o the_o law_n of_o god_n nor_o nature_n nor_o man_n give_v any_o such_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n to_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n why_o shall_v either_o he_o challenge_v it_o or_o we_o give_v it_o he_o especial_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n very_o inconvenient_a and_o odious_a that_o either_o the_o church_n or_o her_o chief_a pastor_n shall_v have_v any_o such_o temporal_a power_n for_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o the_o church_n or_o her_o supreme_a pastor_n have_v any_o such_o soveraintie_n it_o will_v deter_v all_o pagan_a king_n and_o prince_n from_o our_o religion_n fear_v lest_o the_o church_n by_o her_o absolute_a authority_n may_v deprive_v they_o of_o their_o kingdom_n crown_n and_o sceptre_n at_o her_o pleasure_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n themselves_o confess_v that_o they_o have_v no_o imperial_a nor_o kingly_a authority_n give_v they_o by_o christ_n but_o rather_o that_o these_o two_o power_n be_v in_o distinct_a subject_n so_o nicholas_n pope_n say_v cum_fw-la ad_fw-la verum_fw-la ventum_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n 78._o ca._n cum_fw-la ad_fw-la verum_fw-la d._n 96._o vide_fw-la supra_fw-la pa._n 66._o et_fw-la pag._n 78._o when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o truth_n neither_o do_v the_o emperor_n take_v unto_o he_o the_o right_n of_o bishop-like_a authority_n nor_o do_v the_o bishop_n usurp_v the_o name_n of_o the_o emperor_n because_o the_o same_o mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n man_n christ_n jesus_n have_v distinguish_v the_o office_n of_o both_o power_n by_o their_o proper_a and_o distinct_a dignity_n as_o that_o christian_a emperor_n for_o attain_v eternal_a life_n shall_v need_v bishop_n and_o bishop_n shall_v use_v the_o imperial_a law_n for_o the_o cause_n only_o of_o temporal_a thing_n and_o s._n bernard_n 6._o bern._n li._n 2._o de_fw-la consid_fw-la ca._n 6._o nam_fw-la quid_fw-la tibi_fw-la aliud_fw-la dimisit_fw-la sanctus_n apostolus_fw-la quod_fw-la habeo_fw-la inquit_fw-la tibi_fw-la do_v etc._n etc._n what_o other_o thing_n do_v the_o holy_a apostle_n leave_v unto_o thou_o what_o i_o have_v say_v he_o i_o give_v thou_o what_o be_v that_o one_o thing_n i_o know_v it_o be_v neither_o gold_n nor_o silver_n see_v that_o he_o say_v gold_n and_o silver_n be_v not_o with_o i_o be_v it_o that_o by_o some_o other_o way_n thou_o may_v challenge_v this_o unto_o thou_o yet_o not_o by_o apostolical_a right_n for_o he_o can_v not_o give_v thou_o that_o which_o he_o have_v not_o what_o he_o have_v he_o give_v solicitude_n as_o he_o say_v over_o the_o church_n do_v be_v give_v thou_o rule_v and_o domination_n not_o overruling_a the_o clergy_n but_o make_v example_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o do_v thou_o think_v this_o to_o be_v speak_v only_o out_o of_o humility_n not_o in_o verity_n the_o voice_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v in_o the_o gospel_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o gentile_n over-rule_v they_o etc._n etc._n but_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o among_o you_o 5._o but_o although_o the_o pope_n and_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v no_o direct_a temporal_a power_n but_o only_o in_o his_o own_o temporal_a patrimony_n and_o kingdom_n by_o which_o he_o may_v dispose_v of_o kingdom_n crown_n and_o sceptre_n yet_o he_o have_v a_o spiritual_a power_n which_o may_v direct_o and_o ordinary_o dispose_v of_o spiritual_a matter_n and_o indirect_o and_o in_o some_o extraordinary_a case_n of_o the_o temporal_a also_o that_o be_v when_o it_o shall_v be_v judge_v necessary_a for_o the_o consernation_n of_o the_o faith_n or_o religion_n or_o the_o church_n law_n and_o right_a or_o some_o other_o great_a and_o necessary_a good_a i_o say_v the_o pope_n have_v no_o direct_a power_n over_o prince_n for_o than_o he_o may_v limit_v their_o power_n abrogate_v their_o law_n and_o depose_v their_o person_n at_o least_o for_o some_o just_a cause_n though_o it_o do_v not_o concern_v either_o faith_n or_o the_o church_n right_a or_o necessary_a good_a as_o the_o king_n can_v deal_v with_o his_o viceroy_n and_o any_o of_o his_o subject_n and_o then_o prince_n shall_v not_o be_v absolute_a and_o independent_a who_o yet_o as_o above_o be_v declare_v in_o temporal_a matter_n and_o so_o long_o as_o they_o exceed_v not_o the_o bound_n of_o their_o authority_n by_o command_a thing_n contrary_a to_o god_n law_n or_o the_o church_n canon_n acknowledge_v no_o superior_a in_o earth_n neither_o pope_n nor_o emperor_n nor_o common_a wealth_n for_o as_o for_o the_o emperor_n all_o prince_n who_o be_v not_o his_o vassal_n as_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n england_n and_o france_n be_v not_o as_o they_o acknowledge_v he_o superior_a in_o dignity_n and_o therefore_o will_v and_o must_v give_v he_o the_o precedence_n whersoever_o they_o meet_v yet_o they_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o he_o nor_o bind_v to_o obey_v he_o unless_o it_o be_v when_o the_o pope_n the_o chief_a pastor_n and_o he_o the_o great_a prince_n in_o dignity_n shall_v think_v it_o necessary_a that_o all_o christian_a prince_n contribute_v or_o concur_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o christendom_n against_o the_o turk_n or_o such_o like_a common_a enemy_n as_o for_o the_o pope_n i_o grant_v that_o christ_n give_v he_o no_o temporal_a power_n at_o all_o which_o above_o i_o have_v prove_v for_o that_o temporal_a power_n which_o he_o have_v in_o italy_n he_o have_v not_o by_o christ_n immediate_a grant_n but_o only_o by_o constantine_n and_o other_o emperouts_n and_o prince_n donation_n which_o donation_n suppose_v and_o confirm_v also_o by_o prescription_n and_o his_o subject_n yea_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n consent_n that_o part_n of_o italy_n which_o he_o possess_v be_v as_o true_o appertain_v to_o he_o as_o england_n be_v to_o the_o king_n of_o england_n france_n to_o the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o spain_n to_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n only_o the_o pope_n can_v transfer_v his_o kingdom_n to_o his_o heir_n as_o they_o may_v because_o it_o come_v not_o to_o he_o in_o particular_a by_o hereditary_a succession_n but_o only_o by_o election_n yea_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n a_o temporal_a sovereign_n prince_n over_o all_o the_o world_n other_o prince_n shall_v hold_v of_o he_o and_o constantine_n donation_n by_o which_o he_o make_v he_o temporal_a prince_n of_o italy_n have_v be_v no_o donation_n but_o restitution_n as_o for_o the_o common_a wealth_n i_o have_v above_o declare_v how_o it_o have_v despoil_v itself_o of_o all_o authority_n and_o by_o translate_n it_o to_o the_o king_n be_v true_o a_o subject_n and_o like_o a_o private_a person_n and_o so_o have_v no_o power_n over_o the_o king_n unless_o it_o be_v in_o case_n of_o intolerable_a tyranny_n as_o above_o be_v explicate_v 6._o i_o say_v yet_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o indirect_a power_n over_o king_n even_o in_o temporal_a mattter_n which_o power_n notwithstanding_o be_v not_o temporal_a but_o spiritual_a nor_o any_o distinct_a power_n from_o his_o spiritual_a supremacy_n but_o even_o the_o self_n same_o and_o therefore_o gregory_n the_o seven_o in_o his_o deposition_n of_o henry_n the_o four_o say_v that_o he_o depose_v he_o by_o the_o power_n he_o have_v from_o s._n peter_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v and_o although_o his_o pastoral_n and_o spiritual_a power_n direct_o and_o ordinary_o have_v the_o menage_n only_o of_o spiritual_a matter_n and_o so_o direct_o and_o ordinary_o exercise_v itself_o in_o excommunicate_v interdict_v and_o suspend_v from_o spiritual_a office_n call_v counsel_n and_o decide_v controversy_n of_o faith_n in_o they_o in_o make_v
3._o which_o s._n augustine_n say_v be_v a_o great_a evil_n then_o to_o be_v kill_v by_o a_o sword_n consume_v by_o fire_n or_o cast_v unto_o wild_a beast_n to_o be_v devour_v who_o doubt_v but_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o the_o deposition_n he_o compel_v the_o subject_n thereunto_o by_o so_o great_a a_o punishment_n 40._o likewise_o as_o a_o foreign_a prince_n may_v and_o be_v bind_v sometime_o to_o defend_v innocent_n so_o the_o pope_n may_v licence_v and_o authorise_v yea_o and_o command_v he_o so_o to_o do_v he_o have_v authority_n as_o widdrington_n avouch_v to_o command_v a_o prince_n in_o temporal_a matter_n and_o if_o at_o the_o pope_n commandment_n this_o prince_n make_v war_n upon_o the_o prince_n that_o intolerable_o mole_v innocent_n in_o their_o faith_n and_o religion_n as_o victoria_n in_o the_o place_n before_o allege_v say_v he_o may_v that_o which_o the_o prince_n shall_v do_v against_o the_o other_o tyrannize_a prince_n in_o the_o pursew_n of_o his_o just_a war_n the_o pope_n shall_v be_v say_v to_o do_v he_o be_v the_o commander_n and_o consequent_o the_o principal_a agent_n and_o yet_o by_o this_o clause_n of_o the_o oath_n the_o subject_n be_v command_v to_o swear_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o authorise_v any_o foreign_a prince_n to_o annoy_v the_o king_n of_o england_n or_o to_o invade_v his_o country_n which_o be_v to_o abjure_v at_o least_o a_o probable_a opinion_n as_o certain_o false_a which_o how_o it_o can_v be_v do_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n i_o report_v i_o even_o to_o widdringtons_n large_a conscience_n but_o be_v this_o speak_v to_o show_v the_o danger_n of_o swear_v this_o clause_n not_o to_o give_v any_o scope_n against_o king_n or_o prince_n who_o i_o honour_v as_o god_n his_o image_n and_o his_o vicegerent_n in_o earth_n the_o three_o clause_n also_o i_o swear_v from_o my_o heart_n that_o notwithstanding_o any_o declaration_n or_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n or_o deprivation_n make_v or_o grant_v or_o to_o be_v make_v or_o grant_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o successor_n or_o by_o any_o authority_n derive_v or_o pretend_v to_o be_v derive_v from_o he_o or_o his_o sea_n against_o the_o say_a king_n his_o heir_n or_o successor_n or_o any_o absolution_n of_o the_o say_a subject_n from_o their_o obedience_n i_o will_v bear_v faith_n and_o true_a allegiance_n to_o his_o maiesti●_n his_o heir_n and_o successor_n and_o he_o and_o they_o will_v defend_v to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o my_o power_n against_o all_o conspiracy_n and_o attempt_n what_o soever_o which_o shall_v be_v make_v against_o he_o or_o their_o person_n their_o crown_n and_o dignity_n by_o reason_n or_o colour_n of_o any_o such_o sentence_n or_o declaration_n or_o otherwise_o and_o will_v do_v my_o best_a endeavour_n to_o disclose_v and_o make_v know_v unto_o his_o majesty_n his_o heir_n and_o successor_n all_o treason_n and_o traitorous_a conspiracy_n which_o i_o shall_v know_v or_o hear_v of_o to_o be_v against_o he_o or_o any_o of_o they_o 41._o seqq_n widdr._n in_o disp_n theol._n ca._n 4._o sect_n 1._o n._n 1._o &_o seqq_n here_o widdrington_n insult_v against_o the_o learned_a cardinal_n bellarmine_n though_o the_o phoenix_n for_o controversy_n of_o this_o our_o age_n cardinal_n bellarmine_n say_v he_o gretserus_n and_o lessius_fw-la contend_v that_o by_o this_o clause_n be_v deny_v to_o the_o pope_n power_n to_o excommunicate_v which_o yet_o say_v he_o this_o clause_n seem_v to_o suppose_v and_o the_o king_n profess_v he_o have_v not_o the_o intention_n to_o deny_v but_o although_o this_o clause_n seem_v to_o suppose_v and_o the_o king_n in_o word_n seem_v to_o confess_v or_o at_o least_o not_o to_o deny_v the_o pope_n authority_n to_o excommunicate_v yet_o in_o effect_n they_o deny_v it_o for_o deprivation_n of_o regal_a authority_n be_v a_o effect_n of_o excommunicate_v which_o ordinary_o follow_v excommunication_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o effect_n the_o cause_n be_v deny_v for_o as_o if_o you_o shall_v say_v a_o man_n be_v not_o risibilis_fw-la you_o shall_v deny_v he_o to_o be_v homo_fw-la so_o in_o deny_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v deprive_v prince_n of_o their_o kingdom_n you_o deny_v in_o effect_n than_o he_o can_v excommunicate_v 42._o here_o widdrington_n in_o his_o newyearesgift_n insult_v against_o i_o for_o say_v as_o he_o make_v i_o to_o say_v that_o deprivation_n of_o regal_a authority_n be_v a_o effect_n of_o excommunication_n as_o necessary_o follow_v excommunication_n as_o risibile_fw-la follow_v homo_fw-la but_o if_o we_o look_v into_o the_o matter_n narrow_o we_o shall_v find_v he_o triumph_v before_o the_o victory_n and_o count_v his_o chicken_n before_o they_o be_v hatch_v for_o first_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o power_n of_o excommunication_n and_o deprivation_n of_o which_o i_o speak_v but_o two_o line_n before_o these_o word_n at_o which_o widdrington_n carp_v i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n before_o that_o the_o power_n to_o excommunicate_v which_o the_o cbiefe_a visible_a pastor_n have_v be_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o power_n with_o the_o power_n of_o deprivation_n and_o deposition_n which_o one_o power_n have_v two_o act_n and_o effect_n the_o one_o principal_a and_o first_o intend_v call_v actus_fw-la primarius_fw-la and_o this_o be_v excommunication_n or_o such_o like_a spiritual_a censure_n and_o punishment_n the_o second_o be_v deprivation_n deposition_n and_o such_o like_a temporal_a chastisement_n and_o correction_n which_o be_v actus_fw-la secundarius_fw-la a_o secundarie_n act_n of_o the_o chief_a pastor_n spiritual_a power_n secondarilie_o intend_v when_o the_o first_o will_v not_o prevail_v and_o these_o two_o act_n be_v necessary_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n spiritual_a power_n of_o supremacy_n not_o that_o this_o power_n must_v needs_o always_o exercise_v both_o or_o either_o of_o they_o but_o because_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o have_v this_o power_n but_o he_o must_v have_v faculty_n to_o exercise_v they_o when_o a_o just_a cause_n require_v it_o and_o so_o these_o two_o act_n be_v necessary_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n he_o that_o deny_v he_o power_n to_o deprive_v or_o depose_v a_o prince_n deny_v in_o effect_n that_o he_o have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o power_n because_o the_o denial_n of_o a_o effect_n necessary_o belong_v to_o a_o cause_n be_v a_o virtual_a denial_n of_o the_o cause_n even_o as_o to_o deny_v that_o fire_n can_v heat_v or_o rarify_v be_v to_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v fire_n and_o to_o deny_v a_o man_n to_o be_v risibilis_fw-la be_v to_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v man_n secondlie_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o these_o two_o act_n of_o this_o power_n although_o widdrnigton_n know_v that_o the_o learned_a svarez_n allege_v by_o he_o 4._o 2._o p._n append_v contra_fw-la suarem_fw-la sec_fw-la 4._o affirm_v that_o the_o suspension_n of_o kingly_a authority_n be_v a_o effect_n of_o the_o act_n of_o excommunication_n i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o deprivation_n be_v always_o a_o effect_n of_o the_o act_n of_o excommunication_n well_o know_v that_o although_o both_o these_o be_v so_o necessary_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n power_n of_o supremacy_n that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v without_o possibility_n of_o exercise_v they_o yet_o it_o be_v in_o his_o free_a choice_n to_o exercise_v either_o both_o or_o either_o of_o they_o and_o so_o he_o may_v excommunicate_v and_o not_o deprive_v and_o he_o may_v deprive_v as_o he_o do_v king_n childeric_n 6._o see_v cap._n alius_fw-la 15._o q._n 6._o allege_v by_o i_o pag._n 250._o and_o not_o excommunicate_a and_o therefore_o i_o say_v only_o that_o deprivation_n of_o regal_a authority_n be_v aneffect_n of_o excommunication_n which_o ordinary_o follow_v excommunication_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o effect_n the_o cause_n be_v deny_v etc._n etc._n where_o widdrington_n leave_v out_o those_o word_n which_o ordinary_o follow_v because_o those_o word_n will_v have_v make_v it_o plain_a that_o i_o say_v not_o that_o deprivation_n be_v a_o effect_n of_o excommunication_n in_o all_o excommunicate_a person_n but_o in_o king_n and_o prince_n nor_o always_o in_o excommunicate_v prince_n because_o a_o king_n may_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o not_o depose_v and_o he_o may_v be_v depose_v as_o childeric_n king_n of_o france_n be_v and_o not_o excommunicate_v but_o oftentimes_o and_o ordinarelie_o 6._o cap._n alius_fw-la 15._o q._n 6._o because_o the_o chief_a visible_a pastor_n use_v not_o by_o name_n to_o excommunicere_fw-la a_o prince_n but_o he_o also_o ordinary_o especial_o in_o these_o late_a age_n depose_v he_o and_o for_o two_o reason_n also_o the_o one_o because_o he_o ought_v not_o ordinatilie_o to_o proceed_v to_o so_o severe_a a_o temporal_a punishment_n before_o he_o have_v try_v whether_o the_o
l._n 3._o pol._n ca._n 5._o there_o be_v three_o parttcular_a kind_n of_o government_n the_o first_o be_v call_v monarchia_fw-la when_o one_o as_o king_n and_o monarch_n govern_v the_o second_o be_v call_v aristocratia_fw-la when_o diverse_a but_o few_o and_o those_o of_o the_o better_a sort_n equal_a in_o authority_n do_v rule_n the_o three_o be_v call_v democratia_fw-la when_o many_o and_o those_o of_o the_o common_a people_n rule_n the_o first_o government_n of_o itself_o be_v best_a because_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o find_v one_o good_a and_o wise_a man_n than_o few_o much_o more_o hard_a to_o find_v many_o and_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o many_o to_o obey_v one_o than_o many_o for_o to_o obey_v many_o there_o be_v two_o difficulty_n the_o one_o in_o those_o that_o obey_v and_o that_o difficulty_n be_v also_o find_v in_o a_o monarchy_n the_o second_o in_o the_o commander_n and_o this_o be_v less_o in_o a_o monarchy_n then_o in_o other_o government_n because_o one_o can_v better_o agree_v then_o many_o and_o so_o when_o one_o command_v it_o be_v easy_a for_o the_o subject_n to_o agree_v in_o one_o than_o when_o many_o command_n 2_o vide_fw-la bellar_n li._n 1._o de_fw-fr sum._n pont._n c._n 2_o and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o tyranny_n which_o be_v opposite_a to_o monarchy_n be_v not_o so_o bad_a as_o faction_n oppose_v to_o aristocratie_n nor_o faction_n of_o a_o few_o so_o bad_a as_o sedition_n of_o the_o people_n opposite_a to_o democraty_n 7._o now_o therefore_o as_o the_o community_n as_o be_v before_o declare_v have_v power_n to_o govern_v itself_o so_o have_v it_o power_n to_o choose_v that_o government_n which_o it_o like_v best_o whether_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o former_a three_o simple_a government_n or_o some_o other_o mix_v of_o two_o or_o of_o all_o three_o of_o they_o and_o if_o the_o community_n choose_v magistrate_n who_o shall_v depend_v of_o the_o whole_a community_n than_o the_o community_n be_v the_o chief_a governor_n the_o magistrate_n be_v but_o officer_n and_o minister_n and_o so_o may_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o people_n some_o time_n at_o pleasure_n some_o time_n only_o upon_o some_o urgent_a occasion_n and_o always_o when_o the_o chief_a magistrate_n die_v his_o heir_n succeed_v not_o necessary_o but_o only_o they_o who_o the_o people_n make_v choice_n of_o this_o government_n be_v amongst_o the_o roman_n when_o they_o be_v govern_v by_o plebiscita_fw-la and_o senator_n and_o be_v this_o day_n to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o common_a wealth_n of_o the_o venetian_n the_o genevians_n and_o those_o of_o genua_n if_o the_o community_n make_v choice_n of_o a_o king_n than_o the_o community_n despoil_v itself_o of_o authority_n and_o become_v a_o subject_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o private_a person_n and_o give_v all_o power_n and_o authority_n to_o the_o king_n to_o govern_v not_o principal_o for_o his_o own_o private_a but_o for_o the_o common_a good_a of_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o common_a wealth_n can_v depose_v a_o king_n as_o it_o may_v a_o magistrate_n unless_o it_o be_v in_o case_n of_o intolerable_a tyranny_n 8._o hence_o appear_v a_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o afore_o say_v power_n of_o the_o community_n and_o the_o regal_a power_n of_o the_o king_n because_o the_o former_a power_n of_o the_o community_n follow_v of_o necessity_n the_o lawful_a meeting_n of_o many_o in_o one_o society_n in_o so_o much_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o people_n power_n to_o meet_v with_o intention_n to_o live_v together_o and_o not_o to_o have_v that_o power_n and_o so_o this_o power_n depend_v not_o of_o any_o election_n but_o that_o the_o king_n or_o peer_n or_o the_o magistrate_n rule_n and_o govern_v depend_v at_o the_o first_o of_o the_o election_n and_o free_a choice_n of_o the_o people_n in_o who_o power_n it_o be_v to_o choose_v one_o or_o many_o to_o govern_v the_o rest_n and_o so_o kingly_a power_n be_v in_o deed_n of_o god_n but_o by_o mean_n of_o election_n it_o be_v of_o god_n because_o it_o proceed_v from_o the_o community_n power_n which_o be_v of_o god_n and_o nature_n necessary_o follow_v the_o natural_a inclination_n which_o god_n have_v imprint_v in_o we_o to_o live_v in_o society_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v in_o the_o king_n by_o free_a election_n because_o though_o the_o community_n have_v authority_n from_o god_n and_o nature_n to_o rule_v itself_o yet_o that_o this_o power_n be_v give_v to_o the_o determinate_a person_n of_o the_o king_n depend_v of_o the_o people_n election_n 9_o now_o some_o think_v that_o suppose_v the_o people_n election_n god_n immediate_o give_v the_o power_n 128._o wid._n in_o apolog._n rosp_n nu_fw-la 163._o pag._n 128._o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o widdringron_n in_o his_o apologetical_a answer_n for_o the_o right_n of_o prince_n where_o he_o affirm_v that_o quicunque_fw-la in_o supremum_fw-la reipublicae_fw-la superiorem_fw-la legitimè_fw-la deputatur_fw-la etc._n etc._n whosoever_o be_v lawful_o depute_v as_o sovereign_a superior_a of_o the_o common_a wealth_n although_o he_o receive_v that_o dedeputation_n or_o title_n of_o power_n by_o the_o free_a consent_n of_o of_o man_n yet_o the_o total_a power_n of_o rule_v god_n only_o give_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n but_o widdringron_n shall_v have_v mark_v that_o the_o people_n and_o community_n from_o which_o lawful_o assemble_v necessary_o flow_v as_o above_o we_o have_v see_v a_o power_n to_o govern_v itself_o and_o to_o appoint_v governor_n not_o only_o design_v the_o person_n of_o the_o king_n but_o also_o transfer_v her_o authority_n from_o herself_o to_o the_o king_n and_o become_v herself_o a_o subject_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o private_a person_n so_o that_o the_o community_n not_o only_o design_v the_o person_n of_o the_o king_n but_o also_o despoil_v her_o self_n of_o the_o power_n she_o have_v from_o god_n and_o nature_n give_v it_o unto_o the_o person_n choose_v and_o design_v by_o she_o for_o king_n 10._o d._n the._n 2.2_o qu._n 10._o a._n 10._o and_o thersore_n s._n thom._n say_v that_o dominion_n and_o prelacy_n civil_a be_v bring_v in_o by_o humane_a law_n 10._o whorein_a may_v be_v see_v a_o manifest_a difference_n also_o betwixt_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o king_n for_o the_o cardinal_n when_o they_o choose_v one_o of_o their_o company_n to_o be_v pope_n design_v only_o his_o person_n as_o caietan_n well_o observe_v but_o christ_n only_o pont●_n caiet_fw-mi in_o opusc_n de_fw-fr pont●_n and_o not_o the_o cardinal_n after_o this_o deputation_n of_o his_o person_n give_v the_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n it_o be_v supernatural_a as_o not_o only_o the_o end_n to_o which_o it_o be_v ordain_v but_o also_o the_o act_n and_o function_n of_o this_o jurisdiction_n do_v manifest_o declare_v and_o therefore_o see_v that_o a_o supernatural_a jurisdiction_n surpass_v the_o activity_n of_o the_o cardinal_n they_o be_v but_o moral_a agent_n and_o use_v no_o sacrament_n in_o the_o election_n and_o creation_n of_o the_o pope_n he_o be_v ordinary_o priest_n and_o bishop_n before_o this_o authority_n must_v be_v attribute_v only_o to_o god_n as_o the_o author_n but_o the_o king_n authority_n be_v natural_a and_o moral_a ordain_v only_o of_o itself_o to_o natural_a function_n and_o to_o a_o natural_a end_n which_o be_v temporal_a peace_n and_o felicity_n and_o so_o it_o not_o exceed_v the_o activity_n of_o the_o people_n or_o community_n power_n may_v and_o be_v give_v by_o the_o people_n and_o consequent_o not_o only_a the_o deputation_n of_o the_o king_n person_n but_o also_o his_o regal_a authority_n proceed_v immediate_o from_o the_o people_n 11._o whence_o also_o may_v be_v gather_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o authority_n which_o be_v in_o the_o community_n before_o it_o make_v choice_n of_o a_o king_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o king_n for_o that_o authority_n of_o the_o community_n be_v immediate_o of_o god_n &_o nature_n proceed_v necessary_o from_o a_o community_n lawful_o assemble_v in_o somuch_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o community_n to_o be_v without_o this_o power_n unless_o it_o give_v it_o to_o one_o or_o many_o governor_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n do_v not_o necessary_o flow_v from_o this_o community_n because_o it_o be_v in_o the_o free_a choice_n of_o the_o community_n to_o make_v election_n of_o that_o government_n in_o particular_a which_o it_o shall_v think_v best_a and_o so_o if_o it_o make_v election_n of_o a_o monarchical_a government_n and_o consequent_o of_o the_o king_n the_o king_n be_v to_o thank_v the_o community_n not_o only_o for_o the_o deputation_n of_o his_o person_n but_o also_o for_o his_o regal_a authority_n which_o be_v a_o natural_a power_n and_o be_v before_o contain_v eminenter_fw-la or_o virtualiter_fw-la eminentlie_o or_o virtuallie_o in_o the_o community_n
power_n because_o as_o i_o have_v say_v the_o community_n at_o first_o have_v authority_n to_o choose_v which_o government_n in_o particular_a it_o think_v most_o convenient_a be_v not_o to_o be_v ascribe_v immediate_o to_o god_n 1._o d._n tho._n 1.2_o qu._n 90._o a._n 3●_n and._n qu._n 105._o a._n 1_o ad_fw-la 1._o a_o second_o cause_n be_v find_v out_o sufficient_a to_o produce_v such_o a_o effect_n and_o so_o the_o king_n authority_n in_o particular_a and_o take_v determinatlie_o be_v not_o immediate_o of_o god_n or_o nature_n but_o come_v to_o he_o by_o meantes_fw-la not_o only_o of_o the_o people_n designation_n but_o also_o of_o the_o people_n gift_n and_o donation_n 13._o d._n th._n 1.2_o q._n 105_o be_v 1._o ad_fw-la 1._o and_o 2.2_o q._n 10._o art_n 10._o caieta_n ib._n bellarm_n to_o 1._o lib._n 3._o cap._n 9_o suarez_n l._n 3._o the_o leg_n c._n 4._o almai_n li._n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la eccl_n cap._n 1._o prou._n 8._o rom._n 13._o and_o this_o opinion_n be_v hold_v by_o the_o best_a divine_n both_o ancient_a and_o modern_a but_o this_o not_o withstand_v it_o be_v most_o true_a which_o god_n say_v per_fw-la i_o reges_fw-la regnant_a king_n reign_n by_o i_o to_o which_o his_o apostle_n subscribe_v saye_v non_fw-la est_fw-la potestas_fw-la nisi_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la itaque_fw-la qui_fw-la potestati_fw-la resistit_fw-la dei_fw-la ordinationi_fw-la resistit_fw-la there_o be_v no_o power_n but_o of_o god_n therefore_o he_o that_o resist_v the_o power_n resti_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n because_o king_n authority_n proceed_v mediatelie_o from_o god_n to_o wit_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o community_n which_o proceed_v immediate_o from_o god_n and_o nature_n and_o it_o be_v also_o god_n providence_n that_o king_n reign_n over_o we_o and_o god_n as_o the_o first_o cause_n cooperate_v to_o their_o election_n and_o creation_n and_o approove_v also_o the_o same_o but_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o the_o people_n be_v a_o second_o cause_n of_o king_n authority_n 13._o if_o any_o object_n that_o saul_n and_o david_n be_v immediate_o create_v by_o god_n king_n of_o the_o jew_n i_o answer_v that_o god_n in_o this_o prevent_v the_o people_n for_o the_o people_n good_a for_o otherwise_o the_o jew_n by_o law_n of_o nature_n have_v authority_n to_o choose_v and_o create_v themselves_o a_o king_n as_o be_v already_o prove_v neither_o do_v it_o hence_o follow_v that_o the_o people_n be_v above_o the_o king_n or_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o obey_v the_o king_n or_o can_v depose_v the_o king_n at_o their_o pleasure_n for_o although_o the_o people_n at_o the_o first_o create_v the_o king_n yet_o they_o create_v he_o not_o as_o a_o simple_a magistrate_n or_o officer_n but_o as_o a_o absolute_a prince_n and_o they_o despoil_v themselves_o of_o authority_n to_o give_v it_o to_o the_o king_n as_o to_z one_o that_o can_v better_o rule_v than_o the_o confuse_a multitude_n and_o become_v as_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d private_a personne_fw-fr subject_n not_o superior_a ●o_o to_o king_n and_o so_o the_o king_n power_n now_o 〈◊〉_d so_o long_o at_o least_o as_o he_o be_v not_o a_o intolerable_a tyrant_n be_v not_o depend_v of_o the_o people_n ●nd_v no_o marvel_n because_o many_o effect_n which_o depend_v of_o their_o cause_n in_o fieri_fw-la and_o in_o ●heir_n first_o production_n depend_v not_o of_o they_o ●n_n facto_fw-la esse_fw-la and_o conservation_n so_o the_o son_n ●●ueth_v after_o his_o father_n and_o fruit_n may_v be_v extant_a after_o the_o tree_n be_v consume_v and_o we_o give_v many_o thing_n frank_o and_o free_o which_o afterward_o we_o can_v not_o at_o our_o pleasure_n ●ake_v away_o wherefore_o as_o a_o freeman_n sell_v ●im_a self_n free_o but_o after_o the_o sale_n be_v so_o bind_v to_o his_o master_n that_o he_o can_v not_o free_v himself_o at_o his_o pleasure_n but_o remain_v will_v he_o will_z he_o a_o subject_n and_o bondman_n who_o before_o be_v a_o freeman_n so_o the_o people_n before_o the_o election_n of_o their_o king_n be_v free_a &_o superior_a but_o after_o be_v a_o bind_a subject_n and_o inferior_a though_o by_o a_o civil_a not_o despoticall_a subjection_n and_o so_o suppose_v this_o election_n the_o people_n be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o obey_v their_o king_n as_o superior_a and_o can_v now_o depose_v he_o unless_o it_o be_v in_o case_n of_o intolerable_a tyranny_n for_o then_o the_o common_a opinion_n hold_v 13._o d._n thom._n opus_n 20._o de_fw-la regi_fw-la princ._n cap._n 1._o sotus_n l._n 4_o the_o just_a &_o jure_fw-la q._n 1._o a._n 3._o &_o q._n 4._o a._n 1._o rom._n 13._o that_o the_o authority_n which_o the_o people_n have_v in_o the_o beginning_n to_o create_v he_o return_v again_o by_o devolution_n to_o depose_v he_o but_o must_v obey_v he_o in_o lawful_a thing_n though_o he_o be_v difficile_a and_o govern_v not_o altogether_o as_o he_o shall_v do_v according_a to_o that_o omnis_fw-la anima_fw-la potestatibus_fw-la sublimioribus_fw-la subdita_fw-la sit_fw-la let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o high_a power_n and_o again_o itaque_fw-la qui_fw-la potestati_fw-la resistit_fw-la dei_fw-la ordinationi_fw-la resistit_fw-la therefore_o he_o that_o resist_v the_o power_n resist_v god_n ordinance_n and_o again_o ideoque_fw-la necessitate_v subditi_fw-la estote_fw-la which_o in_o greek_a be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ideo_fw-la necessit_fw-la as_o est_fw-la subijci_fw-la therefore_o be_v subject_a of_o necessity_n and_o yet_o again_o subiecti_fw-la estote_fw-la omni_fw-la humanae_fw-la creaturae_fw-la propter_fw-la deum_fw-la 2._o 1._o pet._n 2._o sive_fw-la regi_fw-la quasi_fw-la praecellenti_fw-la etc._n etc._n be_v subject_n therefore_o to_o every_o humane_a creature_n for_o god_n whether_o it_o be_v to_o the_o king_n as_o excel_v etc._n etc._n and_o as_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n saint_n peter_n command_v servant_n to_o be_v subject_a in_o all_o fear_n to_o their_o master_n not_o only_o to_o the_o good_a and_o modest_a but_o also_o to_o the_o wayward_a so_o the_o people_n be_v bind_v to_o obey_v king_n 4._o vide_fw-la lessium_fw-la li._n 2_o dei_fw-la ●st_fw-la &_o jure_fw-la c._n 9_o dub_v 4._o though_o wayward_a and_o difficile_a yea_o though_o they_o be_v tyrant_n so_o that_o their_o first_o entrance_n be_v lawful_a and_o they_o not_o depose_v yea_o though_o their_o entrance_n be_v by_o unlawful_a invasion_n so_o that_o the_o people_n general_o do_v afterward_o consent_n and_o accept_v of_o they_o as_o their_o prince_n and_o superior_n for_o to_o a_o superior_a while_o he_o remain_v superiout_a and_o command_v lawful_a thing_n obedience_n be_v due_a otherwise_o be_v he_o never_o so_o lawful_a if_o he_o command_v thing_n unlawful_a we_o must_v obey_v god_n before_o man_n 5._o act._n 5._o and_o the_o king_n before_o the_o viceroy_n 14._o but_o against_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v of_o the_o creation_n of_o king_n by_o the_o people_n election_n some_o may_v object_v that_o nowadays_o in_o all_o europe_n almost_o all_o king_n be_v make_v by_o succession_n as_o be_v the_o king_n of_o spain_n france_n ●nd_n england_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o though_o this_o be_v so_o yet_o the_o source_n and_o origin_n of_o this_o be_v also_o the_o people_n election_n for_o at_o the_o first_o ●excepting_v those_o king_n which_o extraordi●arilie_o be_v give_v immediate_o from_o god_n to_o the_o jew_n the_o people_n choose_v or_o approve_a ●he_n king_n but_o perceave_v what_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n also_o of_o tumult_n and_o sedition_n will_v ensue_v if_o after_o the_o death_n of_o their_o king_n they_o shall_v be_v to_o seek_v and_o stand_v upon_o election_n of_o another_o they_o be_v con●ent_v that_o the_o lawful_a heir_n of_o the_o first_o king_n choose_v shall_v succeed_v to_o his_o father_n without_o new_a election_n although_o when_o the_o ●ewe_a king_n be_v crown_v the_o people_n consent_n be_v demand_v and_o the_o king_n be_v swear_v unto_o they_o and_o in_o spain_n the_o archbishop_n of_o toledo_n receave_v the_o king_n oath_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n and_o people_n in_o france_n the_o archbishop_n of_o rheims_n in_o england_n the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o so_o all_o regal_a power_n though_o not_o immediate_o yet_o originallie_o come_v from_o the_o people_n election_n and_o donation_n 15._o and_o therefore_o we_o see_v that_o the_o king_n power_n in_o diverse_a country_n be_v diverse_o limit_v as_o in_o france_n and_o england_n where_o many_o of_o the_o king_n law_n be_v not_o take_v to_o be_v of_o force_n unless_o the_o parliament_n of_o state_n concur_v to_o the_o make_n or_o confirm_v of_o they_o which_o limitation_n widdrington_n ascribe_v to_o the_o king_n 137._o in_o resp_n apol_n n._n 174._o pa._n 137._o as_o though_o he_o do_v voluntary_o thus_o limit_v himself_o but_o who_o see_v not_o how_o unlikely_a it_o be_v that_o king_n shall_v thus_o restrain_v their_o own_o power_n and_o tie_v their_o own_o hand_n
and_o if_o this_o limitation_n proceed_v from_o the_o king_n he_o may_v at_o his_o pleasure_n also_o take_v it_o away_o which_o be_v to_o give_v prince_n too_o much_o scope_n and_o liberty_n wherefore_o as_o the_o people_n give_v the_o king_n his_o authority_n so_o it_o be_v the_o people_n that_o thus_o limit_v and_o restrain_v he_o for_o their_o own_o preservation_n for_o to_o the_o same_o authority_n that_o give_v power_n it_o pertain_v to_o restrain_v it_o 16._o have_v thus_o prove_v that_o the_o king_n or_o prince_n have_v authority_n from_o god_n as_o author_n of_o nature_n yet_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o people_n election_n and_o grant_v to_o govern_v the_o kingdom_n or_o common_a wealth_n it_o follow_v that_o he_o have_v authority_n not_o only_o to_o command_v privarelie_o or_o particulerlie_o as_o the_o goodman_n of_o the_o house_n may_v command_v his_o wife_n child_n or_o servant_n but_o also_o to_o make_v law_n which_o shall_v bind_v the_o whole_a community_n or_o common_a wealth_n otherwise_o if_o he_o shall_v command_v and_o the_o people_n may_v disobey_v he_o can_v not_o rule_v nor_o direct_v the_o people_n and_o so_o shall_v not_o have_v sufficient_a authority_n 17._o by_o which_o may_v appear_v how_o absurd_a the_o opinion_n of_o our_o reformer_n be_v 10._o luth_n l._n the_o cap_a bab._n calu._n l._n 3_o inst_z c._n 19_o n._n 14_o &_o l._n 4._o c._n 10._o and_o how_o injurious_a to_o prince_n yea_o and_o to_o god_n that_o appoint_v they_o who_o blush_v not_o to_o say_v and_o avouch_v that_o all_o christian_n that_o be_v caluinist_n endue_v with_o faith_n be_v so_o free_v by_o christ_n from_o all_o law_n and_o humane_a power_n that_o they_o can_v not_o bind_v they_o in_o conscience_n 18._o certes_o luther_n in_o his_o book_n of_o babylonical_a captivity_n and_o caluin_n in_o his_o institution_n make_v it_o a_o part_n of_o the_o office_n of_o a_o redeemer_n in_o christ_n to_o have_v so_o free_v we_o from_o all_o humane_a authority_n and_o law_n that_o they_o can_v not_o bind_v we_o in_o conscience_n and_o the_o anabaptist_n and_o trinitarian_n who_o a_o 155●_n at_o alba-iulia_n set_v forth_o certain_a antithesis_n of_o the_o true_a and_o false_a christ_n in_o their_o seven_o antithesis_fw-la affirm_v that_o falsus_fw-la christus_fw-la habet_fw-la in_o suâ_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la reges_fw-la principes_fw-la magistratus_fw-la gladios_fw-la at_o verus_fw-la christus_fw-la nihil_fw-la tale_n in_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la pati_fw-la potest_fw-la the_o false_a christ_n have_v in_o his_o church_n king_n prince_n magistrate_n sword_n but_o the_o true_a christ_n can_v abide_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o his_o church_n but_o this_o opinion_n may_v be_v evidentlie_o convince_v by_o that_o which_o be_v say_v for_o if_o prince_n have_v power_n from_o god_n and_o nature_n to_o rule_v they_o have_v power_n to_o make_v law_n and_o if_o they_o can_v make_v law_n they_o can_v bind_v in_o conscience_n else_o their_o law_n be_v straw_n and_o to_o little_a purpose_n especial_o when_o the_o subject_n can_v avoid_v by_o slight_a the_o penalty_n of_o the_o law_n wherefore_o saint_n paul_n command_v we_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o all_o lawful_a humane_a authority_n non_fw-la tantum_fw-la propter_fw-la iram_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la propter_fw-la conscientiam_fw-la not_o only_o for_o wrath_n but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n 13._o rom._n 13._o and_o he_o add_v that_o he_o that_o resist_v this_o power_n which_o be_v of_o god_n dei_fw-la ordinationi_fw-la resistit_fw-la qui_fw-la autem_fw-la resistunt_fw-la ipsi_fw-la sibi_fw-la damnationem_fw-la acquirunt_fw-la resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o resist_v purchase_v to_o themselves_o damnation_n which_o argue_v a_o obligation_n in_o conscience_n again_o the_o same_o apostle_n command_v titus_n to_o admonish_v christian_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o prince_n and_o potesta●es_n 3._o ad_fw-la tit._n 3._o 2._o 1._o pot._n 2._o saint_n peter_n command_v they_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o every_o humane_a creature_n for_o god_n whether_o it_o be_v king_n as_o excel_v &c._n &c._n and_o he_o give_v the_o reason_n say_v for_o so_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n by_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o we_o be_v bind_v under_o sin_n &_o under_o god_n his_o displeasure_n to_o honour_n and_o obey_v king_n and_o prince_n and_o consequent_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n 19_o let_v not_o then_o our_o reformer_n traduce_v catholic_n as_o enemy_n to_o princely_a authority_n and_o idolator_n of_o the_o pope_n power_n for_o we_o acknowledge_v and_o reverence_v they_o both_o high_o in_o their_o kind_n but_o let_v the_o reformer_n look_v to_o themselves_o plautus_n plautus_n because_o qui_fw-la alterum_fw-la incusat_fw-la probri_fw-la ipsum_fw-la se_fw-la intueri_fw-la oportet_fw-la he_o that_o accuse_v another_o must_v look_v that_o he_o himself_o be_v free_a 12._o joseph_n l._n 18._o ant._n c._n 2._o aug._n l._n 3._o côt_fw-fr cros_n c._n 15._o exira_n de_fw-fr haeret_fw-la c._n 4_o anton._n 4._o p._n tit_n 11._o ca._n 7._o §_o 9_o luth._o l._n de_fw-la saecul_fw-la pete_a trinita_n aij_fw-la supra_fw-la buchan_n li._n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la regni_fw-la goodman_n l._n de_fw-fr obedien_fw-mi pag._n 203._o beza_n ep_v 78._o ad_fw-la buchanan_n luth._o supra_fw-la caluin_n l._n 4._o inst_z c._n 19_o §._o 14._o exod._n 12._o we_o catholic_n say_v not_o with_o judas_n galilaeus_fw-la that_o no_o prince_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v nor_o with_o cresconius_n that_o the_o magistrate_n ought_v not_o to_o punish_v nor_o with_o the_o beguard_n that_o the_o perfect_a be_v not_o bind_v to_o obey_v law_n nor_o with_o wickleph_n that_o the_o prince_n by_o mortal_a sin_n lose_v his_o authority_n nor_o with_o luther_n that_o the_o turk_n be_v decies_fw-la probior_fw-la prudentiorque_fw-la nostris_fw-la principibus_fw-la ten_o time_n honest_a and_o wise_a than_o our_o prince_n nor_o with_o the_o aforesaid_a trinitarian_n anabaptist_n and_o libertine_n that_o the_o true_a christ_n suffer_v no_o prince_n nor_o magistrate_n in_o his_o church_n nor_o with_o buchanan_n that_o the_o people_n only_o be_v to_o make_v law_n reges_fw-la sunt_fw-la veluti_fw-la tabulaeriorum_n custodes_fw-la nor_o with_o goodman_n that_o woman_n can_v reign_v and_o that_o therefore_o wyatt_n rise_v against_o queen_n marie_n be_v no_o traitor_n nor_o with_o beza_n do_v we_o call_v that_o lawful_a and_o worthy_a queen_n marie_n the_o mother_n of_o our_o sovereign_a king_n james_n medea_n and_o athalia_fw-la as_o though_o as_o he_o say_v nullum_fw-la illius_fw-la sceleribus_fw-la nomen_fw-la idoneum_fw-la inveniri_fw-la posset_n no_o name_n answerable_a to_o her_o wickedness_n can_v be_v find_v out_o nor_o with_o luther_n and_o caluin_n that_o prince_n law_n bind_v not_o the_o faithful_a in_o conscience_n but_o we_o say_v and_o believe_v with_o scripture_n thou_o shall_v not_o detract_v from_o the_o god_n that_o be_v prince_n who_o be_v call_v god_n by_o participation_n nor_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o prince_n of_o thy_o people_n 22._o prou._n 8._o mat._n 22._o we_o confess_v that_o by_o god_n prince_n reign_v we_o command_v to_o give_v to_o caesar_n what_o be_v due_a to_o caesar_n we_o allow_v of_o s._n ignatius_n counsel_n caesari_n subiecti_fw-la estote_fw-la in_o ijs_fw-la antioch_n ign._n epi._n ad_fw-la antioch_n in_fw-la quibus_fw-la nullum_fw-la animae_fw-la periculum_fw-la be_v you_o subject_n to_o caesar_n in_o those_o thing_n in_o which_o be_v no_o danger_n of_o the_o soul_n we_o be_v teach_v to_o give_v to_o magistrate_n as_o s._n 14_o eus_n l._n 4._o hist_o c._n 14_o policarp_n say_v and_o potestates_fw-la appoint_v by_o god_n that_o honour_n which_o be_v not_o prejudicial_a to_o our_o soul_n or_o religion_n we_o worship_v as_o tertullian_n say_v the_o emperor_n 2._o lib._n adversus_fw-la scap._n cap._n 2._o the_o king_n sic_fw-la quomodo_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la licet_fw-la &_o ipsi_fw-la expedit_fw-la ut_fw-la hominem_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la secundum_fw-la &_o solo_fw-la deo_fw-la minorem_fw-la so_o as_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o and_o expedient_a for_o he_o as_o a_o man_n second_o in_o temporal_a authority_n to_o god_n and_o only_o lesser_a than_o god_n for_o whilst_o the_o king_n keep_v within_o his_o bound_n he_o have_v no_o superior_a in_o temporal_a matter_n but_o god_n and_o this_o be_v the_o honourable_a conceit_n which_o catholic_n have_v of_o their_o king_n and_o prince_n chapter_n iii_o ecclesiastical_a power_n be_v of_o god_n and_o distinct_a from_o the_o civil_a jurisdiction_n which_o also_o all_o member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o obey_v 1._o have_v give_v to_o caesar_n and_o the_o kingdom_n what_o be_v due_a to_o they_o it_o follow_v that_o i_o give_v to_o christ_n and_o his_o vicaire_n yea_o and_o church_n also_o what_o belong_v to_o they_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n that_o civil_a power_n be_v of_o god_n and_o nature_n because_o it_o be_v necessary_o annex_v to_o all_o lawful_a society_n to_o which_o god_n and_o nature_n do_v incline_v
with_o his_o own_o blood_n but_o neither_o he_o nor_o any_o apostle_n ever_o give_v that_o charge_n to_o prince_n fiftelie_o they_o differ_v in_o the_o cause_n efficient_a for_o the_o civil_a and_o temporal_a power_n proceed_v from_o god_n and_o nature_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o people_n election_n as_o be_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n declare_v but_o the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o church_n as_o it_o impli_v potestatem_fw-la ordinis_fw-la &_o jurisdictionis_fw-la in_o foro_fw-la interiori_fw-la be_v from_o god_n immediate_o it_o be_v supernatural_a and_o exceed_v humane_a power_n and_o although_o the_o ecclesiastical_a humane_a power_n which_o inferior_a prelate_n have_v proceed_v from_o superior_a prelate_n especial_o the_o pope_n yet_o not_o from_o the_o prince_n or_o common_a wealth_n but_o from_o the_o pastor_n and_o church_n so_o that_o as_o the_o pope_n priest_n and_o church_n do_v willing_o acknowledge_v the_o temporal_a and_o civil_a power_n of_o the_o prince_n magistrate_n and_o common_a wealth_n or_o kingdom_n so_o the_o prince_n magistrate_n and_o common_a wealth_n must_v be_v content_a to_o recognize_v a_o spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n bishop_n priest_n and_o church_n to_o which_o obedience_n be_v due_a even_o of_o prince_n who_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o church_n no_o less_o than_o be_v temporal_a subject_n to_o the_o prince_n yea_o rather_o more_o 7._o this_o power_n all_o true_a christian_n and_o catholic_n acknowledge_v none_o but_o heretic_n and_o infidel_n deny_v the_o waldense_n 7._o guido_n carmel_n in_o har_z wald_n turrecr_n l._n 4._o summa_fw-la de_fw-la eccl_n c._n 35._o conc_fw-fr const_n sess_v 8._o et_fw-la 15._o a._n 14_o luth._o a._n 27._o dan_o in_o bulla_n leon._n 10_o cal_n l._n 4._o inst_z ca._n 20_o n._n 6._o &_o 7._o as_o witness_v guido_n and_o turrecremata_fw-la as_o also_o wicleph_n and_o hus_n as_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n relate_v deny_v all_o ecclesiastical_a power_n and_o say_v that_o pope_n and_o bishop_n decree_n and_o canon_n do_v not_o bind_v any_o the_o same_o be_v luther_n opinion_n caluin_n affirm_v that_o neither_o the_o pope_n nor_o his_o mitre_a caluin_n say_v horn_v bishop_n can_v bind_v man_n conscience_n by_o their_o decree_n and_o ordinance_n and_o that_o for_o two_o cause_n first_o because_o they_o be_v no_o true_a bishop_n which_o yet_o neither_o he_o nor_o all_o his_o sect_n can_v ever_o prove_v secondlie_o because_o though_o they_o be_v true_a bishop_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o legislatour_n or_o lawmaker_n that_o title_n agree_v only_o to_o christ_n only_o he_o and_o his_o grant_n that_o they_o may_v inculcate_v god_n law_n but_o make_v no_o new_a 8._o well_o it_o be_v know_v that_o be_v be_v always_o the_o manner_n of_o heretic_n to_o contemn_v all_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n because_o it_o condemn_v they_o but_o as_o i_o have_v allege_v proof_n in_o the_o former_a chapter_n for_o civil_a power_n of_o prince_n so_o can_v i_o not_o want_v argument_n for_o the_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n when_o christ_n promise_v peter_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o foundation_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n he_o promise_v this_o power_n in_o and_o over_o the_o church_n 16._o mat._n 16._o for_o if_o peter_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n he_o can_v rule_v the_o mystical_a body_n and_o if_o he_o can_v rule_v the_o same_o then_o can_v he_o also_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n for_o that_o be_v belong_v to_o a_o superior_a of_o every_o great_a and_o perfect_a community_n as_o be_v before_o show_v secondlie_o christ_n give_v this_o power_n to_o peter_n when_o after_o his_o resurrection_n he_o say_v pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la feed_v my_o sheep_n 21._o joan._n 21._o for_o the_o office_n of_o a_o pastor_n may_v be_v gather_v by_o the_o office_n of_o a_o shepherd_n who_o be_v to_o govern_v his_o sheep_n to_o feed_v they_o and_o to_o defend_v they_o from_o the_o wolf_n and_o so_o a_o spiritual_a shepherd_n and_o pastor_n must_v have_v authority_n to_o rule_v by_o law_n to_o feed_v by_o preach_v and_o sacrament_n and_o to_o defend_v by_o censure_n and_o his_o pastoral_a staff_n and_o coercive_v power_n 4._o eph._n 4._o whereupon_o saint_n paul_n say_v that_o christ_n have_v give_v to_o his_o church_n not_o only_a doctor_n and_o prophet_n to_o teach_v but_o also_o pastor_n to_o feed_v and_o govern_v and_o see_v that_o the_o church_n have_v as_o much_o need_n now_o of_o a_o supreme_a visible_a pastor_n and_o rather_o more_o then_o at_o the_o begin_v it_o follow_v that_o peter_n have_v a_o successor_n who_o have_v the_o like_a authority_n and_o see_v that_o all_o father_n all_o council_n all_o history_n all_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n possession_n and_o prescription_n for_o 1600._o year_n stand_v for_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v this_o successor_n and_o he_o it_o be_v that_o have_v the_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a and_o spiritual_a power_n after_o christ_n thirdlie_o 18._o mat._n 18._o christ_n command_v to_o obey_v the_o church_n and_o say_v that_o he_o that_o will_v not_o give_v ear_n to_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v account_v as_o a_o ethnic_a and_o publican_n which_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o the_o church_n have_v authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n to_o hear_v cause_n and_o to_o pronounce_v sentence_n to_o which_o obedience_n be_v to_o be_v give_v fourthlie_o not_o withstand_v that_o in_o the_o old_a law_n of_o moses_n god_n determine_v almost_o all_o by_o himself_o by_o his_o moral_n judicial_a and_o ceremonial_a law_n yet_o he_o give_v power_n to_o the_o synagogue_n and_o her_o pastor_n to_o interpret_v the_o law_n to_o resolve_v doubt_n concern_v the_o law_n and_o to_o enact_v some_o law_n as_o occasion_n be_v offer_v and_o therefore_o we_o see_v with_o what_o severity_n god_n command_v obedience_n to_o the_o priest_n say_v 17_o deut._n 17_o si_fw-mi difficile_fw-la &_o ●mbiguum_fw-la &c._n &c._n if_o thou_o perceive_v that_o the_o judgement_n with_o thou_o be_v hard_a and_o doubtful_a between_o blood_n and_o blood_n cause_n and_o cause_n leprosy_n and_o leprosy_n and_o thou_o ●●e_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o judge_n within_o thy_o gate_n do_v ●arie_a arise_v and_o ge_fw-mi up_o to_o the_o place_n which_o our_o lord_n thy_o god_n shall_v choose_v and_o thou_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o leviticall_a stock_n and_o to_o the_o judge_n that_o shall_v be_v at_o that_o time_n and_o thou_o shall_v ask_v of_o they_o who_o shall_v thew_v thou_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o judgement_n and_o thou_o shall_v do_v what_o soever_o they_o that_o be_v precedent_n of_o the_o place_n which_o our_o lord_n shall_v choose_v shall_v say_v and_o teach_v thou_o according_a to_o his_o law_n and_o thou_o shall_v follow_v the_o sentence_n etc._n etc._n and_o he_o that_o shall_v be_v prove_v refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o priest_n which_o at_o that_o time_n minister_v to_o our_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o judge_n that_o man_n shall_v die_v and_o thou_o shall_v take_v away_o the_o evil_a out_o of_o israel_n and_o the_o whole_a people_n shall_v fear_v that_o none_o asterward_o swell_v with_o pride_n by_o which_o we_o see_v that_o the_o high_a priest_n have_v power_n not_o only_o directive_a but_o also_o coercive_v under_o pain_n of_o death_n and_o we_o read_v how_o the_o victory_n of_o judith_n over_o holofernes_n be_v celebrate_v by_o the_o jew_n with_o commandment_n of_o a_o holy_a day_n ult._n judith_n ult._n which_o law_n be_v mere_o ecclesiastical_a make_v by_o the_o priest_n and_o be_v not_o command_v by_o god_n his_o law_n the_o like_a festival_n day_n be_v decree_v by_o mardocheus_n and_o receive_v by_o the_o jew_n in_o memory_n of_o their_o delivery_n from_o amans_fw-la tyranny_n by_o mean_n of_o hester_n 9_o hester_n 9_o which_o also_o be_v no_o divine_a but_o a_o humane_a and_o ecclesiastical_a law_n likewise_o the_o maccabee_n institute_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o dedication_n 10._o 1._o mach._n 4._o joan._n 10._o which_o christ_n afterward_o observe_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v not_o command_v by_o god_n his_o law_n again_o christ_n command_v to_o do_v that_o which_o they_o who_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n do_v say_v 23._o mat._n 23._o but_o not_o always_o what_o they_o do_v much_o more_o will_v he_o have_v we_o to_o do_v that_o 15._o lib._n 4._o inst_z cap._n 20._o n._n 21._o act._n 15._o which_o they_o who_o sit_v in_o saint_n peter_n yea_o christ_n seat_n do_v command_n and_o we_o read_v in_o the_o act_n which_o caluin_n well_o see_v but_o gloss_v untowardlie_a how_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o first_o council_n make_v a_o new_a law_n by_o which_o they_o command_v the_o convert_v gentile_n to_o abstain_v from_o eat_v of_o blood_n and_o thing_n strangle_v which_o be_v now_o the_o old_a law_n be_v abrogate_a thing_n
to_o the_o cause_n but_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n as_o be_v manifest_a out_o of_o the_o allege_v place_n of_o scripture_n have_v authority_n to_o govern_v and_o rule_v the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o member_n and_o subject_n thereof_o ergo_fw-la they_o have_v authority_n to_o do_v all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_o belong_v thereunto_o but_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v all_o power_n belong_v thereunto_o unless_o they_o have_v a_o power_n legislative_a and_o not_o only_o directive_a but_o also_o coercive_v at_o least_o by_o spiritual_a pain_n over_o christian_n and_o the_o lay_v power_n and_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n ergo_fw-la their_o spiritual_a power_n be_v not_o only_o above_o the_o temporal_a in_o dignity_n but_o also_o in_o authority_n and_o power_n of_o command_v else_o they_o have_v not_o sufficient_a power_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n which_o be_v commit_v unto_o they_o 14._o but_o because_o this_o verity_n will_v appear_v more_o by_o that_o which_o i_o shall_v allege_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v spiritual_a authority_n over_o king_n and_o emperor_n i_o will_v here_o make_v a_o end_n desire_v all_o wordlinge_n and_o politike_n who_o so_o inculcare_fw-la obedience_n to_o prince_n and_o secular_a power_n not_o to_o forget_v their_o duty_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o church_n and_o her_o pastor_n who_o have_v authority_n as_o well_o as_o prince_n and_o great_a than_o they_o and_o to_o think_v also_o with_o themselves_o that_o he_o that_o will_v not_o obey_v the_o church_n 18._o mat._n 18._o be_v to_o be_v hold_v as_o a_o ethnic_a and_o publican_n and_o that_o 17_o deut._n 17_o if_o he_o that_o stubborn_o refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o high_a priest_n in_o the_o old_a law_n be_v to_o die_v for_o such_o disobedience_n what_o punishment_n remain_v for_o they_o who_o contemn_v church_n and_o pope_n which_o yet_o be_v in_o dignity_n and_o power_n as_o far_o above_o the_o synagogue_n and_o her_o priest_n and_o bishop_n as_o the_o verity_n surpass_v the_o figure_n the_o body_n the_o shadow_n the_o gift_n the_o promise_n christ_n moses_n christ_n preisthood_n that_o of_o aaron_n christ_n facrifice_n and_o sacrament_n those_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o synagogue_n chapter_n v._n ecclesiastical_a and_o temporal_a peer_n and_o prince_n be_v compare_v together_o and_o out_o of_o the_o comparison_n be_v gather_v that_o not_o only_o private_a layman_n but_o even_o temporal_a prince_n though_o otherwise_o absolute_a be_v subject_a to_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o especial_o to_o the_o supreme_a visible_a pastor_n as_o be_v prove_v by_o many_o argument_n 1._o i_o intend_v not_o by_o this_o comparison_n to_o detract_v the_o least_o from_o king_n and_o prince_n 81._o nazianz_n orat_fw-la 17._o ad_fw-la cive_v timore_fw-la perculsos_fw-la psal_n 81._o for_o i_o acknowledge_v their_o authority_n to_o be_v of_o god_n themselves_o the_o image_n and_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o that_o ego_fw-la dixi_fw-la dij_fw-la estis_fw-la &_o silij_fw-la excelsi_fw-la omnes_fw-la i_o say_v you_o be_v god_n and_o the_o son_n of_o the_o high_a all_o i_o will_v not_o let_v to_o give_v they_o in_o a_o good_a sense_n those_o high_a title_n with_o which_o the_o roman_n and_o grecian_n style_v they_o who_o call_v they_o filios_fw-la deorum_fw-la deos_fw-la terrae_fw-la joves_n mundi_fw-la the_o son_n of_o god_n god_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o jupiters_n of_o the_o world_n for_o as_o god_n be_v the_o supreme_a monarch_n of_o the_o world_n so_o be_v they_o of_o their_o kingdom_n in_o the_o government_n whereof_o they_o imitate_v the_o monarchical_a government_n of_o the_o world_n i_o grant_v that_o a_o king_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o laitye_n be_v as_o the_o eye_n and_o head_n in_o the_o body_n as_o she_o sun_n among_o the_o planet_n as_o the_o cedar_n among_o tree_n as_o gold_n among_o metal_n as_o fire_n among_o the_o element_n as_o the_o sea_n among_o water_n i_o will_v willing_o acknowledge_v he_o the_o second_o person_n after_o god_n and_o only_o lesser_a than_o god_n in_o temporal_a authority_n 2._o tertul._n l._n adversus_fw-la scap._n c._n 2._o 2._o but_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o one_o of_o king_n lest_o honour_n to_o acknowledge_v then selue_o son_n of_o the_o church_n auxentium_n ambros_n orat_fw-la in_o auxentium_n as_o s._n ambrose_n tell_v valentinian_n the_o euiperour_n and_o therefore_o as_o priest_n be_v content_a to_o give_v to_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n that_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o they_o so_o prince_n must_v not_o disdain_v to_o give_v to_o priess_n their_o due_a respect_n and_o right_n prince_n i_o grant_v be_v call_v god_n by_o participation_n and_o the_o anoint_a of_o god_n so_o be_v priest_n and_o in_o this_o kind_n great_a god_n than_o they_o because_o they_o approach_v near_o unto_o the_o true_a god_n and_o only_a god_n by_o essence_n who_o therefore_o be_v call_v deus_fw-la deorum_fw-la 135._o psal_n 49._o &_o 135._o god_n of_o god_n and_o their_o consecration_n and_o anoint_v be_v a_o sacrament_n be_v far_o holy_a than_o that_o of_o king_n for_o which_o cause_n constantin_n call_v the_o bishope_n of_o nice_a his_o god_n 2._o ruf._n l._n 1._o cap._n 2._o and_o will_v not_o be_v judge_n of_o they_o to_o who_o judgement_n he_o be_v to_o stand_v and_o as_o prince_n be_v king_n so_o be_v priest_n and_o by_o so_o much_o great_a king_n than_o they_o by_o how_o much_o it_o be_v more_o to_o be_v a_o king_n of_o soul_n than_o body_n wherefore_o the_o scripture_n allege_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n which_o give_v to_o the_o spiritual_a power_n a_o superiority_n and_o authority_n over_o the_o temporal_a do_v prove_v also_o that_o bishop_n and_o especiallig_v the_o high_a and_o chief_a pastor_n be_v even_o king_n pastor_n 21_o joan._n 21_o and_o superior_n for_o when_o christ_n bid_v peter_n feed_v his_o sheep_n he_o make_v he_o pastor_n over_o all_o christian_n and_o so_o the_o king_n if_o he_o will_v be_v a_o sheep_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v a_o sheep_n of_o peter_n and_o consequent_o of_o the_o pope_n his_o successor_n 18._o mat._n 18._o and_o must_v acknouwledge_v he_o his_o pastor_n and_o when_o christ_n say_v dic_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la etc._n etc._n tell_v the_o church_n and_o if_o he_o will_v not_o bear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v unto_o thou_o be_v a_o ethnic_a and_o publican_n do_v he_o exempt_a prince_n from_o the_o church_n tribunal_n and_o when_o he_o say_v what_o soever_o you_o shall_v bind_v upon_o earth_n ult._n mat._n ult._n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n be_v prince_n except_v no_o no._n if_o prince_n will_v be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n they_o must_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o visible_a head_n thereof_o if_o they_o will_v be_v sheep_n of_o christ_n they_o must_v acknowledge_v peter_z and_o the_o pope_n his_o successor_n for_o their_o pastor_n 3._o neither_o can_v their_o temporal_a soveraintie_n exempt_v they_o for_o that_o only_o make_v they_o so_o absolute_a that_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o no_o temporal_a power_n yet_o remain_v they_o notwithstanding_o subject_n to_o the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o subject_a as_o the_o low_a christian_n and_o have_v no_o more_o command_n over_o the_o church_n than_o the_o mean_a of_o the_o people_n true_a it_o be_v that_o they_o be_v defendour_n or_o aught_o so_o to_o be_v and_o protector_n of_o the_o church_n pastor_n and_o superior_n they_o be_v not_o but_o sheep_n and_o inferior_n and_o therefore_o after_o that_o the_o prophet_n esaye_n have_v say_v erunt_fw-la reges_fw-la nutritij_fw-la tui_fw-la etc._n etc._n 49._o esai_n 49._o king_n shall_v be_v thy_o nource_a father_n to_o show_v that_o this_o import_v no_o superiority_n over_o the_o church_n he_o add_v with_o countenance_n cast_v down_o towards_o the_o ground_n they_o shall_v adore_v thou_o the_o church_n and_o they_o shall_v lick_v up_o the_o dust_n of_o thy_o foot_n 4._o and_o this_o i_o prove_v first_o by_o reason_n ground_v in_o faith_n and_o divinity_n for_o the_o king_n by_o baptism_n be_v make_v as_o true_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o mean_a christian_n and_o be_v incorporate_v as_o deep_o by_o the_o character_n of_o baptism_n as_o any_o he_o be_v regenerate_v and_o bear_v again_o as_o much_o as_o any_o else_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o good_a a_o christian_a as_o other_o and_o see_v that_o by_o this_o incorporation_n and_o nativity_n as_o be_v before_o declare_v the_o pastor_n especial_o the_o chief_a pastor_n who_o be_v head_n of_o this_o body_n have_v power_n over_o all_o christian_n it_o follow_v that_o he_o have_v also_o power_n over_o king_n and_o so_o as_o the_o king_n can_v punish_v rebel_n &_o malefactor_n &_o cast_v they_o out_o of_o the_o realm_n by_o banishement_n so_o may_v the_o chief_a pastor_n punish_v a_o rebellious_a king_n
appertain_v to_o military_a affair_n and_o so_o from_o the_o first_o establish_v of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n the_o temple_n and_o synagogue_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n the_o sceptre_n and_o regal_a authority_n be_v give_v to_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n in_o like_a sort_n in_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n when_o the_o church_n come_v to_o her_o great_a perfection_n christ_n appoint_v particular_o apostle_n doctor_n 4._o ephes_n 4._o and_o pastor_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n and_o confirm_v prince_n in_o their_o temporal_a authority_n command_v that_o obedience_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o pastor_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n and_o to_o the_o prince_n in_o temporal_a 13_o mat._n 22_o rom._n 13_o 2._o wherefore_o least_o in_o give_v one_o of_o these_o potentate_n too_o much_o 22_o mat._n 22_o i_o may_v do_v iniutie_n to_o the_o other_o i_o must_v follow_v our_o saviour_n commandment_n and_o so_o give_v to_o cesar_n that_o which_o belong_v to_o he_o that_o i_o take_v not_o from_o god_n and_o his_o church_n what_o appertain_v to_o they_o and_o although_o in_o give_v both_o but_o their_o due_n i_o may_v perchance_o displease_v one_o yet_o if_o i_o may_v have_v that_o indifferent_a audience_n which_o the_o gravity_n and_o equity_n of_o the_o cause_n require_v i_o hope_v to_o offend_v neither_o and_o how_o soevet_n it_o happen_v i_o have_v rather_o displease_v then_o do_v wrong_n or_o injury_n and_o whereas_o in_o our_o island_n by_o the_o sway_n of_o authority_n and_o terror_n of_o law_n it_o have_v be_v make_v high_a treason_n to_o deny_v the_o prince_n authority_n in_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a i_o protest_v that_o what_o i_o shall_v say_v in_o this_o matter_n proceed_v not_o from_o any_o disloyal_a mind_n towards_o my_o prince_n true_a authority_n nor_o from_o any_o itch_a desire_n i_o have_v to_o lay_v open_a the_o disgrace_n of_o my_o country_n which_o i_o will_v rather_o cover_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a with_o my_o own_o life_n and_o blood_n and_o to_o discharge_v myself_o from_o all_o just_a imputation_n of_o treason_n i_o desire_v to_o have_v the_o leave_n to_o plead_v this_o only_o for_o my_o defence_n that_o if_o this_o be_v treason_n in_o i_o not_o only_o all_o catholic_n priest_n doctor_n and_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o all_o the_o ancient_a subject_n not_o only_o of_o england_n but_o of_o all_o other_o christian_a country_n must_v incur_v the_o same_o imputation_n with_o i_o because_o there_o be_v never_o christian_n before_o our_o english_a protestant_n that_o give_v ecclesiastical_a power_n to_o prince_n and_o there_o be_v never_o king_n of_o england_n or_o of_o any_o other_o country_n what_o soever_o that_o ever_o be_v so_o hardy_a as_o to_o challenge_v such_o authority_n before_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o which_o his_o challenge_n seem_v so_o preposterous_a and_o monstrous_a that_o all_o the_o world_n stand_v and_o to_o this_o day_n stand_v amaze_v at_o it_o and_o even_o our_o puritan_n at_o home_n and_o all_o the_o new_a sect_n abroad_o do_v abhor_v and_o dear_a it_o and_o i_o in_o this_o chapter_n shall_v bring_v such_o argument_n against_o it_o that_o i_o hope_v that_o even_o our_o english_a protestant_n who_o hitherto_o have_v adore_v it_o will_v be_v ashamed_a hence_o forth_o to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o so_o monstrous_a authority_n 3._o my_o first_o argument_n shall_v be_v draw_v from_o scripture_n themselves_o for_o if_o the_o king_n have_v any_o such_o authority_n than_o no_o doubt_n scripture_n which_o ●s_v above_o we_o have_v see_v so_o often_o inculcate_v prince_n authority_n in_o matter_n temporal_a will_v never_o have_v keep_v silent_a this_o ecclesiastical_a power_n if_o they_o have_v have_v any_o such_o this_o be_v the_o great_a and_o more_o eminent_a but_o scripture_n never_o give_v prince_n this_o authority_n never_o command_v christian_n to_o obey_v they_o in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n but_o rather_o give_v that_o authority_n to_o apostle_n bishop_n and_o pastor_n and_o command_v obedience_n in_o this_o kind_n to_o they_o not_o to_o prince_n ergo_fw-la princess_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o command_v in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n the_o minor_a proposition_n in_o which_o only_o consist_v the_o difficulty_n i_o prove_v out_o of_o those_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o above_o i_o have_v allege_v and_o here_o will_v bring_v in_o again_o yet_o to_o another_o purpose_n for_o to_o s._n peter_n no_o temporal_a prince_n but_o a_o apostle_n and_o pastor_n be_v promise_v the_o headship_n of_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o the_o soveraintie_n and_o supreme_a power_n of_o the_o church_n tue_fw-la petrus_n &_o super_fw-la have_v petram_fw-la aedificabo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la meam_fw-la ●6_n mat._n ●6_n the_o hebrew_n have_v thou_o be_v a_o rock_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o see_v that_o to_o peter_z it_o be_v say_v thou_o be_v a_o rock_n to_o he_o also_o and_o not_o to_o christ_n the_o chief_a and_o independent_a rock_n nor_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n as_o our_o adversary_n will_v have_v it_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v say_v and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n because_o the_o relative_n this_o have_v relation_n to_o he_o that_o be_v speak_v of_o immediate_o before_o which_o be_v only_a peter_n not_o christ_n nor_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o the_o rock_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o head_n be_v all_o one_o it_o follow_v that_o peter_n and_o consequent_o the_o pope_n his_o successor_n for_o the_o church_n after_o peter_n time_n have_v as_o much_o need_n or_o rather_o more_o of_o a_o head_n and_o pastor_n as_o in_o peter_n time_n and_o none_o ever_o practise_v authority_n over_o all_o the_o church_n but_o the_o pope_n as_o all_o counsel_n and_o history_n do_v witness_n be_v the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o not_o every_o king_n no_o not_o any_o king_n in_o his_o kingdom_n apostle_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n only_o christ_n give_v to_o govern_v his_o church_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v not_o prince_n 18_o ephes_n 4._o mat._n 18_o to_o apostle_n it_o be_v say_v what_o soever_o you_o shall_v bind_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v also_o in_o heaven_n and_o what_o soeev_a you_o shall_v loose_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v also_o loose_v in_o heaven_n 20_o joan._n 20_o never_o to_o prince_n to_o apostle_n it_o be_v say_v who_o sin_n you_o shall_v forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v they_o and_o who_o you_o shall_v retain_v they_o be_v retain_v never_o to_o prince_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n it_o be_v say_v 13._o neb._n 13._o obey_v your_o prelate_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o for_o they_o watch_v as_o be_v to_o render_v account_n for_o your_o soul_n of_o prince_n never_o rather_o they_o by_o these_o word_n be_v command_v also_o to_o obey_v 20._o act._n 20._o to_z bishop_n it_o be_v say_v take_v heed●_n to_o yourselves_o and_o the_o whole_a flock_n wherein_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v place_v you_o bishop_n to_o rule_v the_o church_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n to_o prince_n never_o to_o a_o bishop_n it_o be_v say_v 1._o tit._n 1._o for_o this_o cause_n i_o leave_v thou_o in_o crete_n that_o thou_o thould_v reform_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v want_v and_o thould_v order_v priest_n by_o city_n as_o i_o also_o appoint_v thou_o to_o prince_n never_o 4._o i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o prince_n be_v to_o assist_v the_o church_n by_o sword_n sceptre_n and_o power_n and_o to_o punish_v at_o the_o church_n direction_n not_o only_o thief_n and_o murderer_n but_o also_o heretic_n as_o constantine_n and_o other_o emperor_n do_v i_o grant_v that_o they_o be_v nource_v father_n 49._o isay_n 49._o but_o no_o superior_n to_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o if_o we_o read_v over_o both_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n we_o shall_v never_o find_v that_o any_o king_n as_o king_n meddle_v in_o the_o government_n of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o matter_n 5._o bilson_n when_o he_o be_v wardon_n of_o winchester_n write_v a_o book_n call_v the_o true_a difference_n betwixt_o christian_a subjection_n and_o unchristian_a rebellion_n in_o which_o he_o strive_v but_o in_o vain_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o prince_n have_v supreme_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o prove_v this_o he_o cit_v nabuchodonosor_n darius_n 191_o par._n 2._o pag._n 191_o the_o king_n of_o ninive_n moses_n josue_n david_n solomon_n asa_n josaphat_n ezechias_n manasses_n josias_n and_o nehemias_n as_o though_o they_o have_v govern_v the_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n of_o the_o synagogue_n 363._o in_o tortura_fw-la torti_n pa._n 363._o so_o do_v also_o d._n andrew_n but_o if_o i_o shall_v grant_v they_o that_o all_o these_o be_v by_o god_n appoint_v ruler_n of_o
other_o title_n to_o be_v quite_o exempt_a from_o he_o and_o subject_a to_o none_o in_o temporal_a matter_n and_o see_v that_o this_o supremacy_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n either_o be_v not_o distinguish_v from_o their_o regal_a authority_n or_o be_v necessary_o annex_v unto_o it_o as_o they_o refuse_v to_o be_v subject_a in_o temporal_a matter_n so_o may_v they_o in_o ecclesiastical_a the_o king_n of_o england_n why_o he_o rather_o than_o the_o king_n of_o france_n the_o king_n of_o france_n why_o he_o rather_o than_o any_o of_o the_o other_o yea_o if_o these_o king_n pretend_v not_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o emperor_n much_o more_o may_v they_o claim_v exemption_n from_o one_o anotherr_n 9_o if_o any_o answer_n that_o by_o common_a consent_n they_o may_v either_o choose_v one_o to_o call_v the_o rest_n or_o be_v all_o equal_a they_o may_v meet_v altogether_o in_o one_o neither_o will_v this_o serve_v for_o as_o for_o the_o first_o mean_n it_o be_v moral_o impossible_a because_o king_n who_o have_v high_a aspire_a mind_n will_v never_o be_v draw_v to_o subject_v themselves_o to_o any_o and_o so_o whilst_o every_o one_o will_v be_v chief_a none_o shall_v be_v chief_a the_o second_o mean_n be_v as_o impossible_a for_o first_o where_o shall_v they_o meet_v certes_o no_o king_n will_v easy_o leave_v his_o kingdom_n and_o so_o every_o one_o will_v be_v desirous_a to_o have_v the_o council_n in_o his_o country_n yea_o every_o one_o will_v refuse_v to_o have_v such_o a_o meeting_n in_o his_o kingdom_n for_o fear_n of_o danger_n but_o suppose_v they_o meet_v when_o they_o be_v meet_v how_o shall_v they_o agree_v especial_o they_o be_v common_o of_o diverse_a religion_n for_o if_o a_o king_n in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o king_n be_v to_o judge_v in_o matter_n of_o the_o church_n every_o king_n have_v right_a to_o be_v of_o this_o council_n and_o so_o the_o turk_n the_o persian_a the_o muscovite_n shall_v have_v place_n in_o this_o council_n if_o you_o say_v that_o not_o every_o king_n but_o only_o christian_a king_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o kingdom_n then_o at_o least_o catholic_n lutheran_n and_o caluinian_a king_n must_v be_v of_o the_o council_n and_o how_o shall_v these_o agree_v who_o shall_v moderate_a see_v there_o be_v no_o more_o reason_n of_o one_o than_o another_o if_o you_o say_v that_o bishop_n must_v be_v the_o man_n that_o must_v make_v decree_n and_o canon_n and_o conclude_v all_o in_o this_o council_n this_o they_o can_v do_v without_o king_n if_o every_o king_n be_v supreme_a head_n in_o their_o country_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v enact_v accord_o in_o the_o parliament_n hold_v by_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o in_o the_o twenty_o sixth_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v repute_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o shall_v have_v all_o the_o honour_n authority_n and_o commodity_n belong_v there_o unto_o among_o which_o honour_n the_o principal_a and_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_o annex_v unto_o the_o headship_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o call_v counsel_n and_o to_o sit_v as_o chief_a judge_n in_o they_o angl._n see_v poulton_n ●n_v his_o abridgement_n of_o the_o statute_n saunder_n de_fw-fr schis_n angl._n and_o queen_n elizabeth_n have_v also_o grant_v unto_o she_o by_o a_o parliament_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o her_o reign_n all_o power_n for_o the_o correction_n and_o reformation_n of_o the_o clergy_n for_o the_o judgement_n and_o punishment_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n for_o nominate_v of_o bishop_n and_o for_o call_v of_o synod_n and_o that_o with_o such_o ample_a authority_n that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v decree_v in_o any_o synod_n with_o in_o the_o realm_n without_o express_a licence_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o queen_n and_o if_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o council_n agree_v not_o as_o i_o see_v not_o how_o they_o can_v if_o there_o be_v no_o one_o among_o they_o that_o can_v command_v who_o shall_v be_v the_o man_n that_o shall_v take_v up_o the_o matter_n among_o they_o if_o you_o say_v the_o king_n i_o demand_v who_o shall_v bear_v the_o sway_n among_o they_o and_o so_o to_o make_v king_n head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o kingdom_n be_v to_o hinder_v all_o general_n counsel_n which_o yet_o heretofore_o have_v be_v so_o oft_o assemble_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o great_a profit_n peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n 10._o fourthlie_o if_o prince_n in_o that_o they_o be_v prince_n or_o christian_a prince_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o realm_n than_o child_n may_v be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o and_o woman_n also_o for_o they_o be_v capable_a of_o regal_a authority_n whereas_o not_o withstand_v the_o wiseman_n pronounce_v a_o vae_fw-la &_o curse_v to_o the_o land_n who_o king_n be_v a_o child_n 10._o ecclesiastes_n 10._o and_o much_o more_o woe_n it_o be_v to_o a_o church_n who_o head_n be_v a_o child_n sure_o s._n paul_n 14_o 1._o cor._n 14_o that_o command_v woman_n to_o be_v silent_a in_o the_o church_n will_v never_o have_v permit_v such_o to_o govern_v the_o church_n and_o yet_o after_o king_n henry_n have_v arrogate_a this_o monstrous_a power_n in_o a_o king_n to_o make_v it_o ridiculous_a to_o the_o world_n god_n permit_v that_o next_o after_o he_o a_o child_n come_v to_o be_v king_n &_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o next_o but_o one_o after_o the_o child_n a_o woman_n succeed_v also_o in_o the_o like_a authority_n 11._o fiftlie_o to_o make_v enerie_n king_n supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o kingdom_n destroy_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n for_o whereas_o there_o be_v three_o especial_a and_o essential_a unity_n in_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n unity_n of_o head_n and_o one_o government_n unity_n of_o one_o faith_n unity_n of_o the_o same_o external_a profession_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n by_o the_o same_o rite_n and_o sacrament_n if_o we_o receive_v every_o prince_n in_o his_o realm_n for_o head_n of_o the_o church_n these_o three_o unity_n can_v not_o long_o be_v conserve_v for_o as_o for_o the_o first_o unity_n though_o our_o adversary_n will_v say_v that_o it_o may_v well_o be_v conserve_v in_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o principal_a and_o only_o principal_a and_o absolute_a head_n yet_o because_o christ_n be_v now_o ascend_v to_o his_o father_n and_o converse_v no_o more_o visible_o among_o we_o beside_o he_o the_o church_n which_o be_v a_o visible_a congregation_n and_o body_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o a_o visible_a head_n else_o shall_v she_o be_v visible_o headless_a and_o imperfect_a and_o therefore_o as_o scripture_n have_v declare_v christ_n for_o our_o sovereign_a and_o invisible_a head_n 10_o joan._n 10_o vnum_fw-la ovile_n unus_fw-la pastor_n one_o fold_n 1._o ephes_n 1._o one_o pastor_n and_o again_o ipsum_fw-la dedit_fw-la caput_fw-la supra_fw-la omnem_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la god_n the_o father_n make_v he_o head_n over_o all_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n so_o do_v scripture_n and_o christ_n himself_o in_o scripture_n point_v out_o another_o underhead_n and_o visible_a pastor_n 16._o mat._n 16._o say_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o again_o pas●e_n oves_fw-la meas_fw-la feed_v my_o sheep_n that_o be_v all_o christian_n 21_o joan._n 21_o and_o so_o peter_n be_v in_o his_o time_n and_o his_o successor_n the_o pope_n now_o be_v chief_a head_n and_o visible_a pastor_n over_o all_o christian_n and_o consequent_o over_o all_o bishop_n even_o in_o a_o general_n council_n unless_o they_o will_v deny_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ._n and_o this_o unity_n be_v necessary_a to_o conserve_v the_o other_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o eternal_a profession_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n by_o the_o same_o sacrament_n for_o diverse_a visible_a head_n will_v not_o so_o easy_o agree_v among_o themselves_o it_o be_v a_o natural_a thing_n for_o man_n in_o equal_a authority_n to_o strive_v to_o draw_v all_o to_o their_o party_n whereupon_o s._n cyprian_n say_v eccl._n cypria_n lib._n 4._o ep_n 9_o lib._n 1._o epist_n 8._o lib._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccl._n that_o the_o church_n be_v plebs_fw-la svo_fw-la sacerdoti_fw-la adunata_fw-la the_o people_n unite_v to_o their_o priest_n and_o that_o non_fw-la aliunde_fw-la natae_fw-la sunt_fw-la haereses_fw-la aut_fw-la orta_fw-la schismata_fw-la nisi_fw-la quod_fw-la uni_fw-la sacerdoti_fw-la dei_fw-la ab_fw-la universa_fw-la fraternitate_fw-la non_fw-la obtemperetur_fw-la not_o from_o any_o other_o source_n heresy_n or_o schism_n be_v rise_v then_o for_o that_o obedience_n be_v not_o give_v to_o one_o priest_n of_o all_o the_o fraternity_n for_o why_o exordium_n ab_fw-la uno_fw-la proficiscitur_fw-la &_o primatus_fw-la petro_n datur_fw-la ut_fw-la una_fw-la christi_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la &_o una_fw-la cathedra_fw-la
matter_n of_o faith_n when_o as_o thou_o know_v not_o the_o mystiery_n of_o faith_n and_o yet_o again_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n he_o add_v soluimus_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la caesaris_fw-la caesari_n &_o quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la dei_fw-la deo_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o have_v pay_v to_o caesar_n what_o be_v caesar_n tribute_n be_v caesar_n it_o be_v not_o deny_v the_o church_n be_v god_n therefore_o it_o must_v not_o be_v give_v to_o caesar_n because_o the_o temple_n can_v be_v no_o right_n of_o caesar_n no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o this_o be_v speak_v with_o caesar_n honour_n for_o what_o more_o honourable_a then_o for_o the_o emperor_n to_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o the_o church_n which_o when_o it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v say_v without_o sin_n it_o be_v say_v with_o grace_n imperator_fw-la enim_fw-la bone_fw-la intra_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la non_fw-la supra_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la est_fw-la for_o a_o good_a emperor_n be_v within_o the_o church_n not_o above_o the_o church_n the_o like_a liberty_n of_o speech_n he_o use_v also_o in_o a_o epistle_n to_o his_o sister_n marcellina_n sororem_fw-la ambr_n li._n 5._o cit_fw-la ep_v 33._o ad_fw-la marcellinam_fw-la sororem_fw-la mandatur_fw-la denique_fw-la trade_v basilicam_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o be_v brief_a the_o emperor_n command_n be_v deliver_v up_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v neither_o lawful_a for_o i_o to_o deliver_v it_o nor_o expedient_a for_o thou_o o_o emperor_n to_o take_v it_o thou_o can_v by_v no_o law_n spoil_v or_o ransake_n the_o house_n of_o any_o private_a man_n and_o think_v thou_o that_o the_o house_n of_o god_n may_v by_o thou_o be_v destroy_v and_o ruinate_v it_o be_v allege_v that_o to_o the_o emperor_n all_o thing_n be_v lawful_a all_o thing_n be_v he_o i_o answer_v do_v not_o o_o emperor_n charge_v thyself_o as_o to_o think_v that_o thou_o have_v imperial_a right_n over_o divine_a thing_n do_v not_o extol_v thyself_o but_o if_o thou_o will_v reign_v long_o be_v subject_a to_o god_n it_o be_v write_v 22_o mat._n 22_o what_o be_v god_n to_o god_n what_o be_v caesar_n to_o caesar_n to_o the_o emperor_n palace_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o priest_n church_n to_o thou_o be_v commit_v the_o care_n and_o charge_n of_o public_a wall_n not_o of_o those_o that_o be_v holy_a if_o s._n ambrose_n will_v not_o yield_v a_o church_n or_o chapel_n to_o the_o emperor_n disposition_n will_v he_o if_o he_o have_v live_v in_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o his_o time_n and_o in_o england_n have_v permit_v he_o to_o seize_v upon_o all_o abbaye_v abbay_n land_n and_o church_n belong_v unto_o they_o or_o will_v he_o or_o s._n athanasius_n or_o hosius_n have_v permit_v he_o to_o sit_v in_o parliament_n as_o supreme_a judge_n in_o matter_n not_o only_o temporal_a but_o ecclesiastical_a or_o if_o they_o have_v see_v cromwell_n appoint_v king_n henry_n the_o eight_o vicaire_n general_n in_o spiritual_a cause_n take_v place_n above_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o archbishop_n in_o their_o convocation_n will_v not_o athanasius_n have_v call_v it_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n 14._o 53._o bilson_n in_o his_o difference_n pa._n 174._o andr._n in_o tortura_fw-la tortipa_n 169._o field_n li._n 5._o de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 53._o to_o this_o argument_n doctor_n bilson_n doctor_n andrew_n and_o doctor_n field_n answer_n that_o constantius_n and_o valentinian_n the_o young_a be_v reprehend_v by_o these_o father_n not_o for_o meddle_v in_o counsel_n and_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n but_o for_o tyrannise_v over_o bishop_n and_o for_o partial_a and_o unjust_a deal_n but_o if_o these_o father_n have_v mean_v no_o otherwise_o they_o will_v not_o so_o absolute_o have_v reprehend_v meddle_v in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n but_o will_v only_o have_v inveigh_v against_o the_o abuse_n for_o if_o a_o pope_n who_o be_v in_o deed_n head_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v abuse_v his_o authority_n in_o counsel_n or_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n though_o even_o a_o catholic_n who_o take_v he_o for_o supreme_a head_n may_v reprehend_v the_o abuse_n supra_fw-la athan._n supra_fw-la yet_o he_o can_v not_o say_v to_o he_o as_o athanasius_n do_v to_o constantius_n if_o this_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o bishop_n what_o have_v the_o pope_n to_o do_v with_o it_o nor_o can_v he_o say_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o he_o do_v to_o the_o emperor_n when_o be_v it_o ever_o hear_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n when_o do_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n take_v authority_n from_o the_o pope_n neither_o can_v he_o have_v say_v to_o the_o pope_n supra_fw-la hosius_n supra_fw-la as_o hosius_n say_v to_o the_o same_o constantius_n when_o be_v the_o emperor_n present_a to_o wit_n as_o judge_n for_o as_o protector_n and_o hearer_n he_o know_v and_o see_v constantin_n the_o great_a present_a in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a in_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n neither_o can_v he_o have_v say_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o same_o hosius_n say_v to_o constantius_n do_v not_o intermeddle_v in_o ecclesiastical_a business_n nor_o do_v thou_o command_v we_o in_o this_o kind_n but_o rather_o learn_v these_o thing_n of_o us._n much_o less_o can_v those_o word_n of_o s._n ambrose_n supra_fw-la ambros_n supra_fw-la which_o he_o so_o bouldlie_o speak_v to_o valentinian_n have_v be_v suitable_a to_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o supreme_a head_n ecclesiastical_a when_o do_v thou_o hear_v o_o most_o clement_a emperor_n pope_n that_o any_o of_o the_o laity_n clergy_n judge_v bishop_n in_o a_o cause_n of_o faith_n much_o less_o can_v these_o other_o word_n of_o s._n ambrose_n have_v be_v fit_v a_o pope_n or_o any_o supreme_a head_n ecclesiastical_a a_o good_a emperor_n pope_n be_v in_o the_o church_n not_o above_o the_o church_n nor_o can_v s._n ambrose_n have_v deny_v so_o peremptory_o to_o deliver_v a_o church_n or_o chapel_n to_o the_o emperor_n if_o he_o have_v deem_v he_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n much_o less_o can_v he_o have_v allege_v that_o reason_n of_o his_o denial_n to_o the_o emperor_n palace_n appertain_v to_o the_o priest_n church_n for_o if_o the_o king_n be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n than_o church_n pertain_v to_o he_o as_o well_o as_o palace_n 15._o but_o let_v we_o hear_v another_o father_n s._n 26._o chrysost_n ho._n 4._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la isaiae_n 2._o paral._n 26._o chrysostome_n ponder_v the_o audacious_a fact_n of_o king_n ozias_n who_o in_o the_o pride_n of_o his_o power_n victory_n and_o former_a virtue_n arrogate_a to_o himself_o the_o priest_n office_n have_v these_o word_n rex_fw-la cum_fw-la esset_fw-la sacerdotij_fw-la principatum_fw-la usurpat_fw-la volo_fw-la inquit_fw-la adolere_fw-la incensum_fw-la quia_fw-la iustus_fw-la sum_fw-la sed_fw-la mane_n intra_fw-la terminos_fw-la tuos_fw-la alij_fw-la sunt_fw-la termini_fw-la regni_fw-la alij_fw-la termini_fw-la sacerdotij_fw-la be_v a_o king_n he_o usurp_v the_o power_n of_o priesthood_n i_o will_v say_v he_o offer_v incense_n because_o i_o be_o just_a but_o stay_v within_o thy_o limit_n other_o be_v the_o bound_n of_o the_o kingdom_n other_o of_o the_o priesthood_n if_o then_o the_o king_n have_v his_o limit_n prefix_v and_o contain_v within_o the_o kingdom_n it_o follow_v that_o he_o can_v intermeddle_v himself_o as_o a_o superior_a in_o eccles●asticall_a cause_n but_o he_o shall_v pass_v his_o limit_n the_o same_o father_n in_o his_o next_o homely_a have_v these_o word_n isaiae_n chrysost_n hom_n 5._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la isaiae_n which_o be_v worthy_a the_o mark_v quanquam_fw-la nobis_fw-la admirandus_fw-la videatur_fw-la thronus_fw-la regius_n ob_fw-la gemmas_fw-la affixas_fw-la &_o aurum_fw-la quo_fw-la obcinctus_fw-la est_fw-la tamen_fw-la rerum_fw-la terrenarum_fw-la administrationem_fw-la sortitus_fw-la est_fw-la nec_fw-la ultra_fw-la potestatem_fw-la hanc_fw-la praeterea_fw-la quicquam_fw-la habet_fw-la authoritatis_fw-la verum_fw-la sacerdoti_fw-la thronus_fw-la in_o coelis_fw-la collocatus_fw-la est_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr coelestibus_fw-la negotiis_fw-la pronunciandi_fw-la habet_fw-la potestatem_fw-la although_o the_o king_n throne_n seem_v to_o we_o worthy_a to_o be_v admire_v for_o the_o precious_a stone_n wherewith_o it_o be_v besett_n and_o the_o gold_n wherewith_o it_o be_v cover_v yet_o the_o king_n have_v only_o the_o administration_n of_o terrene_a thing_n neither_o have_v he_o beyond_o this_o power_n any_o further_a authority_n but_o to_o the_o priest_n a_o throne_n be_v place_v in_o heaven_n and_o he_o have_v power_n to_o pronounce_v sentence_n of_o heavenly_a business_n and_o affair_n appertain_v unto_o heaven_n 16._o tenthlie_a i_o prove_v this_o verity_n by_o the_o argument_n wherewith_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n i_o have_v prove_v that_o king_n christian_n by_o baptism_n be_v make_v subject_n of_o the_o church_n as_o much_o as_o be_v the_o low_a christian_n and_o that_o not_o only_o pope_n but_o inferior_a bishop_n have_v challenge_v superiority_n over_o they_o which_o also_o prince_n from_o the_o beginning_n have_v ever_o acknowledge_v for_o if_o prince_n in_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a be_v
subject_n to_o bishop_n and_o especial_o to_o the_o chief_a bishop_n they_o can_v not_o in_o that_o kind_n be_v head_n and_o superior_n to_o bishop_n 17._o last_o i_o prove_v this_o by_o out_o adversary_n confession_n which_o be_v a_o argument_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la of_o no_o little_a force_n because_o none_o be_v presume_v to_o lie_v against_o himself_o amos._n calu._n in_o cap._n 7._o amos._n calvin_n pronounce_v thus_o of_o henry_n the_o eight_o his_o supremacy_n qui_fw-la initio_fw-la tantoperè_fw-la extulerunt_fw-la henricum_fw-la regem_fw-la angliae_fw-la certè_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la homines_fw-la inconsiderrti_fw-la dederuut_n enim_fw-la ill_n summam_fw-la rerum_fw-la omnium_fw-la potestatem_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la i_o graviter_fw-la semper_fw-la vulneravit_fw-la erant_fw-la enim_fw-la blasphemi_fw-la cum_fw-la vocarent_fw-la eum_fw-la summum_fw-la caput_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la sub_fw-la christo_fw-la they_o who_o in_o the_o beginning_n do_v so_o much_o extol_v henry_n the_o eight_o king_n of_o england_n be_v man_n inconsiderate_a for_o they_o give_v he_o supreme_a power_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o this_o do_v always_o much_o aggreve_v i_o for_o they_o be_v blasphemous_a when_o they_o call_v he_o supreaine_a head_n of_o the_o church_n under_o christ_n this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o calvin_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v contemn_v of_o our_o protestant_n who_o follow_v he_o as_o a_o oracle_n in_o other_o and_o those_o very_a many_o point_n and_o to_o he_o have_v subscribe_v our_o puritan_n in_o england_n and_o the_o brethren_n of_o helvetia_n zurich_n berne_n geneva_n polonia_n hungary_n and_o scotland_n who_o all_o deny_v this_o supremacy_n of_o king_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n yea_o our_o protestant_n themselves_o whilst_o they_o seek_v to_o avoid_v the_o absurdity_n which_o above_o i_o have_v produce_v against_o this_o supremacy_n and_o which_o catholic_n have_v object_v do_v in_o effect_n despoil_v the_o king_n of_o all_o such_o authority_n 19_o angl._n becanus_n in_o dissid_n angl._n for_o first_o as_o bbcanus_n have_v tell_v they_o they_o be_v not_o agree_v whether_o his_o authority_n shall_v be_v call_v primacy_n or_o supremacy_n nor_o whether_o he_o shall_v be_v style_v primate_n or_o sovereign_n 33._o salclebr_n pag._n 140._o d._n and._n in_o tort._n pag._n 90._o tomson_n pag._n 33._o head_n or_o governor_n salclebridge_n call_v the_o king_n primate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n doctor_n andrew_n call_v his_o authority_n primacy_n and_o yet_o tomson_n will_v not_o have_v this_o authority_n call_v primacy_n but_o supremacy_n because_o the_o former_a word_n argue_v a_o power_n ecclesiastical_a and_o of_o the_o same_o order_n with_o that_o which_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n have_v the_o last_o word_n he_o say_v signify_v not_o so_o much_o and_o again_o he_o will_v not_o have_v it_o call_v spiritual_a authority_n but_o authority_n in_o respect_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n 305_o tomson_n pag._n 31._o idem_fw-la pag._n 95._o salcl_n pag._n 305_o and_o he_o add_v that_o the_o king_n govern_v ecclesiastical_a thing_n but_o not_o ecclesiastical_o and_o yet_o salclebridge_n say_v that_o king_n anoint_v with_o sacred_a oil_n what_o will_v he_o then_o say_v of_o king_n that_o be_v not_o anoint_v be_v capable_a of_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n and_o whereas_o at_o the_o first_o by_o the_o parliament_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1543_o in_o the_o year_n 35._o of_o henry_n the_o eight_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o the_o king_n shall_v be_v call_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n 133._o poulton_n in_o his_o statute_n tooker_n pag._n 3._o burhill_n pag_n 133._o and_o that_o also_o under_o pain_n of_o high_a treason_n yet_o now_o tooker_n and_o burhill_n will_v not_o have_v the_o king_n call_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o in_o deed_n queen_n elizabeth_z in_o the_o first_o parliament_n choose_v rather_o to_o be_v governess_n of_o the_o church_n then_o head_n 20._o and_o as_o these_o man_n vary_v in_o the_o name_n so_o do_v they_o in_o the_o power_n and_o thing_n itself_o tooker_n say_v the_o king_n have_v and_o can_v give_v 140._o tooker_n pag_n 305._o salclebr_n pa._n 140._o and_o take_v away_o all_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a in_o the_o outward_a court_n salclebridge_n say_v the_o king_n can_v dispense_v in_o plurality_n of_o benefice_n 151._o d._n and._n apud_fw-la tooker_n pa._n 305._o bur._n pa._n 234._o salcl_n pa._n 121._o took_n pag._n 36._o bur._n pag._n 137._o &_o 242._o took_n pag._n 15._o d._n and._n pag._n 151._o and_o can_v licence_v a_o bastard_n to_o take_v holy_a order_n d._n andrew_n say_v he_o have_v all_o external_a jurisdiction_n but_o censure_n yet_o byrhil_n deny_v he_o all_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a both_o in_o the_o inward_a and_o outward_a court_n salclebridge_n say_v the_o king_n can_v give_v benefice_n create_v and_o depose_v bishop_n and_o yet_o tooker_n say_v he_o can_v only_o nominate_v and_o present_v burhil_n deny_v the_o king_n authority_n to_o excommunicate_v yea_o he_o say_v he_o may_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o the_o same_o do_v also_o d._n andrew_n and_o tooker_n maintain_v but_o what_o a_o supreme_a head_n be_v he_o that_o can_v not_o cut_v of_o by_o excommunication_n a_o infect_v and_o infect_a member_n what_o a_o pastor_n that_o can_v not_o cast_v out_o a_o infect_a sheep_n by_o excommunication_n and_o if_o he_o can_v not_o excommunicate_a but_o rather_o may_v be_v excommunicate_v it_o argue_v that_o he_o have_v a_o superior_a who_o can_v exercise_v ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n over_o he_o and_o so_o he_o be_v not_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o catholic_n as_o they_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n supreme_a head_n 136._o salcl_n pag._n 136._o so_o they_o say_v he_o can_v not_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o any_o salclebrige_n say_v that_o it_o be_v clear_a than_o the_o sun_n that_o prince_n have_v determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n in_o 8._o counsel_n citandi_fw-la tooker_n pag._n 50._o bilson_n &_o caeteri_fw-la infra_fw-la citandi_fw-la and_o yet_o tooker_n as_o also_o d._n bilson_n d._n andrew_n and_o d._n field_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v anon_o will_v not_o have_v the_o king_n call_v superior_a in_o matter_n of_o faith_n 21._o after_o this_o doubt_n and_o vary_v they_o proceed_v to_o a_o flat_a denial_n of_o the_o foresay_v supremacy_n 170._o in_o tortura_fw-la torti_n pa._n 170._o d._n andrew_n have_v take_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o supremacy_n from_o the_o king_n for_o he_o confess_v that_o the_o emperor_n have_v no_o imperial_a right_n to_o divine_a thing_n these_o be_v his_o word_n non_fw-la est_fw-la in_o ea_fw-la quae_fw-la divina_fw-la sunt_fw-la imperiale_n sed_fw-la neque_fw-la pontificale_fw-la ius_fw-la ullum_fw-la there_o be_v not_o in_o the_o king_n any_o imperial_a no_o nor_o pontifical_a right_n over_o divine_a thing_n he_o add_v that_o the_o king_n have_v no_o right_a to_o dispose_v of_o church_n which_o yet_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o challenge_v and_o practise_v to_o the_o ruin_n of_o ten_o thousand_o church_n in_o one_o year_n for_o thus_o say_v d._n andrew_n at_o illa_fw-la divina_fw-la hîc_fw-la quae_fw-la tandem_fw-la aedes_fw-la templa_fw-la basilicae_fw-la neque_fw-la verò_fw-la in_o ea_fw-la quae_fw-la ita_fw-la divina_fw-la sunt_fw-la rex_fw-la noster_fw-la ullum_fw-la sibi_fw-la ius_fw-la vendicet_fw-la 171._o ibid._n pa._n 171._o and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o say_v that_o the_o king_n be_v no_o judge_n in_o a_o cause_n or_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o next_o page_n he_o seem_v to_o affirm_v and_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o counsel_n of_o constantinople_n 172._o pa._n 172._o antioch_n and_o carthage_n that_o the_o king_n be_v not_o to_o be_v judge_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o page_n next_o after_o that_o 173._o pa._n 173._o in_o sacrament_n the_o king_n have_v neither_o supreme_a nor_o any_o power_n at_o all_o and_o beside_o all_o this_o he_o add_v that_o he_o can_v excommunicate_v 151_o pag._n 151_o nos_fw-la principi_fw-la say_v he_o cenfurae_fw-la potestatem_fw-la non_fw-la facimus_fw-la we_o do_v not_o grant_v the_o prince_n or_o king_n any_o power_n to_o excommunicate_v etc._n etc._n d._n bilson_n say_v plain_o that_o the_o king_n have_v authority_n over_o the_o person_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o bilson_n in_o his_o true_a difference_n pag._n 171_o &_o 172._o par_fw-fr 2._o but_o not_o over_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n over_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bishop_n but_o not_o over_o faith_n sacrament_n material_a church_n and_o such_o like_a which_o yet_o i_o see_v not_o how_o it_o can_v stand_v together_o for_o if_o the_o king_n be_v supreme_a head_n not_o only_o over_o the_o kingdom_n but_o also_o over_o the_o church_n that_o be_v of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o church_n then_o as_o because_o he_o be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o kingdom_n he_o can_v command_v his_o lie_v subject_n in_o temporal_a matter_n as_o to_o pay_v tribute_n to_o obey_v temporal_a law_n etc._n etc._n so_o if_o he_o be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o
have_v authority_n over_o clergy_n man_n as_o clergy_n man_n he_o can_v command_v even_o churchman_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n and_o can_v call_v synod_n determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n in_o they_o enact_v ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o bestow_v ecclesiastical_a benefice_n and_o so_o he_o shall_v have_v authority_n not_o only_o over_o the_o person_n but_o also_o over_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o as_o he_o that_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o king_n for_o the_o necessary_a good_a of_o the_o common_a wealth_n can_v dispose_v of_o the_o temporality_n of_o the_o realm_n shall_v in_o effect_n make_v he_o no_o king_n so_o bilson_n in_o say_v that_o the_o king_n have_v no_o authority_n over_o the_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o church_n make_v he_o no_o head_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o superior_a over_o church_n man_n as_o church_n man_n for_o if_o the_o king_n be_v head_n of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o church_n he_o can_v command_v they_o as_o his_o subject_n and_o then_o i_o demand_v of_o bilson_n in_o what_o thing_n he_o can_v command_v they_o if_o in_o temporal_a thing_n only_o as_o to_o pay_v tribute_n to_o go_v to_o war_n etc._n etc._n then_o be_v he_o king_n only_o of_o the_o common_a wealth_n but_o no_o head_n of_o the_o church_n if_o in_o spiritual_a thing_n as_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n decision_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n in_o counsel_n etc._n etc._n then_o have_v he_o the_o administration_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o have_v authority_n not_o only_o over_o the_o person_n but_o also_o over_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o church_n but_o i_o need_v not_o wrest_v this_o from_o bilson_n by_o force_n of_o argument_n for_o he_o no_o less_o plain_o confess_v that_o the_o king_n be_v no_o head_n of_o the_o church_n 240_o bilson_n par_fw-fr 2_o pag._n 240_o these_o be_v his_o word_n we_o confess_v prince_n to_o be_v supreme_a governor_n that_o be_v as_o we_o have_v often_o tell_v you_o supreme_a bearer_n of_o the_o sword_n which_o be_v first_o ordain_v from_o above_o to_o defend_v and_o preserve_v as_o well_o godliness_n and_o honesty_n as_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n among_o man_n we_o give_v prince_n no_o power_n to_o devise_v or_o invent_v new_a religion_n to_o alter_v or_o change_v sacrament_n to_o decide_v or_o debate_v doubt_n of_o faith_n to_o disturb_v or_o infringe_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o he_o whereby_o we_o see_v first_o how_o he_o derogate_v from_o that_o authority_n which_o king_n henry_n the_o 8_o and_o queen_n elizabeth_z challenge_v and_o the_o former_a parliament_n approve_v for_o by_o that_o authority_n king_n henry_n the_o 8._o exile_a all_o the_o pope_n authority_n forbid_v all_o appeal_v to_o rome_n contrary_a to_o the_o ancient_a canon_n dispose_v of_o abbay_n and_o church_n without_o the_o pope_n authority_n etc._n etc._n and_o by_o the_o same_o authority_n q._n elizabeth_n change_v the_o sacrament_n and_o all_o the_o whole_a face_n and_o hew_v of_o religion_n and_o forbid_v counsel_n to_o be_v call_v or_o any_o thing_n in_o they_o to_o be_v decide_v without_o her_o consent_n secondlie_o we_o may_v see_v also_o hereby_o how_o bilson_n make_v the_o king_n no_o supreme_a head_n yea_o no_o head_n at_o all_o of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o a_o protector_n and_o defender_n thereof_o which_o title_n all_o catholic_n grant_v to_o king_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o king_n be_v to_o defend_v the_o church_n to_o assist_v she_o by_o his_o temporal_a sword_n and_o authority_n that_o she_o be_v not_o hinder_v in_o call_v counsel_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o and_o to_o punish_v heretic_n condemn_v by_o she_o and_o deliver_v up_o to_o secular_a power_n and_o no_o more_o do_v bilson_n grant_v and_o so_o he_o deny_v the_o prince_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o grant_v he_o to_o be_v only_o a_o protector_n and_o defender_n be_v guilty_a of_o high_a treason_n 22._o 53._o d._n field_n lib._n 5._o de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 53._o doctor_n field_n also_o in_o effect_n deni_v this_o authority_n to_o the_o king_n for_o he_o distinguish_v thing_n mere_o spiritual_a in_o this_o manner_n either_o say_v he_o the_o power_n in_o these_o thing_n be_v of_o order_n or_o of_o jurisdiction_n the_o power_n of_o order_n consist_v in_o preach_v the_o word_n in_o minister_a sacrament_n and_o ordain_v minister_n and_o in_o these_o thing_n say_v he_o prince_n have_v no_o authority_n at_o all_o much_o less_o supreme_a authority_n the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n stand_v in_o prescribe_v law_n in_o hear_v examine_v and_o judge_v of_o opinion_n in_o matter_n of_o say_v and_o thing_n pertain_v to_o ecclesiastical_a order_n and_o ministry_n and_o due_a perform_v of_o god_n service_n and_o in_o these_o the_o king_n can_v only_o by_o direction_n of_o the_o clergy_n make_v penal_a and_o tempor_n all_o law_n for_o the_o execution_n of_o bishop_n law_n and_o canon_n thus_o he_o but_o to_o omit_v how_o apt_o d._n field_n annex_v preach_v to_o the_o power_n of_o order_n 21_o vide_fw-la sairum_fw-la lib._n 4._o de_fw-la censuris_fw-la cap._n 16._o num_fw-la 21_o which_o may_v be_v exercise_v with_o licence_n of_o the_o bishop_n by_o one_o that_o have_v no_o order_n at_o all_o to_o omit_v also_o how_o he_o can_v possible_o distinguish_v the_o power_n of_o order_n and_o jurisdiction_n he_o and_o his_o doctor_n deny_v all_o character_n and_o make_v ordination_n nothing_o else_o but_o a_o mere_a deputation_n to_o such_o a_o office_n i_o aver_v that_o d._n field_n in_o this_o contradict_v the_o former_a authority_n which_o be_v give_v by_o parliament_n to_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o and_o king_n edward_z his_o son_n and_o queen_n elizabeth_z his_o daughter_n as_o may_v appear_v plain_o by_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n above_o allege_v and_o he_o make_v the_o king_n no_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o a_o assistant_n protector_n and_o defendor_n thereof_o as_o i_o have_v show_v against_o d._n bilson_n 23._o wherefore_o the_o catholic_n of_o england_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o complain_v of_o severe_a deal_n towards_o they_o who_o many_o of_o they_o have_v be_v condemn_v to_o premuniry_n and_o cruel_a death_n for_o deny_v the_o snpremacie_n of_o the_o prince_n in_o spiritual_a cause_n of_o which_o notwithstanding_o the_o leardn_a of_o the_o ministry_n make_v such_o doubt_n and_o question_n as_o we_o have_v see_v yea_o deny_v it_o in_o plain_a term_n for_o if_o that_o care_n have_v be_v have_v of_o the_o king_n catholic_n subject_n which_o their_o number_n antiquity_n and_o loyalty_n seem_v to_o require_v this_o question_n of_o the_o supremacy_n shall_v have_v be_v better_o discuss_v and_o more_o mature_o resolve_v before_o the_o minister_n shall_v have_v preach_v it_o as_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o before_o catholic_n shall_v have_v be_v so_o severelie_o handle_v for_o deny_v it_o their_o own_o doctor_n now_o vary_v so_o much_o as_o we_o have_v see_v about_o the_o very_a name_n and_o thing_n itself_o and_o some_o of_o the_o leardn_a among_o they_o deny_v it_o as_o flat_o as_o any_o catholic_n can_v do_v 24._o remember_v then_o o_o king_n prince_n and_o potentate_n of_o the_o earth_n what_o be_v belong_v to_o your_o so_o high_a a_o office_n prince_n psal_n 2._o a_o exhortation_n to_o prince_n et_fw-la nunc_fw-la reges_fw-la intelligite_fw-la erudimini_fw-la qui_fw-la iudicatis_fw-la terram_fw-la and_o now_o o_o king_n understand_v your_o office_n inform_v yourselves_o o_o you_o that_o judge_v the_o earth_n what_o belong_v unto_o you_o you_o be_v judge_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o common_a wealth_n you_o be_v not_o to_o meddle_v with_o the_o church_n which_o be_v call_v regnum_fw-la coelorum_fw-la 13_o mat._n 13_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n you_o be_v 49._o isa_n 49._o as_o esaye_n call_v you_o nurce_v father_n but_o no_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n you_o be_v protector_n and_o defendour_n and_o assistant_n oblige_v by_o sceptre_n and_o sword_n to_o assist_v she_o and_o to_o punish_v her_o rebel_n at_o her_o direction_n you_o be_v subject_n no_o superior_n sheep_n no_o pastor_n inferior_a member_n no_o head_n and_o your_o great_a honour_n and_o safety_n be_v to_o serve_v not_o to_o rule_v the_o church_n to_o defend_v not_o to_o invade_v her_o right_n harken_v o_o prince_n to_o that_o wholesome_a counsel_n which_o azarias_n the_o high_a priest_n give_v to_o king_n ozias_n 11._o 2._o paral._n 26._o joseph_n l._n 9_o ant._n cap._n 11._o who_o will_v be_v meddle_v with_o the_o priest_n office_n for_o when_o he_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o pride_n of_o hart_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o offer_v incense_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o on_o the_o altar_n of_o incense_n azarias_n match_v his_o kingly_a pride_n with_o a_o priestly_a zeal_n follow_v he_o at_o his_o heel_n accompany_v with_o fourscore_o priest_n and_o
may_v reign_v over_o they_o be_v content_a that_o this_o opinion_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v teach_v in_o school_n and_o publish_v in_o print_a book_n and_o therefore_o of_o late_a his_o catholic_a majesty_n with_o three_o bishop_n of_o his_o counsel_n and_o the_o inquisition_n of_o spain_n authorize_v the_o print_n and_o set_v forth_o of_o a_o book_n of_o this_o subject_n compose_v by_o a_o learned_a divine_a franciscus_n suarius_n &_o entitle_v defensio_fw-la fidei_fw-la catholicae_fw-la &_o apostolicae_fw-la adversus_fw-la anglicanae_n sectae_fw-la errores_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o which_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o depose_v prince_n who_o by_o their_o tyranny_n against_o the_o church_n make_v themselves_o unworthy_a of_o their_o honourable_a room_n and_o place_n be_v large_o and_o learned_o defend_v and_o prove_v 2._o i_o confess_v that_o the_o pope_n temporal_a authority_n which_o he_o have_v in_o rome_n and_o italy_n proceed_v not_o from_o the_o immediate_a gift_n of_o christ_n but_o rather_o come_v to_o he_o by_o the_o dan._n the_o cap._n constantinus_n d._n 96._o c._n ego_fw-la ludovic_fw-la d._n 63._o ca._n futuram_fw-la 12._o q._n 1._o naucler_n gen_fw-la 13._o magd._n cent._n 4._o c._n 7._o petr._n damian_n disp_n cum_fw-la reg._n aduoc_fw-la anselm_n li._n 4_o c._n 32._o iuo_o carn_n p._n 5._o decr._n cap._n 49._o genebr_n lib._n 3._o chron._n abraham_n levita_fw-la in_o ca._n 11._o dan._n donation_n of_o constantine_n pipin_n charles_n the_o great_a lewis_z the_o godly_a and_o other_o prince_n as_o be_v testify_v partly_o by_o the_o canon_n law_n partly_o by_o the_o act_n of_o silvester_n partly_o by_o other_o ancient_a writer_n i_o grant_v also_o that_o christ_n make_v he_o no_o temporal_a prince_n but_o only_a pastor_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n for_o although_o many_o legitimus_fw-la many_o ostiens_fw-la in_o cap._n quod_fw-la super_fw-la his_fw-la de_fw-la voto_fw-la &_o voti_fw-la redemp_n anton._n 3._o p._n tit_n 22._o cap._n 5_o §._o 13._o silu._n v._o papa_n &_o v._n legitimus_fw-la canonist_n affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v temporal_a lord_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n yet_o recentiores_fw-la yet_o henr._n quod_fw-la lib._n 6._o q._n 23._o turrecr_n lib._n 2._o summ●_n cap._n 113._o caiet_fw-mi tom_fw-mi 1._o opusc_n tract_n 2._o cap._n 3._o &_o 2.2_o q._n 43._o art_n 8._o &_o passim_fw-la recentiores_fw-la divine_n stand_v against_o they_o in_o this_o point_n and_o not_o without_o good_a reason_n for_o look_v what_o power_n the_o pope_n have_v by_o divine_a right_n he_o have_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o see_v that_o christ_n make_v his_o apostle_n pastor_n 16._o ephes_n 4._o joan._n 21_o mat._n 16._o not_o prince_n and_o give_v they_o a_o church_n to_o rule_v not_o a_o kingdom_n bestow_v on_o they_o the_o key_n of_o heaven_n not_o of_o city_n 28._o mat._n 18._o act._n 20._o mat._n 28._o give_v they_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v the_o soul_n not_o the_o body_n to_o teach_v and_o baptize_v all_o nation_n not_o to_o subjugate_v they_o and_o build_v his_o church_n upon_o a_o apostle_n not_o upon_o any_o king_n or_o prince_n it_o follow_v evident_o that_o the_o pope_n by_o christ_n donation_n have_v no_o title_n to_o kingdom_n and_o empire_n 3._o true_a it_o be_v that_o many_o divine_n and_o those_o also_o of_o note_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o christ_n as_o man_n be_v temporal_a king_n over_o all_o the_o world_n which_o be_v the_o express_a opinion_n of_o s._n 2._o s._n anton._n 3_o p._n tit_n 3._o cap._n 2._o antonine_n 8._o antonine_n almai_n tract_n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la ecc._n c._n 8._o almainus_n 116._o almainus_n turrec_n lib._n 2._o summae_fw-la cap._n 116._o turrecremata_fw-la redemp_n turrecremata_fw-la ostiens_fw-la in_o cap._n quod_fw-la super_fw-la his_fw-la de_fw-la voto_fw-la &_o voti_fw-la redemp_n ostiensis_n 43._o ostiensis_n duran_n tract_n de_fw-mi jurisd_v eccl_n qu._n 43._o durand_n 130._o f_o navar._n in_o cap._n novit_fw-la de_fw-fr judiciis_fw-la not_o 3._o n._n 8._o &_o 130._o navarre_n and_o other_o which_o they_o also_o prove_v out_o of_o diverse_a place_n of_o scripture_n as_o apoc._n ●_o princeps_fw-la regum_fw-la terrae_fw-la prince_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n apoc._n 19_o rex_fw-la regum_fw-la &_o dominus_fw-la dominantium_fw-la king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n act._n 10._o hic_fw-la est_fw-la omnium_fw-la dominus_fw-la this_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o psalm_n 8._o and_o heb._n 9_o omnia_fw-la subiecisti_fw-la sub_fw-la pedibus_fw-la eius_fw-la thou_o have_v subject_v all_o thing_n under_o his_o foot_n matt._n ult._n data_fw-la est_fw-la mihi_fw-la omnis_fw-la potestas_fw-la in_o coelo_fw-la &_o in_fw-la terra_fw-la all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o i_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n yet_o most_o interpreter_n expound_v these_o place_n as_o mean_v of_o christ_n spiritual_a and_o priestly_a power_n by_o which_o he_o be_v spiritual_a king_n of_o the_o world_n and_o though_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a 3._o 1._o vasq_fw-la 3_o p._n disp_n 87._o ca._n 3._o as_o the_o leardned_a vasquez_n show_v that_o christ_n in_o deed_n as_o man_n be_v temporal_a king_n of_o the_o world_n and_o have_v that_o regal_a dignity_n not_o by_o election_n or_o descent_n but_o only_o by_o hypostatical_a union_n which_o do_v so_o elevate_v and_o dignify_v his_o humane_a nature_n that_o it_o give_v he_o authority_n even_o as_o man_n over_o all_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n by_o which_o he_o may_v have_v command_v they_o even_o in_o temporal_a thing_n and_o may_v have_v deprive_v they_o of_o their_o crown_n yet_o this_o it_o not_o so_o certain_a because_o many_o divine_n also_o hold_v that_o christ_n as_o man_n be_v no_o temporal_a king_n but_o howsoever_o all_o almost_o do_v agree_v that_o christ_n never_o use_v any_o regal_a power_n nor_o do_v actual_o reign_v as_o king_n over_o any_o country_n much_o less_o over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v 18_o joan._n 18_o regnum_fw-la meum_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-fr hoc_fw-la mundo_fw-la my_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n because_o although_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n the_o church_n be_v in_o this_o world_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o spiritual_a authority_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v from_o heanen_n and_o although_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o he_o have_v kingly_a authority_n which_o be_v call_v ius_n regnandi_fw-la a_o right_a to_o reign_v by_o which_o he_o may_v have_v reign_v and_o rule_v temporallie_o in_o the_o world_n yet_o as_o i_o have_v say_v he_o never_o actual_o reign_v neither_o do_v he_o exercise_v any_o kingly_a act_n of_o his_o kingly_a power_n and_o so_o have_v say_v that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la be_v give_v a_o reason_n thetof_o say_v si_fw-mi enim_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la mundo_fw-la esset_fw-la regnum_fw-la meum_fw-la ministri_fw-la utique_fw-la decertarent_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la traderer_fw-la judaeis_n for_o if_o my_o kingdom_n be_v of_o this_o world_n my_o minister_n very_o will_v strive_v that_o i_o shall_v not_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v a_o good_a reason_n if_o you_o understand_v by_o his_o kingdom_n the_o actual_a exercise_n of_o his_o kingly_a authority_n for_o otherwise_o one_o may_v be_v a_o true_a king_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o right_n as_o king_n drive_v by_o force_n out_o of_o their_o kingdom_n be_v and_o yet_o have_v no_o soldier_n nor_o minister_n to_o fight_v for_o they_o 2._o joan._n 2._o i_o know_v some_o author_n contend_v that_o he_o do_v actual_o exercise_v the_o temporal_a power_n of_o a_o king_n when_o with_o a_o whip_n he_o chase_v buyer_n and_o seller_n out_o of_o the_o temple_n yet_o that_o he_o do_v by_o the_o office_n of_o a_o redeemer_n and_o prophet_n who_o part_n be_v to_o correct_v sin_n and_o abuse_n other_o say_v that_o he_o use_v kingly_a authority_n when_o he_o cast_v the_o devil_n into_o the_o hog_n and_o they_o into_o the_o sea_n matth._n 8._o and_o when_o he_o wither_v the_o figgetree_n mat._n 21._o &_o mar._n 11._o otherwise_o say_v they_o he_o have_v do_v injury_n to_o the_o owner_n but_o all_o this_o a_o other_o prophet_n may_v have_v do_v though_o no_o king_n much_o more_o christ_n the_o prophet_n of_o prophet_n and_o yet_o shall_v he_o have_v do_v no_o injury_n to_o the_o owner_n see_v that_o what_o prophet_n do_v miraculous_o they_o do_v by_o authority_n from_o god_n who_o be_v supreme_a lord_n over_o life_n good_n and_o all_o and_o because_o christ_n do_v not_o actual_o reign_v therefore_o emperor_n and_o king_n be_v absolute_a and_o be_v not_o vicaire_n or_o delegate_n to_o christ_n and_o christ_n take_v neither_o crown_n nor_o sceptre_n from_o they_o according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o hymn_n of_o the_o epiphanie_n epiph._n in_o 1._o vesp_n epiph._n hostess_fw-la herodes_n impie_fw-la christum_fw-la venire_fw-la quid_fw-la time_n non_fw-la eripit_fw-la mortalia_fw-la qui_fw-la
force_v her_o subject_n to_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n hinder_v by_o violence_n preach_v administration_n of_o sacrament_n and_o all_o practice_n of_o religion_n what_o shall_v the_o church_n do_v excommunicate_a these_o persecutor_n she_o can_v have_v no_o spiritual_a power_n over_o they_o they_o be_v not_o incorporate_v to_o the_o church_n by_o baptism_n and_o if_o she_o can_v 63._o psal_n 63._o they_o will_v contemn_v all_o such_o weapon_n tanquam_fw-la sagittas_fw-la paruulorum_fw-la as_o the_o arrow_n of_o child_n what_o then_o must_v the_o church_n stand_v still_o and_o let_v the_o cruel_a persecutor_n do_v his_o worst_a must_v she_o expose_v herself_o and_o her_o subject_n to_o their_o mercy_n that_o have_v no_o mercy_n cerres_n if_o in_o that_o case_n she_o may_v not_o take_v arm_n she_o be_v the_o unabl_a and_o worst_a provide_v common_a wealth_n that_o ever_o be_v and_o what_o if_o the_o heretic_n wandalica_fw-la vide_fw-la baron_n a_o christi_fw-la 348._o &_o victorem_fw-la vticen_n de_fw-fr persec_n wandalica_fw-la who_o common_o be_v more_o cruel_a than_o pagan_n as_o the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o arrian_n and_o even_o of_o protestant_n and_o puritan_n in_o france_n the_o low_a country_n and_o our_o island_n also_o bear_v to_o evident_a witness_n will_v use_v the_o like_a or_o great_a cruelty_n and_o tyranny_n against_o the_o church_n and_o the_o true_a faithful_a people_n thereof_o what_o defensive_a armour_n have_v christ_n give_v she_o excommunication_n you_o will_v say_v or_o other_o spiritual_a censure_n but_o what_o if_o they_o also_o as_o common_o they_o do_v will_v contemn_v all_o such_o arm_n and_o weapon_n how_o shall_v the_o church_n conserve_v herself_o and_o withstand_v their_o cruelty_n shall_v she_o expose_v her_o throat_n and_o breast_n to_o the_o tyrant_n sword_n herself_o and_o her_o subject_n to_o his_o cruelty_n shall_v she_o permit_v sacrament_n and_o preach_v to_o be_v forbid_v all_o exercise_n of_o religion_n to_o be_v hinder_v and_o in_o lieu_n thereof_o all_o abomination_n to_o be_v set_v up_o and_o promote_v you_o will_v say_v that_o after_o she_o have_v threaten_v god_n judgement_n use_v her_o spiritual_a arm_n and_o weapon_n she_o have_v no_o more_o to_o do_v have_v no_o temporal_a arm_n to_o use_v and_o so_o must_v commit_v all_o to_o god_n but_o then_o say_v i_o that_o christ_n who_o be_v incarnate_a and_o live_v and_o dye_v for_o the_o church_n have_v not_o sufficient_o provide_v for_o her_o defence_n and_o they_o that_o say_v she_o can_v only_o have_v access_n in_o that_o case_n to_o god_n be_v like_a to_o those_o philosopher_n who_o deny_v all_o power_n to_o second_o cause_n to_o produce_v substantial_a form_n and_o effect_n and_o make_v god_n the_o only_o author_n but_o as_o these_o philosopher_n be_v hiss_v out_o of_o the_o school_n because_o since_o god_n create_v all_o at_o the_o beginning_n he_o do_v nothing_o in_o nature_n but_o by_o second_o cause_n so_o i_o say_v that_o widdrington_n and_o other_o who_o deny_v the_o church_n all_o power_n to_o defend_v herself_o be_v unnatural_a child_n yea_o merciless_a and_o cruel_a enemy_n in_o remit_v she_o to_o god_n only_o who_o though_o he_o always_o hear_v our_o prayer_n and_o petition_n yet_o do_v not_o always_o grant_v they_o wherefore_o we_o must_v find_v out_o a_o sword_n and_o a_o ordinary_a second_o cause_n which_o may_v in_o this_o case_n defend_v the_o church_n and_o this_o be_v no_o other_o than_o her_o spiritual_a power_n by_o which_o as_o above_o be_v declare_v she_o can_v dispose_v of_o temporal_a good_n and_o kingdom_n for_o the_o necessary_a conservation_n of_o the_o spiritual_a good_a for_o the_o better_a declaration_n whereof_o i_o demand_v of_o our_o protestant_n in_o england_n if_o his_o majesty_n shall_v turn_v catholic_n and_o consequent_o shall_v put_v the_o minister_n out_o of_o office_n persecute_v they_o with_o sword_n and_o fire_n what_o will_v they_o do_v they_o will_v perchance_o excommunicate_v he_o but_o what_o if_o he_o contemn_v such_o excommunication_n as_o justly_o he_o may_v they_o be_v no_o true_a bishop_n what_o will_v they_o do_v true_o if_o a_o man_n may_v guess_v by_o that_o they_o teach_v and_o have_v practise_v in_o scotland_n england_n france_n germany_n &_o the_o low_a country_n they_o will_v trust_v more_o to_o their_o sword_n then_o their_o word_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o that_o they_o have_v do_v in_o the_o like_a case_n 10._o widdr._n in_o disp_n theol._n c._n 3._o n._n 21._o sect_n 1._o a_o objection_n of_o widdr._n but_o widdrington_n tax_v the_o learned_a suarez_n say_v that_o if_o because_o the_o church_n be_v a_o absolute_a common_a wealth_n and_o consequent_o have_v sufficient_a authority_n to_o defend_v herself_o we_o may_v infer_v that_o she_o may_v use_v not_o only_o spiritual_a but_o also_o temporal_a arm_n we_o must_v infer_v also_o that_o god_n must_v give_v the_o church_n not_o only_a authority_n to_o depose_v prince_n but_o also_o force_n and_o mean_n to_o execute_v the_o sentence_n of_o her_o deposition_n answer_n the_o answer_n which_o yet_o we_o see_v she_o always_o have_v not_o i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o god_n shall_v always_o give_v execution_n to_o matter_n for_o the_o king_n and_o common_a wealth_n can_v always_o actual_o suppress_v rebel_n and_o vanquish_a enemy_n but_o yet_o as_o if_o the_o king_n or_o common_a wealth_n have_v not_o authority_n to_o defend_v itself_o by_o defensive_a and_o offensive_a weapon_n neither_o he_o nor_o the_o common_a wealth_n be_v sufficient_o by_o god_n and_o nature_n furnish_v or_o provide_v for_o so_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o give_v his_o church_n power_n and_o authority_n to_o defend_v and_o conserve_v herself_o by_o temporal_a arm_n when_o the_o spiritual_a glaive_n will_v not_o serve_v he_o have_v not_o provide_v sufficient_o for_o she_o neither_o have_v she_o have_v the_o authority_n which_o be_v due_a to_o a_o absolute_a common_a wealth_n and_o although_o god_n have_v promise_v to_o protect_v his_o church_n to_o the_o end_n as_o he_o promise_v to_o defend_v the_o synagogue_n and_o to_o continue_v the_o kingdom_n to_o david_n posterity_n yet_o he_o use_v second_o cause_n for_o the_o execution_n and_o performance_n of_o his_o say_v promise_n and_o therefore_o as_o not_o withstand_v his_o promise_n the_o jew_n and_o david_n use_v humane_a mean_n as_o war_n and_o such_o like_a for_o their_o conservation_n so_o may_v the_o church_n when_o her_o spiritual_a power_n be_v contemn_v 11._o but_o although_o as_o this_o argument_n proove_v the_o church_n may_v use_v temporal_a arm_n in_o case_n of_o necessity_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o so_o convenient_a that_o she_o shall_v do_v it_o by_o herself_o immediate_o but_o rather_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o prince_n when_o she_o can_v induce_v he_o to_o undertake_v her_o cause_n and_o defence_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n though_o she_o use_v to_o deliver_v heretic_n brachio_n seculari_fw-la to_o the_o secular_a arm_n and_o power_n yet_o she_o use_v not_o to_o punish_v they_o herself_o not_o for_o that_o she_o can_v but_o because_o it_o be_v not_o convenient_a she_o shall_v but_o only_o when_o temporal_a prince_n will_v not_o do_v that_o office_n for_o she_o 26._o lib_fw-la 4._o the_o consider_v cap._n 3._o joan._n 10._o mar._n 26._o whereupon_o s._n bernard_n allude_v to_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n convert_v gladium_fw-la tuum_fw-la in_o vaginam_fw-la as_o he_o aver_v the_o power_n of_o handle_v the_o temporal_a sword_n so_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o convenient_a for_o the_o pastor_n to_o use_v it_o but_o only_o to_o command_v it_o for_o thus_o he_o speak_v to_o pope_n eugenius_n the_o three_o quid_fw-la tu_fw-la denuò_fw-la gladium_fw-la usurpare_fw-la tentas_fw-la etc._n etc._n what_o do_v thou_o go_v about_o to_o take_v to_o thyself_o again_o that_o sword_n which_o once_o thou_o be_v command_v to_o put_v up_o in_o to_o the_o sheath_n which_o yet_o whosoever_o deny_v to_o be_v thou_o do_v not_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o have_v sufficient_o attend_v to_o the_o word_n of_o out_o lord_n who_o say_v put_v up_o thy_o sword_n into_o the_o scabbart_n it_o be_v thy_o therefore_o &_o perchance_o at_o thy_o beck_n though_o not_o by_o thy_o hand_n to_o be_v draw_v otherwise_o if_o it_o do_v not_o any_o wise_a pertain_v unto_o thou_o when_o the_o apostle_n say_v behold_v two_o sword_n here_o our_o lord_n will_v not_o have_v answer_v it_o be_v enough_o but_o it_o be_v to_o much_o therefore_o both_o the_o spiritual_a and_o material_a sword_n be_v the_o church_n but_o that_o be_v to_o be_v use_v for_o the_o church_n this_o also_o of_o the_o church_n 32._o orat._n in_o auxent_n quae_fw-la extat_fw-la lib._n 5._o ●p_n eius_fw-la post_o epist_n 32._o that_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n this_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o soldier_n but_o yet_o at_o the_o beck_n of_o the_o
church_n but_o by_o the_o magistrate_n i_o must_v tell_v he_o that_o if_o the_o magistrate_n may_v punish_v heretic_n much_o more_o may_v the_o church_n because_o the_o magistrate_n and_o prince_n as_o he_o be_v not_o to_o judge_v which_o be_v heresy_n so_o it_o pertain_v not_o to_o he_o to_o punish_v heretic_n 11._o vide_fw-la suar●z_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la legibus_fw-la cap._n 11._o heresy_n be_v a_o crime_n which_o pertain_v to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a not_o to_o the_o temporal_a court_n and_o therefore_o that_o prince_n by_o their_o law_n do_v decree_n punishment_n against_o heretic_n they_o do_v it_o by_o commission_n from_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o church_n first_o deliver_v they_o up_o to_o secular_a power_n whence_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n who_o give_v authority_n to_o prince_n to_o punish_v heretic_n may_v do_v it_o herself_o when_o they_o be_v want_v in_o their_o office_n which_o also_o all_o the_o argument_n allege_v do_v convince_v and_o widdrington_n can_v deny_v sanctorum_fw-la ca._n ad_fw-la ab_fw-la solendum_fw-la cap._n vergentis_fw-la c._n excommunicamus_fw-la ca._n fin_n de_fw-fr haereticis_fw-la &_o 15._o q._n 6._o ca._n not_o sanctorum_fw-la that_o the_o church_n do_v deliver_v up_o heretic_n to_o secular_a power_n which_o be_v a_o temporal_a punishment_n as_o also_o that_o she_o cast_v they_o into_o prison_n confifcate_v their_o good_n make_v they_o infamous_a uncapable_a of_o new_a secular_a office_n and_o of_o the_o right_n and_o lawful_a execution_n of_o the_o old_a make_v they_o unable_a to_o make_v their_o last_o will_n or_o to_o succeed_v by_o testament_n yea_o and_o that_o by_o her_o decree_n they_o be_v excommunicate_v and_o consequent_o deprive_v of_o all_o civil_a society_n which_o be_v in_o like_a sort_n temporal_a punishment_n moreover_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n sess_v 25._o cap._n 3._o command_v ecclesiastical_a judge_n not_o to_o use_v censure_n but_o when_o there_o be_v urgent_a cause_n and_o in_o lieu_n thereof_o to_o condemn_v malefactor_n to_o pecuniary_a mulcte_n 3._o and_o if_o the_o church_n can_v thus_o punish_v ordinary_a christian_n temporallie_o she_o may_v inflict_v temporal_a punishment_n upon_o king_n because_o although_o king_n as_o king_n be_v superior_n to_o their_o subject_n yet_o as_o christian_n and_o christian_a king_n also_o they_o be_v as_o subject_a to_o the_o church_n as_o other_o because_o as_o above_o i_o have_v declare_v the_o reason_n why_o other_o christian_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o church_n and_o her_o visible_a head_n and_o pastor_n be_v because_o they_o be_v incorporate_v to_o the_o church_n and_o make_v member_n thereof_o by_o baptism_n and_o consequent_o subject_a to_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o head_n but_o king_n and_o emperor_n be_v as_o well_o incorporate_v as_o other_o christian_n be_v as_o well_o baptize_v and_o sign_v with_o as_o good_a and_o as_o undefaceable_a a_o character_n of_o baptism_n ergo_fw-la they_o be_v as_o subject_v and_o then_o say_v i_o if_o they_o be_v as_o subject_v they_o may_v by_o the_o church_n authority_n be_v punish_v aswell_o as_o other_o and_o not_o only_o spiritual_o but_o also_o temporallie_o as_o other_o may_v &_o if_o once_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o heretical_a and_o rebellious_a prince_n may_v be_v punish_v by_o the_o chief_a pastor_n by_o lesser_a penalty_n as_o confiscation_n of_o good_n infamy_n exile_n &_o such_o like_a punishment_n which_o be_v inflict_v on_o all_o obstinate_a heretic_n then_o i_o shall_v easy_o infer_v that_o they_o may_v by_o the_o church_n be_v deprive_v also_o of_o their_o kingdom_n that_o deprivation_n be_v a_o temporal_a punishment_n &_o so_o of_o the_o same_o order_n with_o the_o other_o and_o though_o it_o be_v great_a than_o many_o other_o yet_o why_o may_v it_o not_o be_v inflict_v for_o a_o enormous_a rebellion_n or_o injury_n against_o the_o church_n this_o i_o say_v to_o prove_v that_o prince_n by_o the_o church_n may_v be_v punish_v temporallie_o though_o the_o church_n always_o bear_v and_o aught_o to_o bear_v that_o respect_n to_o prince_n that_o she_o will_v not_o use_v temporal_a punishment_n against_o prince_n no_o nor_o any_o punishment_n at_o all_o but_o only_o when_o wholesome_a admonition_n will_v not_o serve_v and_o the_o church_n be_v much_o interest_v chapter_n xi_o the_o same_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o prince_n be_v prove_v by_o authority_n of_o general_n counsel_n out_o of_o which_o be_v gather_v for_o the_o same_o authority_n evident_a and_o convince_a argument_n 1._o the_o authority_n of_o a_o general_n council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la in_o respect_n of_o we_o to_o who_o a_o council_n be_v better_a know_v than_o scripture_n though_o in_o itself_o not_o of_o so_o great_a credit_n as_o scripture_n be_v the_o great_a in_o earth_n and_o under_o the_o cope_n of_o heaven_n for_o if_o a_o council_n especial_o general_n confirm_v by_o the_o chief_a pastor_n 15._o act._n 15._o notwithstanding_o that_o it_o represent_v the_o whole_a church_n contain_v all_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v in_o it_o assemble_v all_o the_o learning_n wisdom_n authority_n and_o sanctity_n yea_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o director_n may_v err_v who_o can_v err_v and_o after_o such_o authority_n reject_v who_o shall_v we_o find_v of_o great_a authority_n for_o interpret_n scripture_n decide_v controversy_n clear_v doubt_n and_o difficulty_n and_o enact_v wholesome_a law_n 18._o mat._n 18._o christ_n bid_v we_o hold_v he_o for_o no_o better_a than_o a_o ethnic_a and_o publican_n who_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n and_o where_o or_o when_o do_v the_o church_n more_o express_o deliver_v her_o mind_n or_o teach_v with_o more_o authority_n or_o command_v with_o more_o right_a to_o be_v obey_v then_o in_o a_o general_n council_n 16._o ●●au_fw-fr 14._o &_o 16._o and_o if_o in_o any_o place_n or_o community_n the_o holy_a ghost_n preside_v as_o certes_o christ_n promise_v his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o his_o church_n and_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n no_o doubt_n in_o a_o general_n council_n he_o teach_v all_o verity_n 15._o act._n 15._o hence_o it_o be_v that_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o council_n hold_v at_o jerusalem_n say_v visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritui_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la 3._o 1._o tim._n 3._o it_o have_v seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o us._n and_o if_o the_o church_n be_v ever_o the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v in_o a_o general_n council_n if_o ever_o christ_n fulfil_v his_o promise_n to_o be_v there_o where_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o his_o name_n seleve._n athan._n in_o epist_n de_fw-fr synodie_n arim._n &_o seleve._n he_o fulfil_v it_o in_o a_o general_n council_n wherefore_o athanasius_n call_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a sententiam_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la a_o apostolical_a sentence_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o marueile_v how_o any_o dare_v make_v any_o doubt_n 118._o epist_n ad_fw-la epict._n ambros_n li._n 5._o epist_n 32._o aug._n ep_v 162._o &_o 118._o or_o move_v any_o question_n concern_v any_o matter_n decide_v in_o that_o council_n s._n ambrose_n do_v give_v such_o credit_n to_o it_o that_o he_o say_v neither_o death_n nor_o sword_n shall_v separate_v he_o from_o that_o authority_n s._n augustine_n call_v the_o sentence_n of_o a_o general_n council_n the_o last_o sentence_n from_o which_o be_v no_o appeal_n and_o say_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n in_o the_o church_n be_v saluberrima_fw-la most_o wholesome_a 1._o ciril_n in_o dial_n 1._o s._n cirill_n of_o alexandria_n call_v a_o general_n council_n basim_fw-la &_o immobile_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la 28._o gregor_n epist_n 28._o a_o ground_n and_o immovable_a foundation_n s._n gregory_n the_o great_a honour_v the_o four_o first_o general_n counsel_n to_o which_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v equal_a in_o authority_n consist_v of_o as_o lawful_a bishop_n as_o the_o four_o ghospelle_n to_o wit_n for_o their_o infallibility_n this_o i_o think_v good_a to_o premise_v because_o widdrington_n and_o other_o seem_v not_o to_o give_v that_o respect_n to_o counsel_n as_o the_o authority_n of_o they_o require_v let_v we_o now_o see_v what_o the_o counsel_n say_v of_o this_o matter_n in_o hand_n and_o then_o let_v i_o see_v the_o face_n that_o dare_v face_n out_o so_o great_a authority_n 2._o and_o first_o let_v we_o see_v what_o the_o general_n council_n of_o lateran_n hold_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1215._o under_o innocentius_n the_o three_o determine_v in_o this_o matter_n 3._o surius_n praefat_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la conc._n platina_n in_o innocentie_n 3._o no_o man_n say_v laurentius_n surius_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o this_o council_n can_v doubt_v of_o the_o authority_n and_o generality_n of_o this_o council_n because_o in_o it_o be_v handle_v matter_n of_o religion_n &_o determine_v
thing_n he_o may_v say_v unless_o a_o anathema_n be_v add_v as_o always_o it_o be_v not_o that_o what_o the_o council_n define_v 7._o widdr._fw-la supra_fw-la n._n 7._o be_v define_v but_o as_o probable_a he_o except_v also_o that_o in_o a_o other_o of_o these_o definition_n it_o be_v define_v quod_fw-la romanus_n pontifex_fw-la si_fw-la canonicè_fw-la fuerit_fw-la ordinatus_fw-la meritis_fw-la b._n petri_n indubitanter_fw-la sanctus_fw-la efficitur_fw-la that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n if_o he_o be_v canonicallie_o ordain_v be_v make_v undoubtedlie_o a_o saint_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o s._n peter_n which_o be_v true_a take_v in_o the_o right_a sense_n because_o though_o every_o pope_n be_v not_o a_o saint_n in_o life_n and_o manner_n yet_o he_o be_v a_o saint_n in_o office_n because_o his_o office_n be_v holy_a and_o so_o even_o emperor_n be_v holy_a and_o therefore_o be_v style_v sacra_fw-la maiestas_fw-la sacred_a majesty_n 29._o bell_n li._n ●_o de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n c._n 8._o &_o tract_n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la sum_fw-la pont_n contra_fw-la barcl_n pag._n 28._o &_o seqq_fw-la schulck_n pag._n 29._o many_o other_o counsel_n i_o can_v allege_v as_o bellarmine_n and_o schulckennius_n have_v do_v but_o these_o shall_v suffice_v all_o general_n counsel_n yea_o and_o provincial_a also_o if_o they_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n according_a to_o the_o common_a opinion_n be_v of_o infallible_a authority_n who_o list_v to_o see_v the_o other_o counsel_n let_v he_o read_v the_o author_n prealleadge_v chapter_n xii_o by_o the_o fact_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o learned_a bishop_n of_o rome_n especial_o before_o gregory_n the_o seven_o the_o same_o power_n be_v confirm_v 1._o my_o argument_n which_o i_o shall_v bring_v in_o this_o chapter_n i_o ground_n in_o the_o fact_n of_o pope_n 8._o bellarm._n supra_fw-la &_o schulck_n pag_n 36._o azor._fw-la 10._o 2._o lib._n 10._o cap._n 8._o who_o bellarmine_n schulckenius_n and_o other_o common_o produce_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v prince_n for_o although_o pope_n may_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o fact_n yet_o if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o unjust_a and_o not_o to_o they_o a_o assure_a matter_n so_o many_o so_o learned_a and_o so_o holy_a pope_n will_v never_o have_v attempt_v such_o a_o thing_n and_o many_o of_o these_o deposition_n be_v decree_v in_o counsel_n also_o schulkenius_n have_v produce_v twenty_o eight_o pope_n that_o have_v denounce_v deposition_n against_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n i_o shall_v content_v myself_o with_o the_o pope_n who_o before_o gregory_n the_o seven_o have_v meddle_v with_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n partly_o because_o our_o adversary_n affirm_v that_o gregory_n the_o seven_o be_v the_o first_o that_o meddle_v with_o temporal_a state_n of_o prince_n partly_o because_o they_o confess_v that_o gregory_n the_o seven_o and_o other_o after_o he_o have_v depose_v prince_n partly_o also_o because_o they_o seem_v to_o give_v more_o credit_n to_o those_o former_a than_o these_o late_a pope_n although_o in_o deed_n all_o have_v the_o same_o authority_n of_o which_o only_o and_o not_o of_o sanctity_n of_o life_n deposition_n depend_v 2._o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a in_o two_o epistle_n 32._o greg._n li._n 11._o epist_n 10._o &_o lib._n 12._o epist_n 32._o threaten_v deposition_n not_o only_o against_o bishop_n and_o priest_n but_o also_o against_o king_n judge_n and_o whatsoever_o secular_a person_n that_o shall_v be_v so_o hardy_a as_o to_o infringe_v or_o violate_v privilege_n by_o he_o grant_v to_o the_o augustunenses_n and_o to_o the_o monastery_n of_o s._n medard_n for_o he_o say_v in_o the_o first_o place_n si_fw-la quis_fw-la regum_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o any_o king_n priest_n judge_n or_o secular_a person_n acknowledge_v the_o tenor_n of_o this_o our_o constitution_n shall_v presume_v to_o do_v contrary_a thereunto_o potestatis_fw-la honorisque_fw-la svi_fw-la dignitate_fw-la careat_fw-la let_v he_o want_v the_o dignity_n of_o his_o power_n and_o honour_n in_o the_o second_o place_n he_o say_v si_fw-la quis_fw-la autem_fw-la regnum_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o if_o any_o king_n prelate_n judge_n or_o other_o secular_a person_n whatsoever_o shall_v violate_v or_o contradict_v the_o decree_n of_o this_o apostolic_a authority_n and_o our_o command_n or_o shall_v disquiet_v and_o trouble_v the_o brother_n of_o the_o monastery_n or_o shall_v ordain_v otherwise_o then_o thus_o cuiuscunque_fw-la dignitatis_fw-la vel_fw-la sublimitatis_fw-la sit_fw-la honore_fw-la privetur_fw-la of_o what_o dignity_n or_o place_n soever_o he_o be_v let_v he_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o honour_n which_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o s._n gregory_n think_v he_o can_v deprive_v they_o as_o those_o also_o must_v needs_o have_v acknowledge_v who_o subscribe_v to_o the_o late_a of_o the_o foresay_v decree_n to_o wit_n thirty_o bishop_n of_o several_a country_n and_o province_n together_o with_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n of_o france_n 3._o alij_fw-la codrenus_n &_o zonaras_n in_o vita_fw-la leonis_fw-la isauri_fw-la sigebert_n in_o chron._n a_o 728._o &_o alij_fw-la s._n gregory_n the_o second_o as_o above_o deprive_v leo_n isauricus_n of_o italy_n and_o the_o gabelle_n of_o that_o province_n pont._n province_n platina_n in_o gregorio_n iii_o ado_n in_o chron_n a_o 744._o ce_v in_o vita_fw-la leonis_fw-la isauri_fw-la rheg_n li._n 2_o chron._n sigebert_n a_o 750._o paul_n aemil_n li._n 2._o de_fw-la rebus_fw-la gest_n franc_n fasc_fw-la temp_v in_o zach._n otho_n frise_v li._n 5._o hist_o c._n 55._o marian._n scot._n li._n 3._o paulus_n diac._n li._n 6_o deff_fw-mi longob_n ca._n 5._o bonif._n ep_v ad_fw-la zach._n pont._n some_o attribute_n this_o to_o gregory_n the_o three_o but_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o he_o confirm_v the_o former_a excommunication_n and_o deposition_n anno_fw-la 730._o 4._o zacharias_n pope_n depose_v childeric_n king_n of_o france_n free_v all_o his_o subject_n from_o their_o fidelity_n to_o he_o and_o give_v his_o kingdom_n to_o pipine_v father_n to_o charles_n the_o great_a and_o before_o maior_fw-la domus_fw-la this_o ado_n viennensis_n cedrenus_n rhegino_n sigibert_n paulus_n aemilive_a fasciculus_fw-la temporum_fw-la otho_fw-la frisingensis_n marianus_n scotus_n paulus_n diaconus_fw-la and_o s._n boniface_n do_v avouch_v true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o peer_n and_o noble_n of_o france_n desire_v it_o and_o send_v legate_n to_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o pope_n be_v he_o by_o who_o authority_n he_o be_v depose_v what_o soever_o barclaie_n and_o widdrington_n say_v to_o the_o contrary_n and_o therefore_o the_o old_a chronicon_fw-la of_o france_n set_v forth_o by_o pitheus_n say_v that_o the_o pope_n say_v it_o be_v better_a he_o shall_v be_v king_n who_o have_v all_o the_o power_n as_o pipine_n be_v mayor_n domus_fw-la have_v the_o king_n do_v nothing_o than_o he_o that_o have_v the_o name_n only_o dataque_fw-la authoritate_fw-la suâ_fw-la iussit_fw-la pipinum_fw-la francorum_fw-la regem_fw-la institui_fw-la and_o by_o power_n give_v command_v pipine_v to_o be_v institute_v king_n likewise_o the_o author_n of_o fasciculus_fw-la temporum_fw-la say_v ipse_fw-la zacharias_n reg●●_n francorum_n scilicet_fw-la childericum_fw-la deposuit_fw-la zacharias_n do_v depose_v the_o king_n of_o the_o french_a to_o wit_n childeric_n and_o after_o add_v et_fw-la hinc_fw-la patet_fw-la potestas_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la quanta_fw-la fuerit_fw-la hoc_fw-la tempore_fw-la qui_fw-la regnum_fw-la illud_fw-la famosissimum_fw-la transtulit_fw-la de_fw-la veris_fw-la haeredibus_fw-la ad_fw-la genus_fw-la pipini_n propter_fw-la legitimam_fw-la causam_fw-la and_o here_o appear_v how_o great_a be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n at_o this_o time_n see_v that_o he_o zacharias_n do_v transfer_v that_o most_o famous_a kingdom_n from_o the_o true_a heir_n to_o the_o family_n of_o pipine_n upon_o a_o just_a cause_n rhegino_n say_v per_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la iussit_fw-la pipinum_n regem_fw-la creari_fw-la by_o the_o apostolical_a authority_n he_o command_v pipine_v to_o be_v create_v king_n the_o same_o write_v marianus_n scotus_n say_v tunc_fw-la zacharias_n papa_n ex_fw-la authoritate_fw-la s._n petri_n apostoli_fw-la mandat_fw-la populo_fw-la francorum_fw-la ut_fw-la pipinus_n qui_fw-la potestate_fw-la regius_fw-la utebatur_fw-la etiam_fw-la nominis_fw-la dignitate_fw-la frueretur_fw-la then_o zacharias_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n peter_n the_o apostle_n command_v the_o people_n of_o the_o french_a that_o pipine_n who_o exercise_v the_o regal_a power_n shall_v also_o enjoy_v the_o name_n of_o the_o dignity_n beside_o this_o paulus_n aemilius_n relate_v that_o one_o burchardus_fw-la a_o bishop_n make_v a_o oration_n to_o he_o to_o persuade_v he_o to_o it_o for_o the_o pope_n at_o first_o fear_v to_o undertake_v a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n yet_o when_o he_o consider_v how_o all_o the_o french_a desire_v pipine_v francos_fw-la sacramento_n regi_fw-la childerico_n dicto_fw-la soluit_fw-la he_o free_v the_o french_a from_o their_o oath_n make_v to_o king_n childeric_n 5._o leo_n the_o three_o pope_n a_o holy_a prelate_n to_o who_o god_n miraculous_o restore_v both_o his_o eye_n and_o tongue_n of_o
the_o society_n of_o jesus_n relate_v william_n occam_n john_n of_o paris_n dante_n be_v aligerius_n joannes_n almainus_n etc._n etc._n do_v follow_v who_o i_o say_v read_v these_o word_n in_o widdrington_n can_v think_v otherwise_o then_o that_o these_o two_o author_n which_o widdrington_n produce_v for_o the_o second_o opinion_n be_v produce_v for_o his_o author_n though_o out_o of_o azorius_fw-la as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o author_n but_o it_o seem_v he_o be_v loath_a altogether_o to_o refuse_v these_o two_o author_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v azorius_fw-la make_v occam_n a_o classical_a author_n and_o gabriel_n and_o the_o nominalle_n follow_v he_o as_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o nominalle_n and_o suarez_n and_o vasquez_n do_v oft_o allege_v he_o for_o their_o opinion_n but_o what_o do_v all_o this_o prove_v but_o only_o that_o occam_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o skille_n in_o logic_n and_o philosophy_n and_o school_n divinity_n be_v a_o principal_a doctor_n among_o the_o nominalle_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n be_v often_o allege_v by_o catholic_a doctor_n yet_o notwithstanding_o this_o even_o azorius_fw-la suarez_n and_o vasquez_n do_v condemn_v occhams_n book_n which_o widdrington_n so_o esteem_v to_o wit_v those_o which_o he_o write_v against_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o authority_n and_o touch_v dante_n be_v he_o say_v trithemius_n affirm_v that_o dante_n be_v be_v most_o studious_a in_o holy_a scripture_n but_o be_v it_o that_o dante_n be_v after_o poetry_n and_o humanity_n study_v scripture_n yet_o he_o presume_v to_o study_v scripture_n without_o ground_n in_o divinity_n as_o erasmus_n laurentius_n valla_n and_o other_o do_v may_v fall_v into_o error_n as_o well_o as_o they_o and_o certain_o who_o so_o please_v to_o read_v his_o monarchy_n shall_v perceive_v in_o it_o more_o poetry_n poetical_a invention_n and_o slight_a and_o superficial_a philosophy_n then_o solid_a divinity_n whereas_o he_o reject_v bartolus_n censure_n of_o dante_n be_v as_o i_o have_v no_o leisure_n so_o will_v i_o not_o wrangle_v with_o he_o about_o that_o this_o shall_v suffice_v i_o that_o both_o of_o these_o two_o author_n be_v censure_v in_o the_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la set_v forth_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o diverse_a pope_n and_o although_o widdrington_n say_v that_o the_o compiler_n of_o the_o index_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o he_o know_v not_o for_o what_o cause_n diverse_a book_n in_o the_o index_n be_v condemn_v wherein_o he_o show_v little_a respect_n to_o superior_n yet_o at_o least_o those_o book_n which_o be_v censure_v in_o the_o index_n can_v be_v no_o less_o than_o scandalous_a and_o the_o author_n no_o less_o than_o infamous_a and_o so_o no_o fit_a witness_n nor_o author_n to_o make_v a_o opinion_n probable_a so_o that_o let_v widdrington_n choose_v what_o he_o will_n either_o he_o will_v have_v these_o author_n or_o he_o will_v not_o if_o he_o will_v they_o can_v give_v no_o credit_n to_o his_o opinion_n they_o have_v none_o themselves_o if_o he_o will_v not_o he_o have_v two_o author_n few_o and_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n may_v reject_v diverse_a other_o yea_o all_o the_o other_o author_n and_o so_o vae_fw-la soli_fw-la woe_n to_o he_o that_o stand_v post_o alone_o but_o he_o say_v that_o he_o produce_v not_o they_o alone_o but_o with_o many_o other_o catholic_a godly_a and_o learned_a author_n i_o answer_v that_o what_o the_o most_o of_o his_o author_n be_v i_o have_v already_o show_v and_o whereas_o he_o allege_v tertullian_n s._n ambrose_n s._n hierom_n and_o other_o schulkennius_n have_v answer_v he_o that_o they_o be_v by_o he_o misconstrue_v tertullian_n in_o his_o apologeticut_n say_v emperor_n be_v second_o to_o god_n and_o unde_n his_o only_o power_n i_o answer_v that_o then_o emperor_n be_v pagan_n and_o so_o not_o subject_a to_o the_o church_n but_o to_o god_n only_o i_o answer_v second_o that_o the_o emperor_n and_o every_o absolute_a king_n christian_n have_v no_o temporal_a superior_a but_o god_n yet_o as_o widdrington_n dare_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a power_n and_o authority_n in_o the_o chief_a pastor_n above_o he_o which_o may_v punish_v he_o spiritual_o so_o i_o say_v this_o power_n can_v in_o some_o case_n decree_v temporal_a punishment_n against_o he_o when_o spiritual_a punishment_n do_v not_o prevail_v whereas_o s._n ambrose_n s._n hierom_n sequentibus_fw-la in_o apol._n n._n 5._o &_o sequentibus_fw-la gregorius_n turonensis_n allege_v by_o tviddrington_n say_v the_o king_n be_v subject_a to_o no_o law_n nor_o punishment_n but_o of_o god_n they_o mean_v that_o he_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o his_o own_o or_o any_o temporal_a prince_n law_n and_o punishment_n but_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o ecclesiastical_a law_n &_o power_n and_o may_v by_o that_o power_n be_v chastise_v by_o spiritual_a censure_n and_o also_o temporal_a when_o the_o spiritual_a censure_n be_v contemn_v 8._o in_o apol._n num_fw-la 8._o and_o whereas_o s._n augustine_n pope_n nicholas_n &_o other_o allege_v by_o widdrington_a affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n have_v no_o material_a or_o temporal_a sword_n i_o grant_v it_o because_o they_o by_o a_o material_a sword_n understand_v temporal_a authority_n to_o use_v it_o and_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o by_o christ_n gift_n yet_o he_o have_v from_o christ_n as_o i_o have_v above_o prove_v a_o spiritual_a power_n by_o which_o he_o may_v command_v the_o temporal_a sword_n as_o widdrington_n himself_o acknowledge_v 197._o in_o apol._n n._n 196._o 197._o and_o by_o this_o power_n he_o can_v decree_v temporal_a punishment_n when_o the_o spiritual_a censure_n will_v not_o take_v place_n though_o neither_o he_o nor_o the_o church_n do_v execute_v these_o temporal_a punishment_n especial_o of_o death_n and_o blood_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n not_o beseem_v the_o church_n initio_fw-la s._n leo_n ep_n 93._o ad_fw-la turibium_fw-la asturien_n episcopum_fw-la parum_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la according_a to_o that_o of_o s_o leo_n ecclesiastica_fw-la lenitas_fw-la cruentas_fw-la refugit_fw-la ultiones_fw-la the_o ecclesiastical_a lenity_n eschew_v bloody_a revenge_n and_o thus_o much_o concern_v widdringtons_n author_n the_o examination_n of_o which_o author_n although_o it_o be_v not_o altogether_o necessary_a schulkennius_n have_v already_o examine_v they_o yet_o i_o think_v it_o some_o what_o requisite_a partly_o because_o schulkennius_n examination_n be_v in_o latin_a it_o can_v not_o see_v easy_o nor_o so_o general_o be_v make_v knowné_fw-fr to_o english_a man_n partly_o because_o i_o have_v examine_v diverse_a author_n which_o schulkennius_n do_v not_o and_o i_o have_v add_v here_o and_o there_o something_a as_o facile_a est_fw-la inventis_fw-la addere_fw-la for_o more_o ample_a explication_n and_o now_o also_o upon_o occasion_n of_o the_o sight_n of_o widdringtons_n appendix_n in_o which_o he_o answer_v to_o schulkennius_n examination_n i_o have_v brief_o refute_v some_o of_o his_o answer_n to_o schulkennius_n touch_v his_o author_n out_o of_o all_o this_o i_o gather_v that_o see_v that_o widdringtons_n author_n either_o make_v not_o for_o he_o or_o be_v of_o no_o or_o crack_a credit_n or_o be_v quite_o opposite_a to_o he_o which_o it_o seem_v he_o himself_o now_o see_v and_o therefore_o in_o his_o appendix_n reject_v two_o of_o they_o and_o defend_v not_o the_o rest_n though_o provoke_v by_o schulkennius_n i_o may_v say_v that_o widdrington_n amid_o all_o his_o author_n stand_v post_o alone_o and_o he_o but_o one_o oppose_v himself_o not_o only_o to_o his_o chief_a pastors_n censure_n but_o also_o against_o the_o current_n of_o all_o catholic_a and_o renown_v doctor_n and_o author_n chapter_n xiiii_o by_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o heretic_n the_o same_o against_o they_o be_v demonstrate_v and_o thence_o be_v infer_v that_o the_o question_n betwixt_o we_o and_o they_o be_v not_o so_o much_o whether_o the_o pope_n have_v any_o such_o authority_n as_o whether_o the_o pope_n or_o they_o have_v it_o 1._o 6._o see_v the_o protestat_n apology_n tract_n 3._o sect_n 2._o gretser_n in_o comment_n exeget_v c._n 7._o the_o book_n of_o dangerous_a pesitiont_n sleidan_n lib._n 18._o hist_o fol._n 263._o &_o li._n 22._o fol._n 345_o osiander_n in_o epit._n cent._n 16._o pag._n 526._o caluin_n in_o dan._n cap._n 6._o last_o i_o prove_v this_o by_o the_o protestant_n and_o reformer_n own_o confession_n and_o practice_v allege_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o protestant_n apology_n and_o many_o other_o author_n to_o begin_v with_o lutheran_n sleydan_n and_o osiander_n affirm_v that_o the_o magdeburgian_o and_o other_o lutheran_n minister_n defend_v resistance_n against_o the_o magistrate_n and_o prince_n as_o lawful_a for_o defence_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o thereby_o excuse_v the_o rebellion_n which_o the_o lutheran_n prince_n make_v against_o the_o emperor_n and_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o resist_v
per_fw-la quem_fw-la scandalum_fw-la hoc_fw-la venit_fw-la 18._o mat._n 18._o woe_n to_o that_o man_n by_o who_o this_o scandal_n come_v 16._o but_o to_o come_v to_o the_o examination_n of_o this_o clause_n although_o widdrington_n make_v no_o bone_n of_o it_o yet_o they_o that_o square_v all_o by_o conscience_n and_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o church_n find_v great_a and_o many_o difficulty_n not_o to_o be_v devour_v by_o any_o timorous_a conscience_n and_o first_o by_o all_o the_o argument_n which_o hitherto_o have_v be_v produce_v it_o be_v as_o manifest_v that_o this_o clause_n of_o the_o oath_n want_v verity_n which_o be_v the_o second_o companion_n and_o condition_n of_o a_o lawful_a oath_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o pope_n have_v authority_n to_o depose_v a_o prince_n not_o who_o soever_o but_o such_o a_o one_o in_o who_o be_v just_a cause_n of_o deposition_n to_o wit_n intolerable_a and_o rebellious_a tyranny_n against_o the_o church_n or_o some_o such_o like_a cause_n for_o if_o the_o lutheran_n caluinist_n and_o other_o heretic_n who_o hold_v that_o a_o prince_n who_o persecute_v their_o religion_n may_v be_v depose_v and_o kill_v can_v not_o take_v this_o oath_n unless_o they_o first_o depose_v that_o conscience_n and_o change_v their_o opinion_n much_o less_o can_v catholic_n who_o general_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v in_o some_o case_n depose_v prince_n and_o dispose_v of_o their_o kingdom_n with_o out_o do_v against_o their_o conscience_n 17._o 3._o widdr._n disp_n th._n de_fw-fr juran_n fidel_n ca._n 2._o sect_n 2._o nu_fw-la 3._o &_o ca._n 3._o sect_n 2._o n._n 3._o whereas_o widdrington_n answer_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v swear_v in_o this_o oath_n be_v not_o that_o king_n james_n be_v lawful_a king_n and_o can_v be_v depose_v but_o only_o that_o the_o party_n who_o swear_v sincere_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o be_v lawful_a king_n and_o can_v be_v depose_v and_o so_o at_o least_o they_o who_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v prince_n may_v with_o safe_a conscience_n and_o with_o out_o danger_n of_o perjury_n swear_v that_o they_o think_v he_o can_v be_v depose_v i_o must_v tell_v he_o first_o that_o if_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n the_o oath_n will_v little_o avail_v to_o the_o king_n security_n which_o yet_o the_o king_n say_v be_v intend_v by_o this_o oath_n by_o which_o he_o will_v distinguish_v betwixt_o catholic_n and_o be_v sure_a that_o they_o will_v stand_v for_o he_o though_o the_o pope_n shall_v depose_v he_o and_o will_v not_o out_o of_o that_o opinion_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n attempt_v any_o thing_n against_o he_o for_o although_o the_o subject_n swear_v that_o now_o at_o this_o present_a he_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v a_o prince_n yet_o see_v that_o many_o hold_v the_o contrary_a he_o may_v after_o the_o oath_n take_v change_v his_o mind_n either_o by_o confer_v with_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n or_o by_o read_v their_o book_n and_o shall_v not_o break_v his_o former_a oath_n he_o by_o that_o protest_v only_o and_o swear_v what_o then_o be_v his_o opinion_n secondlie_o this_o be_v but_o a_o mere_a evasion_n because_o he_o that_o take_v the_o oath_n swear_v from_o his_o hart_n and_o before_o god_n not_o only_o that_o he_o think_v so_o but_o also_o that_o it_o be_v so_o and_o that_o most_o assure_o it_o be_v so_o and_o this_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o oath_n do_v import_n which_o do_v make_v the_o swearer_n say_v that_o he_o do_v sincere_o acknowledge_v and_o testify_v in_o his_o conscience_n and_o before_o god_n that_o king_n james_n be_v lawful_a king_n and_o that_o by_o no_o authority_n he_o can_v be_v depose_v which_o mean_v the_o four_o clause_n also_o confirm_v where_o he_o swear_v that_o the_o position_n and_o doctrine_n which_o hold_v that_o prince_n excommunicate_v may_v be_v depose_v and_o murder_v be_v impious_a and_o heretical_a by_o which_o manner_n of_o speech_n he_o not_o only_o swear_v what_o he_o think_v but_o what_o absolute_o be_v to_o be_v houlden_v concern_v such_o a_o doctrine_n and_o position_n yea_o he_o do_v not_o swear_v at_o all_o what_o he_o think_v as_o though_o his_o think_n be_v the_o immediate_a object_n of_o his_o oath_n or_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o swear_v but_o by_o those_o word_n i_o do_v true_o and_o sincere_o acknowiedge_n profess_v and_o testify_v in_o my_o conscience_n before_o god_n and_o the_o world_n he_o do_v express_v his_o act_n of_o swear_v and_o protestation_n and_o by_o the_o ensew_a word_n that_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n king_n james_n be_v lawful_a and_o true_a king_n etc._n etc._n aend_v that_o the_o pope_n neither_o by_o himself_o nor_o by_o any_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o sea_n of_o rome_n or_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n with_o any_o other_o have_v any_o power_n or_o authority_n to_o depose_v the_o king_n etc._n etc._n he_o express_v the_o object_n of_o the_o oath_n and_o the_o thing_n swear_v to_o wit_n that_o king_n james_n be_v lawful_a king_n of_o which_o not_o english_a catholic_a make_v doubt_v and_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v he_o otherwise_o if_o by_o this_o clause_n be_v only_o intend_v that_o he_o that_o take_v the_o oath_n shall_v swear_v what_o he_o think_v it_o shall_v have_v be_v thus_o express_v i.a.b._n do_v true_o and_o sincere_o acknowledge_v profess_v and_o testify_v in_o my_o conscience_n before_o god_n and_o the_o world_n that_o i_o think_v and_o be_o persuade_v that_o king_n james_n be_v lawful_a king_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v he_o and_o i_o demand_v of_o widdrington_n if_o the_o king_n will_v make_v a_o oath_n to_o oblige_v his_o subject_n to_o swear_v not_o that_o they_o think_v but_o that_o indeed_o king_n james_n be_v lawful_a king_n and_o can_v not_o be_v depose_v how_o he_o can_v more_o plain_o have_v express_v it_o than_o he_o have_v and_o although_o widdrington_n be_v not_o now_o afraid_a to_o aver_v 62.63_o widdr._n in_o his_o newyearesgift_n pag._n 62.63_o that_o one_o may_v not_o only_o swear_v that_o he_o think_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v a_o prince_n but_o also_o that_o absolute_o he_o can_v not_o depose_v he_o yet_o who_o can_v lawful_o swear_v with_o such_o asseveration_n that_o the_o pope_n absolute_o have_v no_o such_o power_n know_v that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o argument_n and_o so_o great_a authority_n above_o produce_v for_o the_o contrary_a 18._o let_v we_o clear_v the_o matter_n by_o a_o example_n of_o widdrington_n his_o own_o alleadginge_v 11._o widdr._fw-la disp_n th._n cap._n 3._o sect_n 1._o num_fw-la 11._o there_o be_v two_o opinion_n among_o divine_n touch_v the_o conception_n of_o our_o b._n lady_n the_o thomist_n say_v she_o be_v conceive_v in_o original_a sin_n though_o by_o and_o by_o after_o sanctify_v even_o in_o her_o mother_n womb_n the_o scotist_n and_o other_o hold_v that_o she_o be_v sanctify_v in_o the_o first_o instant_n of_o her_o conception_n and_o so_o never_o contract_v original_a sin_n at_o all_o and_o this_o be_v the_o more_o common_a opinion_n and_o most_o conformable_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n celebrate_v the_o feast_n of_o she_o say_v conception_n though_o the_o other_o be_v not_o condemn_v but_o allow_v now_o i_o demand_v of_o widdrington_n who_o bring_v for_o himself_o this_o example_n whether_o a_o thomist_n can_v swear_v that_o our_o lady_n be_v conceive_v in_o original_a sin_n against_o the_o other_o opinion_n i_o grant_v to_o widdrington_n that_o he_o may_v swear_v that_o he_o think_v so_o if_o in_o deed_n he_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n for_o in_o swear_v that_o which_o he_o think_v he_o swear_v no_o falsehood_n but_o he_o can_v not_o swear_v with_o the_o former_a asseveration_n that_o absolute_o she_o be_v conceive_v in_o original_a sin_n he_o know_v that_o so_o many_o author_n hold_v the_o conrra●ie_n who_o be_v also_o countenance_v by_o the_o church_n practice_n and_o consequent_o know_v that_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o the_o contrary_n be_v true_a if_o not_o true_a the_o same_o and_o with_o more_o reason_n may_v i_o say_v to_o widdrington_n in_o our_o present_a case_n widdrington_n hold_v and_o so_o do_v some_o other_o who_o he_o produce_v but_o with_o how_o little_a reason_n and_o authority_n we_o have_v see_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v prince_n nor_o dispose_v of_o any_o temporal_a matter_n out_o of_o his_o own_o patrimony_n and_o kingdom_n and_o so_o though_o he_o ought_v to_o depose_v that_o conscience_n and_o opinion_n yet_o so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n he_o may_v swear_v that_o he_o think_v so_o and_o shall_v swear_v no_o falsehood_n if_o in_o deed_n he_o think_v so_o but_o yet_o he_o
or_o force_n and_o violence_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n convert_v the_o pope_n to_o conserve_v religion_n may_v give_v they_o a_o christian_a prince_n and_o send_v a_o army_n to_o put_v he_o in_o possession_n redempt_n s._n thom._n 2.2_o q._n 10_o art_n 10._o innoc._n ca._n super_fw-la his_fw-la de_fw-la voto_fw-la &_o voti_fw-la redempt_n this_o he_o proove_v out_o of_o s._n thomas_n and_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o divine_n who_o affirm_v that_o the_o chief_a pastor_n in_o favour_n of_o religion_n and_o for_o secure_v christian_n salvation_n may_v free_v christian_a slave_n from_o servitude_n and_o much_o more_o other_o christian_n who_o be_v subject_a not_o despoticè_fw-la but_o only_o politicè_fw-la yea_o this_o he_o proove_v out_o of_o scripture_n because_o in_o favour_n of_o faith_n a_o wife_n may_v be_v separate_v from_o a_o pagan_a husband_n divortiis_fw-la 1._o cor._n 7._o cap._n quanto_fw-la de_fw-la divortiis_fw-la much_o more_o a_o subject_n from_o his_o prince_n 28._o a_o four_o title_n be_v if_o the_o prince_n general_o molest_v innocent_n by_o unjust_a law_n and_o vexation_n as_o if_o a_o pagan_a king_n shall_v sacrifice_v innocent_a child_n to_o his_o god_n than_o any_o foreign_a prince_n especial_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o high_a pastor_n after_o he_o have_v warn_v the_o say_a king_n and_o see_v no_o redress_n may_v take_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o innocent_n upon_o he_o and_o make_v war_n upon_o the_o king_n for_o their_o defence_n for_o as_o innocent_n have_v right_a from_o god_n and_o nature_n to_o defend_v themselves_o so_o may_v another_o with_o their_o express_a or_o presume_a licence_n undertake_v their_o cause_n and_o wage_v war_n in_o their_o defence_n 29._o a_o five_o title_n may_v be_v ground_v in_o the_o pope_n temporal_a authority_n for_o he_o be_v a_o temporal_a prince_n may_v authorise_v the_o duke_n of_o urbine_n for_o example_n or_o other_o his_o feudatary_n to_o invade_v england_n for_o satisfaction_n of_o injury_n if_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v do_v he_o any_o for_o so_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v heretofore_o invade_v france_n for_o injury_n receive_v and_o may_v again_o hereafter_o if_o by_o the_o french_a the_o like_a injury_n shall_v be_v offer_v and_o yet_o this_o clause_n of_o the_o oath_n make_v the_o catholic_a to_o swear_v that_o the_o pope_n neither_o by_o himself_o nor_o by_o any_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o sea_n of_o rome_n or_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n with_o any_o other_o have_v any_o power_n or_o authority_n to_o depose_v the_o king_n etc._n etc._n or_o to_o annoy_v he_o or_o invade_v his_o country_n etc._n etc._n 30._o another_o title_n of_o invade_v a_o prince_n country_n or_o resist_v he_o may_v be_v this_o if_o prince_n contrary_a to_o the_o pope_n commandment_n and_o like_v of_o all_o other_o prince_n will_v call_v the_o moor_n or_o turk_n into_o spain_n france_n or_o germany_n and_o command_v their_o subject_n to_o assist_v they_o be_v they_o bind_v to_o obey_v or_o rather_o be_v they_o not_o bind_v to_o resist_v what_o they_o can_v and_o see_v that_o the_o bring_n of_o the_o moor_n or_o turk_n into_o those_o country_n may_v be_v prejudicial_a to_o all_o christian_a country_n and_o even_o to_o christian_a faith_n may_v not_o other_o prince_n especial_o command_v by_o their_o chief_a visible_a pastor_n invade_v their_o country_n to_o hinder_v the_o entrance_n of_o such_o enemy_n and_o may_v nor_o yea_o ought_v not_o the_o emperor_n and_o those_o prince_n subject_n to_o assist_v they_o against_o their_o own_o prince_n for_o the_o common_a good_a of_o christendom_n and_o yet_o by_o this_o clause_n we_o be_v command_v to_o swear_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o no_o case_n can_v authorise_v subject_n or_o prince_n to_o annoy_v his_o majesty_n of_o england_n or_o any_o his_o country_n 31._o wherefore_o although_o i_o will_v not_o aver_v that_o christian_a prince_n may_v have_v these_o title_n to_o invade_v england_n or_o any_o part_n of_o it_o or_o to_o make_v war_n either_o against_o the_o prince_n to_o who_o i_o wish_v after_o long_a life_n hete_n eternity_n in_o heaven_n or_o country_n which_o be_v most_o dear_a unto_o i_o yet_o by_o this_o it_o may_v easy_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o evident_a as_o widdrington_n will_v make_v it_o that_o this_o oath_n may_v be_v take_v with_o such_o a_o assure_a asseveration_n and_o in_o those_o so_o general_a term_n victoria_n have_v allege_v so_o many_o title_n of_o just_a war_n which_o make_v this_o clause_n at_o least_o doubtful_a and_o so_o not_o to_o be_v swear_v 32._o 3._o widdr._n in_o disp_n the_o ol_n c._n 3._o sect_n 4._o n._n 3._o widdrington_n answer_v that_o in_o this_o clause_n be_v not_o deny_v that_o the_o common_a wealth_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n but_o only_o be_v aver_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v either_o by_o himself_o or_o by_o the_o common_a wealth_n or_o any_o other_o mean_n and_o say_v he_o if_o the_o pope_n can_v by_o himself_o neither_o can_v he_o by_o the_o common_a wealth_n and_o this_o as_o he_o think_v he_o convince_v by_o example_n for_o say_v he_o as_o a_o stone_n neither_o with_o a_o man_n neither_o by_o a_o man_n have_v power_n to_o understand_v and_o disoourse_n and_o neither_o by_o the_o common_a wealth_n nor_o with_o the_o common_a wealth_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n because_o it_o have_v no_o power_n of_o itself_o to_o discourse_n or_o depose_v so_o if_o we_o suppose_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o himself_o have_v no_o power_n to_o depose_v a_o prince_n he_o can_v by_o the_o common_a wealth_n depose_v he_o though_o otherwife_n the_o common_a wealth_n can_v and_o although_o say_v widdrington_n these_o example_n be_v not_o like_a in_o all_o point_n because_o the_o stone_n be_v not_o capable_a at_o all_o of_o discourse_v or_o depose_n the_o pope_n be_v at_o least_o capable_a of_o authority_n to_o depose_v prince_n if_o god_n will_v give_v it_o he_o yet_o say_v he_o if_o we_o suppose_v that_o the_o pope_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la have_v no_o power_n to_o depose_v than_o a_o good_a argument_n may_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o these_o similitude_n for_o as_o the_o stone_n can_v by_o man_n or_o with_o a_o man_n discourse_n or_o depose_v king_n because_o it_o have_v no_o power_n of_o itself_o so_o to_o do_v so_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o depose_v prince_n as_o widdrington_n suppose_v it_o can_v be_v or_o be_v not_o yet_o sufficient_o prove_v that_o he_o have_v he_o can_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la by_o the_o common_a wealth_n depose_v 33._o but_o i_o shall_v make_v widdrington_n to_o see_v by_o other_o example_n and_o reason_n also_o how_o little_a these_o his_o example_n avail_v for_o suppose_v the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v a_o prince_n by_o himself_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v he_o can_v yet_o he_o may_v do_v it_o by_o a_o temporal_a prince_n or_o the_o common_a wealth_n and_o that_o also_o in_o widdringtons_n opinion_n this_o i_o prove_v first_o by_o example_n for_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o philosopher_n who_o say_v that_o no_o substance_n be_v immediate_o operative_a or_o active_a the_o substance_n or_o substantial_a form_n of_o fire_n can_v not_o produce_v fire_n immediate_o by_o itself_o and_o yet_o it_o can_v per_fw-la calorem_fw-la &_o siccitatem_fw-la by_o heat_n and_o siccity_n which_o be_v the_o fire_n instrument_n and_o active_a virtue_n and_o so_o we_o say_v not_o only_o that_o heat_n produce_v heat_n but_o also_o that_o fire_n produce_v heat_n though_o not_o immediate_o but_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o foresay_a quality_n so_o the_o sun_n engender_v metal_n and_o mineral_n in_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o produce_v as_o a_o universal_a cause_n plant_n and_o herb_n and_o yet_o not_o by_o his_o immediate_a substance_n but_o by_o mediation_n of_o his_o light_n and_o influence_n so_o the_o will_n of_o man_n be_v cause_n of_o walk_v speaking_z and_o other_o external_a operation_n yet_o not_o by_o herself_o immediate_o but_o by_o mediation_n of_o other_o faculty_n which_o be_v dependent_a on_o she_o so_o a_o prince_n that_o have_v neither_o hand_n nor_o foot_n or_o if_o he_o have_v shall_v use_v neither_o and_o so_o can_v not_o kill_v his_o enemy_n yet_o may_v he_o do_v it_o by_o his_o captain_n if_o he_o shall_v command_v he_o and_o if_o at_o his_o command_n the_o captain_n shall_v kill_v the_o prince_n also_o shall_v be_v say_v to_o have_v kill_v yea_o &_o to_o have_v be_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o the_o murder_n though_o immediate_o he_o either_o can_v not_o or_o do_v not_o strike_v any_o stroke_n wherefore_o widdrington_n may_v have_v call_v to_o mind_n that_o many_o time_n a_o agent_n may_v work_v a_o effect_n by_o another_o which_o it_o can_v not_o by_o itself_o immediate_o if_o the_o other_o cause_n which_o it_o use_v be_v
according_a to_o a_o probable_a opinion_n though_o he_o command_v a_o thing_n against_o the_o subject_n opinion_n and_o that_o also_o probable_a but_o the_o pope_n widdrington_n lawful_a superior_a command_v widdrington_n not_o to_o defend_v the_o oath_n of_o pretend_a allegiance_n command_v at_o least_o according_a to_o a_o probable_a opinion_n ergo_fw-la widdrington_n be_v bind_v to_o obey_v the_o pope_n in_o this_o against_o his_o own_o opinion_n though_o that_o be_v also_o probable_a the_o mayor_n vasquez_n prove_v because_o the_o subject_n may_v follow_v any_o man_n probable_a opinion_n and_o consequent_o his_o superior_n that_o also_o be_v probable_a and_o if_o he_o may_v he_o must_v because_o his_o superior_a command_v the_o minor_a widdrington_n grant_v and_o can_v not_o deny_v the_o conclusion_n than_o follow_v to_o wit_n that_o widdrington_n be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n and_o under_o pain_n of_o mortal_a sin_n the_o thing_n command_v be_v of_o great_a importance_n to_o desist_v from_o defend_v the_o oath_n the_o pope_n have_v condemn_v it_o and_o command_v he_o not_o to_o defend_v it_o to_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v misinform_v and_o that_o therefore_o his_o declaration_n and_o commandment_n ground_v therein_o do_v not_o bind_v in_o conscience_n be_v but_o a_o poor_a stay_n for_o widdringtons_n conscience_n because_o 53._o disp_n th._n c._n 10._o sec_fw-la 1._o n._n 53._o as_o widdrington_n allege_v out_o of_o father_n parson_n letter_n he_o inform_v himself_o of_o seven_o or_o eight_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a divine_n in_o rome_n and_o since_o he_o have_v hear_v what_o widdrington_n himself_o can_v suggest_v to_o allege_v his_o author_n be_v to_o little_a purpose_n they_o be_v as_o above_o we_o have_v see_v few_o and_o of_o little_a or_o no_o authority_n to_o say_v the_o pope_n may_v err_v will_v as_o little_a seve_o widdringtons_n turn_n because_o every_o lawful_a superior_a be_v to_o be_v obey_v when_o he_o command_v according_a to_o a_o probable_a opinion_n though_o in_o other_o thing_n and_o even_o in_o this_o he_o may_v err_v to_o answer_v that_o he_o be_v then_o only_o bind_v to_o obey_v his_o superior_a when_o there_o be_v no_o notable_a danger_n or_o damage_n in_o obey_v be_v as_o little_a to_o the_o purpose_n partly_o because_o the_o opinion_n according_a to_o which_o the_o pope_n command_v be_v more_o than_o probable_a as_o above_o be_v prove_v partly_o because_o though_o there_o may_v be_v temporal_a damage_n in_o refuse_v to_o take_v the_o oath_n yet_o for_o widdrington_n not_o to_o defend_v it_o by_o public_a writing_n there_o be_v no_o more_o danger_n to_o he_o they_o to_o many_o more_o who_o never_o set_v pen_n to_o paper_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o it_o rather_o widdrington_n shall_v fear_v the_o spiritual_a danger_n and_o damage_n which_o be_v incur_v either_o by_o defend_v or_o take_v it_o as_o his_o chief_a pastor_n have_v assure_v he_o 75._o secondlie_o i_o wish_v widdrington_n to_o reflect_v upon_o his_o own_o self_n widdringt●_n the_o socona_n good_a counsel_n to_o widdringt●_n and_o the_o state_n of_o life_n to_o which_o he_o be_v call_v the_o dangerous_a course_n he_o run_v and_o how_o far_o he_o be_v proceed_v in_o it_o how_o heavy_a a_o enterprise_n he_o have_v undertake_v and_o how_o hardly_o he_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o go_v through_o with_o it_o who_o applaud_v he_o in_o it_o who_o condemn_v he_o what_o author_n he_o follow_v who_o he_o contradict_v who_o he_o make_v glad_a who_o he_o contristate_v what_o a_o schism_n as_o it_o be_v he_o have_v make_v amongst_o some_o of_o his_o catholic_a brethren_n with_o what_o doubt_n and_o scrouple_n he_o have_v trouble_v the_o mind_n of_o other_o how_o many_o well_o meaning_n and_o before_o very_o zealous_a catholic_n he_o have_v induce_v to_o take_v the_o oath_n and_o what_o scope_n he_o have_v give_v to_o the_o persecutor_n to_o vex_v and_o afflict_v those_o who_o out_o of_o conscience_n refuse_v to_o take_v it_o how_o little_a grateful_a he_o have_v show_v himself_o to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a which_o breed_v &_o bring_v he_o up_o how_o much_o to_o officious_a to_o her_o adversary_n his_o chief_a applauder_n what_o little_a comfort_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o his_o death_n he_o shall_v reap_v of_o these_o his_o labour_n how_o much_o discomfort_n 76._o and_o to_o you_o catholic_n wholesome_a counsel_n to_o the_o catholic_n worthy_a constant_a and_o renown_a catholic_n i_o give_v this_o wholesome_a counsel_n see_v that_o this_o oath_n so_o much_o derogate_v from_o the_o church_n and_o her_o chief_a pastors_n honour_n and_o authority_n and_o give_v such_o scope_n to_o her_o enemy_n and_o persecutor_n as_o you_o have_v hitherto_o defend_v &_o still_o save_v some_o few_o do_v this_o church_n her_o faith_n and_o authority_n and_o have_v sustain_v loss_n of_o liberty_n livinge_n and_o life_n rather_o than_o you_o will_v consent_v to_o the_o least_o injury_n which_o be_v offer_v she_o so_o do_v you_o not_o by_o take_v this_o oath_n falsify_v your_o faith_n to_o christ_n his_o church_n &_o chief_a vicaire_n you_o have_v pass_v the_o rage_a storm_n and_o tempest_n of_o a_o sea_n of_o persecution_n make_v not_o shipwreck_n of_o all_o your_o spiritual_a merchandise_n and_o merit_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o haven_n you_o have_v long_o since_o lay_v your_o hand_n to_o the_o plough_n do_v not_o now_o look_v back_o 14_o luc._n 9_o exod._n 14_o you_o have_v almost_o past_a the_o red_a sea_n of_o persecution_n which_o hitherto_o have_v yield_v you_o passage_n go_v not_o back_o to_o egypt_n for_o than_o you_o will_v never_o come_v to_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n you_o have_v run_v a_o long_a time_n in_o the_o race_n 9_o 1._o cor._n 9_o faint_v not_o now_o before_o the_o goal_n rather_o look_v up_o to_o heaven_n 5._o gal._n 5._o and_o you_o shall_v see_v the_o angel_n hold_v in_o his_o hand_n a_o crown_n of_o glory_n currebatis_fw-la benè_fw-la quis_fw-la vos_fw-la impedivit_fw-la veritati_fw-la non_fw-la obedire_fw-la you_o run_v well_o who_o hinder_v you_o not_o to_o obey_v the_o truth_n persuasio_fw-la haec_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la qui_fw-la vocat_fw-la vos_fw-la ibid._n ibid._n this_o persuasion_n to_o take_v this_o oath_n be_v not_o of_o he_o ibid._n ibid._n that_o call_v you_o it_o be_v of_o the_o enemy_n who_o enuy_v that_o you_o run_v so_o well_o but_o ego_fw-la confido_fw-la in_o vobis_fw-la quod_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la sapietis_fw-la i_o have_v confidence_n in_o you_o in_o our_o lord_n that_o you_o will_v be_v of_o no_o other_o mind_n nor_o do_v otherwise_o then_o become_v good_a catholic_n and_o such_o catholic_n also_o who_o have_v be_v try_v and_o purge_v in_o the_o furnace_n on_o who_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n his_o saint_n and_o all_o the_o world_n be_v fix_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n qui_fw-la conturbat_fw-la vos_fw-la por_fw-mi tabit_fw-la iudicium_fw-la suum_fw-la quicunque_fw-la est_fw-la ille_fw-la he_o that_o trouble_v you_o he_o that_o have_v cast_v stumble_v block_n and_o scandal_n in_o your_o way_n he_o that_o like_o the_o serpent_n have_v buzz_v in_o your_o ear_n shall_v bear_v the_o judgement_n of_o almighty_a god_n whosoever_o he_o be_v 77._o and_o as_o i_o desire_v you_o shall_v be_v constant_a in_o your_o faith_n and_o religion_n obedient_a to_o the_o church_n and_o her_o chief_a visible_a pastor_n in_o all_o which_o be_v belong_v to_o their_o authority_n so_o i_o exhort_v you_o to_o obey_v the_o king_n majesty_n your_o soveraige_a lord_n and_o liege_n in_o all_o thing_n which_o appertain_v to_o his_o regal_a power_n and_o so_o to_o give_v to_o god_n his_o church_n and_o chief_a vicaire_n their_o due_n homage_n and_o respect_n as_o you_o deny_v not_o to_o the_o king_n tribute_n 13._o rom._n 13._o custom_n fear_n honour_n obedience_n fidelity_n and_o faithful_a service_n &_o not_o to_o think_v that_o this_o which_o i_o have_v say_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o her_o chief_a visible_a pastor_n have_v be_v to_o detract_v any_o the_o least_o due_a right_a and_o respect_n from_o our_o temporal_a lord_n and_o sovereign_n much_o less_o to_o give_v any_o way_n or_o scope_n to_o plot_n conspiracy_n or_o libel_n which_o may_v irritate_fw-la the_o prince_n purchase_v no_o good_a but_o rather_o procure_v disgrace_n and_o prejudice_n to_o the_o cause_n for_o which_o you_o suffer_v for_o as_o s._n peter_n tell_v you_o 2._o 1._o pet._n 2._o what_o glory_n be_v it_o if_o sin_v and_o buffet_v you_o suffer_v but_o if_o do_v well_o you_o sustain_v patient_o that_o be_v thank_v before_o god_n for_o unto_o this_o you_o be_v call_v for_o it_o be_v better_a as_o the_o same_o apostle_n assure_v you_o to_o suffer_v as_o do_v well_o if_o the_o will_n of_o god_n will_v have_v it_o so_o then_o do_v ill_o 3._o 1._o pet._n 3._o and_o therefore_o 4._o 1._o pet._n 4._o
transmarinas_fw-la epistolas_fw-la diriget_fw-la swear_v whether_o after_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o king_n you_o desire_v that_o his_o son_n hildericus_n shall_v be_v king_n or_o that_o none_o of_o you_o will_v wr●●e_v or_o send_v letter_n beyond_o the_o sea_n at_o this_o oath_n though_o in_o show_v altogether_o lawful_a the_o catholic_a bishop_n stagger_v and_o some_o of_o they_o suspect_v all_o that_o come_v from_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n church_n flat_o refuse_v it_o other_o lest_o the_o people_n shall_v say_v that_o vitio_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la qui_fw-la iurare_fw-la noluerunt_fw-la non_fw-la fuerint_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la restiturae_fw-la by_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o priest_n that_o will_v not_o swear_v the_o church_n be_v not_o restore_v accept_v of_o it_o but_o by_o and_o by_o appear_v the_o hide_a malice_n of_o the_o persecutor_n for_o he_o take_v advantage_n thereby_o as_o well_o against_o those_o that_o swear_v as_o those_o that_o refuse_v to_o swear_v to_o they_o that_o swear_v his_o officer_n say_v why_o against_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v you_o swear_v the_o king_n command_v that_o you_o shall_v never_o visit_v your_o city_n and_o church_n again_o but_o that_o be_v banish_v you_o shall_v take_v land_n to_o till_o colonatus_fw-la jure_fw-la by_o right_a of_o farmer_n and_o new_a inhabitant_n yet_o with_o this_o condition_n also_o that_o you_o neither_o sing_v service_n nor_o pray_v nor_o carry_v book_n to_o read_v nor_o baptise_v nor_o give_v order_n nor_o reconcile_v any_o to_o they_o that_o refuse_v to_o swear_v they_o say_v quia_fw-la regnum_fw-la silij_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la non_fw-la optatis_fw-la idcirco_fw-la iurare_fw-la noluistis_fw-la etc._n etc._n because_o you_o desire_v not_o that_o the_o son_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o king_n shall_v reign_v after_o his_o father_n therefore_o you_o will_v not_o swear_v for_o which_o cause_n you_o be_v command_v to_o be_v banish_v into_o the_o ●e_n of_o corsica_n to_o hew_v tree_n for_o the_o king_n building_n so_o that_o in_o extraordinary_a oath_n the_o heretical_a magistrate_n have_v sinister_a intention_n and_o hide_a meaning_n and_o under_o fair_a pretence_n couch_v malice_n and_o therefore_o all_o such_o oath_n be_v by_o zealous_a catholic_n to_o be_v suspect_v much_o more_o this_o oath_n which_o in_o so_o plain_a word_n abiur_v the_o pope_n lawful_a authority_n which_o counsel_n and_o chief_a doctor_n do_v give_v he_o and_o which_o he_o have_v practise_v so_o many_o year_n without_o contradiction_n of_o all_o save_v heretic_n schismatics_n and_o some_o few_o obscure_a author_n aught_o to_o be_v houlden_v as_o suspect_v and_o as_o such_o of_o all_o timorous_a conscience_n to_o be_v avoid_v 21._o wherefore_o worthy_a catholic_n use_v the_o benefit_n of_o persecution_n for_o that_o your_o good_a to_o which_o by_o god_n it_o be_v ordain_v or_o permit_v let_v it_o serve_v for_o a_o wind_n to_o blow_v away_o your_o chaff_n of_o imperfection_n not_o to_o scatter_v the_o solid_a wheat_n of_o your_o faith_n charity_n zeal_n fervour_n and_o constancy_n let_v it_o serve_v for_o a_o red_a sea_n to_o pass_v to_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n with_o the_o israelite_n not_o to_o drown_v you_o with_o the_o egyptian_n let_v it_o serve_v for_o a_o gale_n of_o wind_n to_o set_v you_o onward_o to_o the_o haven_n of_o heaven_n not_o for_o a_o boisterous_a blast_n to_o drive_v you_o on_o the_o rock_n of_o scandal_n let_v it_o serve_v for_o a_o blast_n to_o enkindle_v not_o to_o blow_v out_o your_o fire_n let_v it_o serve_v for_o a_o fire_n to_o purge_v you_o like_o gold_n not_o to_o melt_v and_o consume_v you_o like_o wax_n or_o lead_v to_o harden_v you_o as_o vessel_n sit_v to_o receive_v god_n spirit_n and_o to_o carry_v his_o name_n not_o to_o break_v you_o in_o the_o heat_n and_o my_o dear_a i_o use_v s._n peter_n word_n nolite_fw-la peregrinari_fw-la in_o feruore_fw-la qui_fw-la ad_fw-la tentationem_fw-la vobis_fw-la sit_fw-la quasi_fw-la aliquid_fw-la vobis_fw-la contingat_fw-la 1._o pet._n 4._o think_v it_o not_o strange_a in_o the_o fervour_n which_o be_v to_o you_o for_o a_o tentation_n as_o though_o some_o new_a thing_n happen_v unto_o you_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n for_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n to_o suffer_v persecution_n but_o comfort_n yourselves_o that_o in_o suffer_v for_o justice_n you_o be_v companion_n to_o christ_n the_o prophet_n apostle_n and_o martyr_n take_v heed_n that_o none_o of_o you_o suffer_v for_o disloyalty_n or_o ill_a demeanour_n but_o whosoever_o suffer_v as_o a_o true_a christian_a that_o be_v as_o a_o catholic_a roman_a for_o these_o two_o always_o go_v together_o let_v he_o not_o be_v ashamed_a but_o let_v he_o glorine_n god_n 1._o pet._n 2._o for_o such_o suffering_n be_v but_o to_o purge_v he_o to_o try_v he_o to_o associate_v he_o to_o christ_n and_o his_o faith_n to_o mark_v he_o for_o one_o of_o christ_n soldier_n to_o conform_v and_o configurate_a he_o here_o to_o christ_n patient_a that_o he_o may_v be_v configurate_v in_o heaven_n to_o christ_n triumphant_a wherefore_o pluck_v up_o your_o heart_n and_o call_v to_o mind_n your_o former_a victory_n hitherto_o you_o never_o encounter_v but_o you_o overcome_v and_o prove_v strong_a them_z all_o the_o tibornes_n rack_n and_o gibbet_n than_o all_o the_o engine_n and_o minister_n of_o cruelty_n do_v not_o now_o by_o dastardie_n and_o cowardlike_a yield_a obscure_a your_o former_a glory_n and_o mortify_v your_o former_a merit_n but_o see_v that_o you_o have_v of_o humane_a frailty_n yield_v in_o this_o one_o point_n let_v this_o your_o disgrace_n and_o foil_n receive_v thereby_o serve_v for_o a_o busset_a of_o satan_n to_o humiliate_v you_o with_o s._n paul_n 2._o cor._n 12._o lest_o the_o greatness_n of_o your_o revelation_n as_o it_o be_v a_o reveal_v doctrine_n to_o count_v it_o honour_n and_o fel●●itie_n to_o suffer_v for_o christ_n may_v extol_v you_o let_v it_o serve_v for_o a_o memorial_n to_o put_v you_o in_o mind_n that_o heretofore_o by_o christ_n and_o his_o grace_n not_o by_o your_o own_o force_n you_o overcome_v let_v it_o serve_v as_o a_o monitour_n to_o admonish_v you_o sit_v in_o the_o triumphant_a chariot_n of_o your_o former_a victory_n that_o you_o be_v of_o yourselves_o but_o mortal_a and_o frail_a man_n let_v this_o fall_v make_v you_o rise_v with_o a_o rebound_v to_o great_a courage_n than_o ever_o that_o so_o all_o thing_n even_o fall_v may_v cooperate_v to_o your_o good_a rom._n 8._o 22._o but_o my_o zeal_n of_o your_o honour_n worthy_a catholic_n have_v transport_v i_o and_o make_v i_o not_o only_o to_o exceed_v the_o limit_n of_o a_o epistle_n but_o also_o to_o be_v more_o officious_a then_o perchance_o grateful_a to_o some_o who_o may_v think_v that_o if_o i_o know_v or_o at_o least_o feel_v the_o misery_n which_o they_o endure_v i_o shall_v rather_o condescend_v unto_o they_o with_o widdrington_n then_o urge_v they_o so_o much_o to_o refuse_v this_o oath_n who_o refusal_n be_v so_o dangerous_a to_o their_o person_n and_o pernicious_a to_o their_o estate_n but_o i_o have_v for_o such_o a_o answer_n in_o readiness_n to_o wit_n that_o i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a of_o your_o extreme_a affliction_n and_o that_o as_o i_o protest_v i_o never_o think_v of_o your_o sufferance_n serious_o but_o i_o suffer_v with_o you_o sensible_o and_o will_v if_o so_o i_o may_v ease_v you_o spend_v my_o blood_n and_o hazard_v my_o life_n even_o for_o a_o relaxation_n from_o your_o temporal_a misery_n but_o be_v persuade_v as_o i_o be_o and_o stand_v upon_o so_o sure_a ground_n as_o this_o treatise_n will_v manifest_v unto_o you_o as_o that_o physician_n be_v unworthy_a his_o profession_n that_o will_v prescribe_v only_o such_o physic_n to_o his_o patient_n as_o be_v please_v to_o his_o taste_n not_o care_v how_o contrary_a it_o be_v to_o his_o health_n so_o if_o i_o with_o a_o widdrington_n will_v seek_v to_o soothe_v and_o suit_v a_o worldly_a humour_n and_o so_o my_o speech_n be_v please_v to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n little_a regard_n the_o health_n and_o state_n of_o your_o soul_n and_o security_n of_o your_o conscience_n i_o be_v unworthy_a the_o room_n i_o fill_v the_o person_n i_o sustain_v and_o the_o function_n of_o a_o spiritual_a physician_n which_o i_o have_v undertake_v wherefore_o if_o my_o physic_n be_v distasteful_a refuse_v it_o not_o it_o be_v healthful_a neither_o be_v you_o angry_a with_o the_o physician_n for_o prescribe_v so_o bitter_a a_o potion_n he_o thereby_o intend_v your_o good_a and_o if_o my_o speech_n seem_v too_o plain_a think_v they_o be_v sincere_a and_o speak_v out_o of_o love_n if_o sharp_a and_o bite_a persuade_v yourselves_o that_o meliora_fw-la sunt_fw-la vulnera_fw-la diligentis_fw-la quàm_fw-la fraudulenta_fw-la oscula_fw-la odientis_fw-la prou._n 27._o better_o be_v the_o wound_n of_o he_o that_o love_v than_o the_o fraudulent_a kiss_n of_o he_o
that_o hate_v this_o i_o be_o sure_a i_o give_v you_o no_o other_o counsel_n than_o i_o will_v follow_v myself_o who_o have_v that_o opinion_n of_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o this_o oath_n that_o i_o will_v loose_v live_n liberty_n and_o life_n rather_o than_o take_v it_o not_o that_o i_o will_v not_o give_v that_o to_o caesar_n which_o be_v due_a to_o caesar_n but_o that_o i_o will_v not_o take_v from_o god_n which_o appertain_v to_o god_n not_o that_o i_o neglect_v a_o temporal_a life_n and_o state_n but_o that_o i_o prefer_v the_o spiritual_a not_o that_o i_o despise_v the_o prince_n to_o who_o i_o acknowledge_v all_o tempor_n all_o obedience_n and_o honour_n but_o that_o i_o honour_v the_o pastor_n who_o have_v the_o rule_n of_o my_o soul_n not_o that_o i_o regard_v not_o the_o common_a wealth_n but_o that_o i_o desire_v to_o live_v and_o die_v a_o obedient_a son_n of_o the_o church_n not_o that_o i_o fear_v not_o they_o who_o can_v kill_v the_o body_n but_o that_o i_o fear_v god_n more_o who_o can_v kill_v the_o soul_n matt._n 10._o 23._o and_o my_o intention_n and_o project_n i_o protest_v of_o dedicate_a this_o treatise_n unto_o you_o be_v not_o to_o irritate_fw-la any_o prince_n but_o only_o to_o declare_v his_o authority_n and_o office_n not_o to_o flatter_v any_o prelate_n but_o only_o to_o defend_v his_o right_n not_o to_o increase_v your_o persecution_n but_o to_o rid_v you_o of_o this_o anathema_n which_o have_v prolong_v it_o not_o to_o add_v affliction_n to_o affliction_n but_o courage_n to_o your_o faint_a and_o comfort_n to_o your_o grief_n to_o help_v they_o to_o rise_v that_o be_v sallen_v and_o to_o confirm_v they_o that_o stand_v that_o they_o may_v the_o better_o keep_v their_o stand_n and_o this_o be_v my_o sincere_a intention_n i_o hope_v not_o only_o you_o but_o all_o other_o who_o shall_v peruse_v this_o book_n will_v make_v their_o profit_n of_o it_o and_o interpret_v it_o in_o that_o good_a meaning_n which_o the_o author_n intend_v our_o lord_n jesus_n for_o who_o cause_n you_o endure_v either_o ease_n you_o of_o this_o burden_n of_o adversity_n under_o which_o you_o groan_v or_o give_v you_o strength_n to_o bear_v it_o comfort_n in_o bear_v and_o make_v i_o a_o follower_n of_o your_o rare_a example_n a_o imitator_n of_o your_o patience_n and_o partaker_n of_o your_o merit_n as_o you_o shall_v ever_o be_v of_o my_o poor_a prayer_n and_o small_a labour_n a_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n gentle_a reader_n i_o do_v not_o think_v to_o have_v set_v out_o this_o little_a book_n the_o second_o time_n much_o less_o do_v i_o intend_v to_o add_v any_o thing_n unto_o it_o and_o although_o widdrington_n in_o his_o new-year_n gift_n have_v of_o late_a here_o and_o there_o glance_v against_o some_o word_n and_o speech_n of_o i_o where_o he_o imagine_v most_o advantage_n yet_o i_o think_v as_o i_o see_v other_o learned_a writer_n have_v do_v to_o have_v quite_o give_v he_o over_o and_o not_o to_o have_v make_v the_o least_o reply_n as_o not_o be_v desirous_a to_o contend_v with_o such_o as_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o yield_v have_v other_o business_n to_o many_o where_o with_o to_o occupy_v myself_o but_o the_o printer_n who_o first_o take_v this_o book_n in_o hand_n and_o other_o friend_n also_o importune_v i_o to_o let_v it_o come_v forth_o again_o and_o allege_v that_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o first_o edition_n be_v all_o spend_v and_o yet_o more_o demand_v i_o be_v content_a volens_fw-la nolens_fw-la yield_v herein_o more_o to_o importunity_n then_o to_o my_o own_o inclination_n to_o publish_v it_o once_o more_o and_o upon_o this_o occasion_n of_o this_o new_a edition_n to_o add_v here_o and_o there_o something_o either_o for_o a_o more_o ample_a explication_n or_o for_o answer_v to_o widdringtons_n objection_n i_o be_v willing_a i_o confess_v and_o forward_o enough_o the_o first_o time_n to_o write_v of_o this_o subject_n for_o although_o as_o by_o a_o accident_n i_o be_v one_o of_o the_o last_o who_o write_v in_o the_o defence_n of_o this_o the_o chief_a visible_a pastors_n authority_n now_o in_o england_n impugn_a so_o i_o count_v myself_o among_o the_o least_o yet_o as_o when_o a_o house_n be_v set_v on_o fire_n some_o carry_v water_n other_o ladders_z and_o every_o one_o repair_v thither_o to_o show_v at_o least_o his_o good_a will_n to_o extinguish_v it_o so_o in_o this_o combustion_n in_o which_o not_o only_o heretic_n but_o also_o some_o of_o they_o who_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o catholic_a name_n do_v endevoure_n to_o put_v fire_n even_o to_o the_o secundarie_n foundation_n of_o god_n his_o church_n to_o wit_n the_o chief_a vifible_a pastors_n authority_n i_o think_v it_o the_o part_n of_o every_o zealous_a catholic_a to_o run_n to_o the_o extinguish_n of_o this_o fire_n for_o though_o all_o have_v not_o the_o like_a dexterity_n yet_o all_o may_v show_v the_o like_a good_a will_n which_o i_o have_v perform_v in_o the_o former_a edition_n of_o this_o little_a book_n according_a to_o my_o ability_n i_o think_v to_o have_v surcease_v have_v not_o importunity_n of_o friend_n overcome_v i_o and_o therefore_o after_o this_o as_o i_o mean_v not_o to_o dispute_v any_o more_o of_o this_o point_n with_o they_o with_o who_o as_o i_o gather_v by_o the_o repulse_n which_o great_a man_n than_o myself_o have_v receive_v there_o be_v little_a hope_n to_o prevail_v so_o i_o wish_v all_o catholic_n see_v that_o they_o have_v hear_v their_o chief_a visible_a pastors_n sentence_n to_o leave_v of_o all_o disputation_n touch_v this_o his_o authority_n and_o simple_o and_o humble_o to_o obey_v his_o commandment_n and_o consequent_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o say_a authority_n to_o refuse_v the_o oath_n by_o he_o condemn_v and_o yet_o to_o obey_v the_o king_n our_o sovereign_n and_o liege_n lord_n in_o all_o civil_a and_o temporal_a cause_n to_o be_v faithful_a to_o he_o and_o his_o royal_a posterity_n and_o to_o pray_v day_n lie_v for_o his_o majesty_n long_a and_o prosperous_a life_n that_o he_o may_v live_v long_o to_o we_o always_o to_o god_n and_o so_o reign_v long_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n as_o he_o may_v reign_v for_o ever_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o content_n of_o the_o chapter_n by_o way_n of_o introduction_n it_o be_v show_v that_o there_o be_v two_o power_n in_o the_o church_n the_o one_o civil_a the_o other_o ecclesiastical_a which_o be_v both_o necessary_a chap._n 1._o some_o civil_a power_n follow_v immediate_o from_o god_n and_o nature_n regal_a power_n proceed_v immediate_o from_o the_o people_n election_n and_o donation_n mediate_o from_o god_n ordination_n so_o that_o after_o the_o election_n of_o the_o people_n and_o reception_n the_o king_n be_v superior_a who_o may_v command_v and_o bind_v in_o conscience_n the_o people_n be_v subject_n bind_v to_o obey_v chap._n 2._o ecclesiastical_a power_n be_v also_o of_o god_n and_o be_v distinct_a from_o the_o civil_a jurisdiction_n which_o also_o all_o member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o obey_v chap._n 3._o these_o two_o jurisdiction_n and_o power_n ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a be_v compare_v and_o confer_v and_o the_o preeminence_n be_v give_v to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a chap._n 4._o ecclesiastical_a and_o temporal_a peer_n and_o prince_n be_v compare_v together_o and_o out_o of_o the_o comparison_n be_v gather_v that_o not_o only_o private_a layman_n but_o even_o temporal_a prince_n though_o otherwise_o absolute_a be_v subject_a to_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o especial_o to_o the_o supreme_a visible_a pastor_n as_o be_v prove_v by_o many_o argument_n chap._n 5._o that_o prince_n king_n yea_o emperor_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n or_o to_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n neither_o be_v to_o be_v account_v head_n or_o superior_n but_o subject_n of_o the_o church_n though_o protector_n and_o defendour_n and_o therefore_o be_v modest_o admonish_v of_o their_o duty_n and_o office_n chap._n 6._o although_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o direct_v temporal_a lord_n and_o superior_a of_o the_o world_n nor_o of_o any_o part_n thereof_o by_o christ_n express_a gift_n and_o donation_n but_o only_o of_o the_o patrimony_n of_o saint_n peter_n give_v he_o by_o constantine_n the_o great_a and_o other_o catholic_a prince_n and_o confirm_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n yet_o by_o the_o spiritual_a power_n which_o christ_n give_v he_o in_o his_o predecessor_n s._n peter_n 10.21_o he_o may_v dispose_v of_o temporal_a thing_n and_o even_o of_o kingdom_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n and_o conservation_n of_o she_o and_o her_o faith_n &_o right_n and_o the_o manner_n how_o and_o in_o what_o case_n he_o can_v thus_o dispose_v of_o temporality_n be_v explicate_v chap._n 7._o by_o diverse_a place_n and_o
moral_a it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o the_o spiritual_a power_n excel_v the_o temporal_a as_o much_o as_o the_o object_n end_n and_o act_n of_o that_o do_v surpass_v this_o 7._o fourthlie_o that_o power_n be_v great_a to_o which_o even_o the_o prince_n themselves_o be_v subject_a then_o that_o to_o which_o the_o subject_n and_o people_n only_o be_v subject_n not_o the_o prince_n for_o though_o the_o prince_n be_v subject_a to_o his_o own_o saw_n quoad_fw-la vim_o directivam_fw-la yet_o not_o quoad_fw-la vim_o ●percivam_fw-la but_o the_o prince_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o spiritual_a powet_fw-mi of_o the_o church_n as_o much_o as_o ●he_v low_a and_o mean_a of_o his_o subject_n ergo●he_o ●he_z spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o church_n be_v more_o ●minent_a than_o the_o temporal_a power_n of_o the_o prince_n or_o common_a wealth_n the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v evident_a the_o minor_a i_o shall_v groove_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n wherefore_o the_o conclusion_n must_v needs_o follow_v 8._o hitherto_o i_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n be_v more_o ●minent_a and_o noble_a than_o the_o temporal_a ●nd_v consequent_o that_o the_o spiritual_a be_v ●igher_a in_o dignity_n but_o whether_o it_o can_v command_v correct_v curb_v or_o restrain_v the_o temporal_a i_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o either_o prove_v or_o declare_v for_o many_o thing_n be_v more_o high_a in_o dignity_n than_o other_o which_o yet_o have_v no_o authority_n to_o command_v or_o punish_v as_o for_o example_n the_o protestant_n of_o this_o time_n will_v not_o let_v to_o grant_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o high_a patriarch_n in_o dignity_n yet_o they_o say_v he_o can_v not_o command_v out_o of_o his_o particular_a diocese_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o divine_n grant_v that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n be_v more_o noble_a than_o any_o power_n of_o prince_n or_o emperor_n that_o be_v spiritual_a and_o supernatural_a this_o only_a temporal_a and_o yet_o they_o say_v that_o they_o that_o be_v not_o baptize_v be_v they_o prince_n or_o subject_n be_v not_o subject_a unto_o it_o so_o as_o the_o church_n can_v command_v or_o punish_v they_o spiritual_o and_o the_o king_n of_o france_n be_v more_o eminent_a in_o dignity_n than_o any_o of_o the_o noble_a subject_n of_o england_n or_o spain_n and_o yet_o have_v no_o authority_n to_o command_v or_o punish_v they_o for_o fault_n commit_v out_o of_o his_o realm_n wherefore_o it_o rest_v that_o i_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n by_o her_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n can_v command_v all_o christian_n even_o heretic_n that_o be_v baptize_v and_o this_o beside_o what_o have_v be_v say_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n to_o the_o proof_n thereof_o i_o shall_v brief_o yet_o clear_o show_v by_o these_o ensew_a argument_n 9_o for_o first_o the_o ecclesiastical_a superior_n be_v true_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n ergo_fw-la they_o can_v not_o only_o direct_v but_o command_v and_o correct_v at_o least_o by_o spiritual_a pain_n and_o chastisement_n the_o antecedent_n i_o prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la feed_v my_o sheep_n 21._o joan._n 21._o say_v christ_n to_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n and_o all_o pastor_n in_o their_o kind_n 4._o ad_fw-la eph._n 4._o christ_n say_v s._n paul_n give_v to_o his_o church_n some_o apostle_n some_o prophet_n and_o other_o some_o enangelist_n and_o other_o some_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n 20._o act._n 20._o and_o the_o same_o apostle_n speak_v to_o pastor_n say_v attendite_fw-la vobis_fw-la etc._n etc._n attend_v to_o yourselves_o and_o your_o whole_a flock_n to_o which_o purpose_n also_o s._n peter_n add_v say_v 5._o 1._o pet._n 5._o pascite_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la est_fw-la gregem_fw-la dei_fw-la feed_v the_o flock_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o you_o the_o consequence_n i_o prove_v because_o to_o a_o pastor_n it_o belong_v not_o only_o to_o feed_v by_o sacrament_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o also_o to_o rule_v to_o govern_v and_o correct_v and_o consequent_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n can_v make_v law_n which_o bind_v all_o christian_n their_o subject_n in_o conscience_n and_o they_o can_v correct_v and_o punish_v ●he_n delinquent_n at_o least_o by_o spiritual_a chastisement_n of_o excommunication_n and_o other_o censure_n 10._o 18._o mat._n 18._o secondlie_o christ_n give_v power_n by_o his_o apostle_n and_o successor_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v which_o argue_v jursdiction_n 11._o thirdlie_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n have_v use_v this_o authority_n over_o christians_n 10_o act._n 15._o 1._o cor._n 5._o tit._n 1._o 1._o cor._n 7._o 2._o cor._n 10_o for_o they_o enact_v law_n in_o their_o first_o council_n saint_n paul_n excommunicate_v the_o ●ncestuous_a corinthian_a they_o appoint_v bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o govern_v particular_a church_n saint_n paul_n distinguish_v his_o twne_a power_n of_o make_v law_n from_o christ_n and_o he_o say_v arma_fw-la militiae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la non_fw-la carnalia_fw-la sunt_fw-la sed_fw-la potentia_fw-la deo_fw-la ad_fw-la destructionem_fw-la munitionum_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o weapon_n of_o our_o warfare_n be_v not_o carnal_a but_o mighty_a to_o god_n unto_o the_o destruction_n of_o munition_n destroy_v counsel_n and_o all_o loftiness_n extol_v itself_o against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n and_o have_v in_o a_o readiness_n to_o revenge_v all_o disobedience_n etc._n etc._n 12._o fiftlie_o i_o prove_v it_o by_o a_o theological_a argument_n by_o baptism_n christian_n be_v make_v true_a member_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n church_n no_o less_o than_o subject_n be_v of_o the_o kingdom_n or_o political_a body_n 5._o d._n tho._n 3._o p_o q._n 63._o art_n 6_o q._n 68_o a._n 1._o &_o q._n 69._o a._n 4_o &_o 5._o yea_o more_o because_o they_o be_v incorporate_v to_o the_o church_n by_o a_o real_a supernatural_a and_o indelible_a character_n but_o all_o member_n be_v so_o subject_a to_o the_o head_n that_o the_o head_n by_o authority_n may_v command_v correct_v and_o punish_v they_o if_o they_o transgress_v ergo_fw-la the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o especial_o the_o chief_a pastor_n have_v jurisdiction_n over_o all_o those_o that_o be_v baptize_v be_v they_o true_a christian_n or_o heretic_n or_o apostate_n this_o i_o confirm_v by_o this_o congruence_n every_o one_o be_v bind_v to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o realm_n in_o which_o he_o be_v bear_v by_o reason_n that_o his_o nativity_n in_o that_o place_n make_v he_o a_o true_a member_n of_o that_o kingdom_n as_o our_o sovereign_n liege_n himself_o well_o observe_v 12._o in_o praef_n monitor_fw-la pag._n 12._o and_o see_v that_o baptism_n be_v a_o regeneration_n and_o new_a nativity_n by_o which_o we_o be_v bear_v in_o the_o church_n for_o even_o the_o child_n of_o heretic_n though_o they_o be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n if_o they_o be_v true_o baptize_v be_v bear_v in_o the_o church_n it_o follow_v that_o all_o that_o be_v baptize_v be_v bind_v to_o obey_v the_o church_n and_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o observe_v her_o law_n and_o may_v be_v punish_v by_o the_o church_n if_o they_o transgress_v the_o same_o else_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o most_o eminent_a state_n and_o common_a wealth_n shall_v be_v inferior_a unto_o the_o low_a and_o mean_a political_a common_a wealth_n that_o be_v for_o there_o be_v no_o lawful_a common_a wealth_n but_o it_o can_v make_v law_n and_o punish_v the_o transgressor_n 13._o sixth_o the_o church_n be_v a_o absolute_a common_a wealth_n and_o consequent_o have_v authority_n to_o make_v law_n to_o appoint_v spiritual_a magistrate_n to_o call_v counsel_n and_o to_o decide_v controversy_n to_o correct_v and_o punish_v heretic_n and_o blasphemer_n and_o all_o sin_n which_o be_v proper_o opposite_a to_o her_o government_n and_o ecclesiastical_a peace_n but_o this_o suppose_v a_o legislative_a a_o command_a and_o not_o only_o a_o directive_a but_o also_o a_o coercive_v power_n ergo_fw-la the_o church_n and_o especial_o her_o chief_a pastor_n christ_n vicaire_n have_v such_o authority_n delegati_fw-la l._n 2._o ff_n de_fw-mi jurisd_v omnium_fw-la jud._n cap._n praeterea_fw-la de_fw-la officio_fw-la delegati_fw-la this_o argument_n i_o confirm_v thus_o the_o civil_a law_n tell_v we_o cui_fw-la iurifdictio_fw-la data_fw-la est_fw-la ea_fw-la quoque_fw-la concessa_fw-la esse_fw-la videntur_fw-la sine_fw-la quibus_fw-la iurisdictio_fw-la explicari_fw-la non_fw-la potuit_fw-la to_o who_o jurisdiction_n be_v grant_v those_o thing_n also_o seem_v to_o be_v grant_v without_o which_o the_o jurisdiction_n can_v not_o be_v explicate_v and_o again_o exit_fw-la eo_fw-la quod_fw-la causa_fw-la alicui_fw-la committitur_fw-la super_fw-la omnibus_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la causam_fw-la ipsam_fw-la spectare_fw-la noscuntur_fw-la plenariam_fw-la recipit_fw-la potestatem_fw-la in_o that_o a_o cause_n be_v commit_v to_o any_o he_o receive_v full_a power_n over_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v know_v to_o pertain_v
especial_o by_o spiritual_a censure_n and_o may_v cast_v he_o out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o excommunication_n else_o the_o church_n be_v inferior_a to_o all_o political_a body_n yea_o to_o a_o natural_a body_n which_o have_v authority_n for_o its_o own_o preservation_n to_o cut_v of_o a_o rot_a member_n lest_o it_o infect_v the_o whole_a and_o to_o expel_v by_o purgation_n a_o malignant_a humour_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o reason_n why_o in_o this_o point_n we_o shall_v put_v any_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o king_n and_o another_o of_o his_o own_o subject_n for_o although_o he_o be_v superior_a in_o temporal_a matter_n to_o all_o his_o subject_n and_o be_v to_o be_v obey_v of_o they_o yet_o be_v he_o subject_a in_o spiritual_a matter_n to_o the_o church_n pastor_n as_o much_o as_o his_o mean_a subject_n 5._o and_o so_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o free_a choice_n of_o a_o christian_a though_o baptize_v among_o heretic_n when_o he_o come_v to_o year_n of_o discreation_n as_o erasmus_n and_o ludovicus_n vives_z do_v absurd_o hold_v to_o observe_v 27._o erasmus_fw-la paraph_n in_o mat_n ludovic_fw-la vives_z in_o come_v l._n 1._o de_fw-la ciu_o dei_fw-la cap._n 27._o or_o not_o observe_v the_o christian_a law_n because_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o keep_v the_o promise_n which_o the_o church_n and_o his_o godfather_n make_v in_o his_o name_n no_o less_o than_o pupil_n be_v bind_v to_o stand_v to_o that_o which_o their_o tutor_n have_v do_v in_o their_o name_n and_o for_o their_o profitt_a and_o go_v he_o where_o he_o will_v be_v he_o of_o what_o religion_n he_o will_v he_o carry_v a_o indelible_a character_n imprint_v by_o baptism_n in_o hi●_n soul_n by_o which_o the_o church_n have_v authority_n over_o he_o as_o over_o a_o member_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la &_o debito_fw-la and_o can_v command_v he_o to_o observe_v the_o christian_a law_n as_o also_o punish_v he_o if_o he_o disobey_v though_o he_o be_v a_o emperor_n at_o least_o by_o spiritual_a punishment_n 6._o secondlie_o two_o prince_n independent_a in_o one_o community_n will_v make_v a_o confusion_n unless_o the_o one_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o other_o and_o to_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o other_o wherefore_o aristotle_n as_o above_o i_o have_v allege_v say_v that_o pluralitas_fw-la principatuum_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la bona_fw-la ult._n arict_a l._n 12._o met._n cap._n ult._n plurality_n of_o principality_n be_v not_o good_a to_o wit_n in_o one_o community_n and_o unless_o one_o of_o they_o be_v subject_a for_o the_o one_o may_v hinder_v the_o other_o the_o one_o may_v command_v one_o thing_n the_o other_o clean_o contrary_a and_o so_o there_o will_v arise_v contention_n and_o confusion_n but_o the_o church_n and_o common_a wealth_n of_o christian_n be_v one_o body_n and_o community_n at_o least_o material_o if_o not_o formal_o ergo_fw-la these_o two_o prince_n to_o wit_n the_o spiritual_a and_o temporali_fw-la must_v have_v some_o subordination_n but_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n that_o the_o prince_n shall_v direct_v and_o correct_v the_o pastor_n he_o be_v the_o great_a prince_n &_o have_v a_o high_a power_n as_o it_o be_v above_o prove_v ergo_fw-la see_v that_o both_o pastor_n and_o prince_n be_v of_o god_n and_o what_o be_v of_o god_n be_v right_o ordain_v 13._o rom._n 13._o and_o with_o good_a order_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o chief_a pastor_n must_v be_v superior_a and_o must_v direct_v and_o correct_v the_o prince_n as_o much_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o church_n end_n and_o good_a 7_o thirdlie_o the_o chief_a pastor_n and_o sometime_o also_o inferior_a pastor_n as_o bishop_n have_v challenge_v to_o themselves_o as_o due_a authority_n over_o prince_n and_o have_v excommunicate_v and_o lay_v spirituail_n punishement_n upon_o they_o who_o to_o condemn_v as_o unjust_a usurper_n they_o be_v so_o many_o so_o wise_a so_o upright_o and_o many_o of_o they_o holy_a saint_n be_v mere_a madness_n ergo_fw-la the_o prince_n be_v subject_a in_o spiritual_a matter_n yea_o and_o temporal_a matter_n also_o when_o they_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n good_a and_o may_v be_v command_v and_o punish_v at_o least_o spiritual_o if_o he_o refuse_v to_o obey_v he_o be_v in_o this_o case_n the_o pastors_n subject_n and_o inferior_a 8._o 2._o eus_n l._n 6._o hist_o c._n 25_o alius_fw-la 27._o nicephor_n l._n 13._o c._n 34._o vide_fw-la baron_n a_o 407._o card._n alan_n ausu_fw-la 1._o polibeller_n cap._n 2._o so_o we_o read_v that_o fabian_z pope_n command_v philip_n the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n to_o take_v his_o place_n among_o the_o public_a penitentes_fw-la so_o innocentius_n the_o first_o excommunicate_v arcadius_n the_o emperor_n and_o eudoxia_n the_o empress_n for_o persecute_v s._n john_n chrrsostome_n the_o excommunication_n begin_v thus_o vox_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la fratris_fw-la mei_fw-la johannis_n clamat_fw-la ad_fw-la deum_fw-la contra_fw-la te_fw-la o_o imperator_n sicuti_fw-la quondam_a abel_n justi_fw-la contra_fw-la cain_n &_o be_v modis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la vindicabitur_fw-la the_o voice_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o my_o brother_n john_n chrysostome_n cry_v to_o god_n against_o thou_o as_o abel_n blood_n in_o time_n past_a do_v against_o cain_n and_o it_o by_o all_o mean_n shall_v be_v revenge_v the_o sentence_n follow_v in_o these_o word_n annal._n zonara_n tom_n 3._o annal._n itaque_fw-la ego_fw-la minimus_fw-la &_o peccator_fw-la cvi_fw-la thronus_fw-la magni_fw-la apostoli_fw-la petri_n creditus_fw-la est_fw-la segrego_fw-la &_o reijcio_fw-la te_fw-la &_o illam_fw-la à_fw-la perceptione_n immaculatorum_fw-la mysteriorum_fw-la christi_fw-la dei_fw-la nostri_fw-la therefore_o i_o the_o least_o and_o a_o sinner_n to_o who_o the_o throne_n of_o great_a peter_n be_v commit_v do_v segregate_v and_o reject_v thou_o and_o she_o eudoxia_n from_o participation_n of_o the_o immaculate_a mystery_n of_o christ_n our_o god_n of_o which_o pope_n s._n hierome_n give_v this_o commendation_n 8._o s._n hieron_n epist_n 8._o illud_fw-la te_fw-la pio_fw-la charitatis_fw-la affectu_fw-la praemonendum_fw-la puto_fw-la ut_fw-la s._n innocentij_fw-la qui_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la cathedrae_fw-la &_o supradicti_fw-la viri_fw-la anastasij_n successor_n &_o filius_fw-la est_fw-la teneas_fw-la fidem_fw-la nec_fw-la peregrinain_n quantumuis_fw-la tibi_fw-la prudens_fw-la callidaque_fw-la videaris_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la recipias_fw-la that_o i_o thouht_v out_o of_o charity_n to_o admonish_v thou_o that_o thou_o hold_v the_o faith_n of_o s._n innocentius_n who_o be_v the_o successor_n and_o son_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o of_o anastasius_n neither_o do_v thou_o recedue_v any_o strange_a doctrine_n seem_v thou_o to_o thyself_o never_o so_o wise_a and_o witty_a gregory_n the_o second_o in_o a_o council_n at_o rome_n anno_fw-la 726._o 729._o vide_fw-la baron_n a_o 729._o excommunicate_v leo_n the_o emperor_n surname_v isauricus_n and_o iconomachus_n and_o take_v from_o he_o his_o gabelle_n in_o italy_n and_o the_o province_n itself_o 1076._o greg._n l._n 3._o ep_v 5._o &_o 10._o &_o l._n 7._o ep_n 14._o vide_fw-la baron_n a_o 1076._o gregory_n the_o seven_o commend_v by_o all_o but_o only_o schismatic_n &_o heretic_n for_o a_o saint_n as_o he_o who_o wrought_v miracle_n as_o well_o live_v as_o dead_a excommunicate_v henry_n the_o four_o emperor_n of_o that_o name_n for_o many_o enormity_n threaten_v moreover_o excommunication_n to_o all_o prince_n king_n &_o emperor_n that_o shall_v usurp_v inuestiture_n as_o the_o same_o emperor_n have_v do_v also_o he_o interdict_v the_o kingdom_n of_o polonia_n and_o excommunicate_v the_o king_n boleslaus_n for_o kill_v stanisldus_n his_o bishop_n at_o the_o altar_n because_o like_o a_o good_a pastor_n he_o have_v before_o control_v his_o lust_n and_o excommunicate_v he_o 3●_n platina_n in_o vita_fw-la innoc._n 3●_n alexander_z the_o three_o excommunicate_v frederick_n the_o first_o and_o if_o henry_n the_o second_o king_n of_o england_n have_v not_o submit_v himself_o he_o have_v excommunicate_v he_o also_o as_o he_o be_v solicit_v thereunto_o by_o lewis_n the_o king_n of_o france_n innocentius_n the_o three_o excommunicate_v otho_n the_o four_o emperor_n of_o that_o name_n 6._o cap._n ad_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la descent_n &_o re_fw-mi judic_n in_o 6._o gregory_n the_o nine_o against_o frederick_n the_o second_o john_n the_o twenty_o two_o against_o ludovicus_n bavarus_n innocent_a the_o three_o against_o king_n john_n of_o england_n vrban_n the_o second_o against_o philip_n the_o first_o of_o france_n and_o other_o pope_n against_o other_o prince_n have_v say_v the_o like_a severity_n 1101._o albert._n pighius_fw-la l._n de_fw-fr visib_n mon._n cap._n 17._o mat._n paris_n ann_n 1204._o baron_fw-fr a_o 1101._o even_o to_o these_o our_o day_n and_o in_o all_o their_o epistle_n to_o king_n and_o emperor_n they_o call_v they_o son_n and_o speak_v to_o they_o as_o to_o their_o sheep_n and_o subject_n 9_o yea_o not_o only_o pope_n but_o even_o bishop_n have_v the_o like_a authority_n over_o king_n and_o emperor_n as_o the_o archbishop_n of_o toledo_n over_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n
the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n over_o the_o king_n of_o england_n the_o archbishop_z of_o rheims_n ovet_fw-la the_o king_n of_o france_n 10._o gregor_n naziâz_n orat_fw-la 17._o ad_fw-la pop._n timore_fw-la perculsun_n &_o prino_n iras_n vide_fw-la cap._n suscipitisne_n do_v 10._o and_o other_o bishop_n over_o other_o king_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n challenge_v authority_n over_o valentinian_n the_o emperor_n for_o in_o a_o oration_n which_o he_o make_v to_o his_o citizen_n strike_v with_o fear_n and_o to_o the_o angry_a prince_n and_o emperor_n convert_n his_o speech_n to_o the_o prefect_n and_o even_o to_o the_o emperor_n himself_o thus_o he_o speak_v a_o i_o liberè_fw-la loquentem_fw-la eqno_fw-la animo_fw-la feretis_fw-la nam_fw-la vos_fw-la quoque_fw-la potestati_fw-la meae_fw-la meisque_fw-la subsellijs_fw-la lex_fw-la christi_fw-la subijeit_n imperium_fw-la enim_fw-la ipsi_fw-la quoque_fw-la gerimus_fw-la addo_fw-la etiam_fw-la praestantius_fw-la ac_fw-la perfectius_fw-la nisi_fw-la verò_fw-la aequum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritum_fw-la carni_fw-la fasces_fw-la submittere_fw-la &_o caelestia_fw-la terrenis_fw-la cedere_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la dubito_fw-la quin_fw-la hanc_fw-la dicendi_fw-la libertatem_fw-la o_o imperutor_n in_o optimam_fw-la partem_fw-la accepturussis_fw-la u●pote_fw-la facrimeigregis_fw-la ovis_fw-la sacra_fw-la magnique_fw-la pastoris_fw-la alumna_fw-la rectèque_fw-la iam_fw-la inde_fw-la à_fw-la primis_fw-la annis_fw-la à_fw-la spiritu_fw-la ducta_fw-la &_o instituta_fw-la sanctaeque_fw-la &_o beatae_fw-la trinitatis_fw-la lumine_fw-la aequè_fw-la ac_fw-la nos_fw-la ipsi_fw-la illustrata_fw-la will_v you_o take_v in_o good_a part_n that_o which_o i_o shall_v speak_v free_o for_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n do_v subject_a you_o also_o unto_o my_o power_n and_o tribunal_n for_o we_o also_o bear_v rule_n and_o have_v a_o empirè_n and_o that_o more_o eminent_a and_o perfect_a unless_o a_o man_n shall_v think_v it_o fit_a for_o the_o spirit_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o that_o thing_n celestial_a shall_v yield_v to_o thing_n that_o be_v terrene_a but_o i_o doubt_v nor_o o_o emperor_n but_o that_o thou_o will_v take_v in_o good_a part_n this_o my_o freedom_n of_o speech_n as_o be_v a_o holy_a sheep_n of_o my_o holy_a flock_n bring_v up_o under_o the_o great_a pastor_n and_o so_o from_o tender_a year_n well_o guide_v and_o instruct_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o illuminate_v by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o bless_a trinity_n no_o less_o than_o we_o ourselves_o s._n ambrose_n excommunicate_v theodosius_n for_o a_o slaughter_n commit_v 18._o theodoret_n lib._n 5._o hist_o cap._n 18._o and_o a_o civil_a law_n enact_v at_o thessalonica_n and_o will_v not_o admit_v he_o into_o the_o church_n till_o he_o have_v do_v penance_n and_o recall_v the_o former_a law_n ita_fw-la demum_fw-la say_v theodoret_n diuw_v ambrose_n vinclis_fw-la illnm_fw-la exoluit_fw-la &_o templum_fw-la introire_fw-la sidelissimus_fw-la imperator_fw-la ausus_fw-la non_fw-la stans_fw-la neque_fw-la genibus_fw-la flexis_fw-la supplicabat_fw-la domino_fw-la sed_fw-la pronus_fw-la humi_fw-la stratus_fw-la so_o at_o length_n s._n ambrose_n absolve_v he_o from_o the_o bond_n of_o his_o excommunication_n when_o as_o the_o most_o faithful_a emperor_n presume_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o church_n do_v not_o either_o stand_v or_o kneel_v make_v his_o prayer_n unto_o our_o lord_n but_o lie_v prostrate_a upon_o the_o ground_n and_o when_o the_o emperor_n after_o he_o have_v be_v at_o the_o ossertorie_n will_v have_v stay_v in_o the_o chancel_n s._n ambrose_n send_v he_o word_n by_o a_o deacon_n that_o that_o be_v the_o place_n only_o for_o priest_n and_o those_o of_o the_o clergy_n which_o comaundement_n also_o the_o emperor_n obey_v so_o willing_o that_o when_o afterward_o at_o constantinople_n the_o patriach_n nectarius_n will_v have_v have_v he_o stay_v in_o the_o chancel_n he_o answer_v vix_fw-la cum_fw-la gemitu_fw-la didici_fw-la discrimen_fw-la inter_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la &_o sacerdotem_fw-la vix_fw-la inveni_fw-la doctorem_fw-la veritatis_fw-la i_o have_v scarce_o learn_v with_o sorrow_n the_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o priest_n i_o have_v scarce_o find_v a_o doctor_n of_o the_o truth_n 9_o fourthlie_o i_o prove_v this_o not_o only_o by_o the_o fact_n of_o pope_n but_o also_o by_o their_o definition_n in_o which_o pope_n be_v to_o be_v credit_v though_o in_o their_o own_o cause_n because_o most_o if_o not_o all_o of_o they_o be_v so_o learned_a that_o they_o know_v what_o belong_v to_o their_o authority_n and_o so_o just_a and_o holy_a also_o that_o they_o will_v not_o usurp_v what_o belong_v not_o unto_o they_o adrian_z pope_n make_v this_o decree_n 1._o cap._n ul●_n suorum_fw-la capitulorum_fw-la etc._n etc._n gencrali_fw-la 25._o q_o 1._o generali_fw-la decreto_fw-la statuimus_fw-la ut_fw-la execrandum_fw-la anathema_n &_o ve●uti_fw-la praevaricator_n catholicae_fw-la fidei_fw-la semper_fw-la apud_fw-la deum_fw-la reus_fw-la existat_fw-la quicunque_fw-la regum_fw-la vel_fw-la potentum_fw-la deinceps_fw-la romanorum_fw-la pontificium_fw-la decretorum_fw-la censuram_fw-la in_o quocunque_fw-la crediderit_fw-la vel_fw-la permiserit_fw-la violundam_fw-la we_o ordain_v by_o our_o general_n decree_n that_o he_o be_v before_o god_n as_o a_o anatheme_n and_o as_o a_o prevaricatour_n whosoever_o of_o the_o king_n or_o potentate_n shall_v think_v or_o permit_v to_o be_v violate_v in_o any_o thing_n the_o censure_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n 96._o cap._n duo_fw-la sunt_fw-la do_v 96._o and_o decree_n gelasius_n pope_n have_v tell_v anastasius_n how_o by_o two_o power_n ecclesiastical_a and_o temporal_a the_o world_n be_v govern_v and_o that_o the_o priest_n burden_n be_v so_o much_o the_o great_a in_o that_o they_o be_v to_o answer_v for_o king_n comportement_fw-fr in_o the_o divine_a judgement_n he_o add_v nosti_fw-la itaque_fw-la inter_fw-la haec_fw-la ex_fw-la illorum_fw-la te_fw-la pendere_fw-la iudicio_fw-la non_fw-la illos_fw-la ad_fw-la tuam_fw-la redigi_fw-la posse_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la thou_o know_v therefore_o that_o thou_o depende_v of_o their_o judgement_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o thy_o will_n and_o therefore_o say_v he_o many_o pope_n have_v excommunicate_v diverse_a king_n and_o emperor_n pope_n john_n also_o say_v 96._o cap._n si_fw-la imperator_fw-la do_v 96._o si_fw-mi imperator_fw-la catholicus_n est_fw-la quod_fw-la salua_fw-la pace_fw-la illius_fw-la dixerimus_fw-la filius_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la praesul_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la if_o the_o emperor_n be_v a_o catholic_a by_o his_o good_a leave_n be_v it_o speak_v he_o be_v a_o son_n not_o a_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n and_o afterward_o he_o add_v imperatores_fw-la christiani_n subdere_fw-la debent_fw-la executiones_fw-la svas_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la praesulibus_fw-la non_fw-la praeferre_fw-la christian_n emperor_n must_v submit_v their_o execution_n unto_o ecclesiastical_a prelate_n and_o not_o prefer_v a-bed_o cap._n solita_fw-la de_fw-la ●nior_fw-la &_o a-bed_o innocentius_n the_o three_o say_v that_o as_o god_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n create_v two_o great_a light_n the_o sun_n and_o moon_n and_o appoint_v that_o to_o rule_v the_o day_n this_o the_o night_n so_o in_o the_o firmament_n of_o the_o church_n he_o have_v place_v two_o great_a light_n to_o wit_n regal_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n that_o to_o rule_v the_o night_n of_o temporal_a thing_n this_o the_o day_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o this_o say_v he_o be_v by_o so_o much_o great_a than_o that_o by_o how_o much_o the_o sun_n surpass_v the_o moon_n and_o again_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o say_v that_o christ_n except_v no_o christian_n when_o he_o command_v pet●r_n and_o in_o he_o his_o successor_n to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n ut_fw-la alienum_fw-la à_fw-la su●_n demonstraret_fw-la ovili_fw-la qui_fw-la petrum_fw-la &_o successores_fw-la eius_fw-la magistros_fw-la non_fw-la recognosceret_fw-la &_o pastor_n to_o show_v that_o he_o be_v a_o alien_n from_o his_o flock_n who_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v peter_z and_o his_o successoure_n to_o be_v his_o master_n and_o pastor_n 10._o fiftlie_o i_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o father_n and_o bishop_n that_o be_v no_o pope_n 32._o ambr._n orat_fw-la in_o auxent_n quae_fw-la extat_fw-la lib_n 5._o epist_n eius_fw-la post_fw-la epist_n 32._o yet_o great_a saint_n s._n ambrose_n speak_v in_o this_o point_n plain_o soluimus_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la caesaris_fw-la caesari_n &_o quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la dei_fw-la deo_fw-la tributum_fw-la caesaris_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la negatur_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la dei_fw-la est_fw-la caesari_n utique_fw-la non_fw-la debet_fw-la addici_fw-la quia_fw-la ius_fw-la caesaris_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la dei_fw-la templum_fw-la quod_fw-la cum_fw-la honorificentia_fw-la imperatoris_fw-la nemo_fw-la dictum_fw-la potest_fw-la negare_fw-la quid_fw-la enim_fw-la honorificentius_fw-la quàm_fw-la ut_fw-la imperator_fw-la filius_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la esse_fw-la dicatur_fw-la we_o have_v pay_v to_o caesar_n what_o thing_n belong_v to_o caesar_n and_o to_o god_n what_o be_v appertain_v to_o god_n tribute_n belong_v to_o caesar_n and_o be_v not_o deny_v he_o the_o church_n be_v god_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o to_o be_v give_v to_o caesar_n because_o the_o church_n of_o god_n can_v not_o be_v caesar_n right_a
which_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o it_o be_v speak_v with_o the_o emperor_n honour_n for_o what_o more_o honourable_a than_o that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o the_o church_n and_o then_o say_v i_o if_o he_o be_v a_o son_n he_o be_v a_o subject_n no_o less_o than_o the_o son_n to_o the_o father_n the_o same_o doctor_n in_o a_o book_n write_v of_o priestly_a dignity_n say_v yet_o more_o honour_n &_o sublimitas_fw-la episcopalis_fw-la say_v he_o nullis_fw-la poterit_fw-la comparationibus_fw-la adaequari_fw-la 2._o lib._n de_fw-fr dignit_fw-la sacerd_v cap._n 2._o si_fw-mi regum_fw-la fulgori_fw-la compare_v &_o principum_fw-la diademati_fw-la longè_fw-la erit_fw-la inferius_fw-la quàm_fw-la si_fw-la plumbi_fw-la metallum_fw-la ad_fw-la auri_fw-la fulgorem_fw-la compare_v quip_n cum_fw-la videas_fw-la regum_fw-la colla_fw-la &_o principum_fw-la submitti_fw-la genibus_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la &_o exosculatis_fw-la ecrum_fw-la dexteris_fw-la orationibus_fw-la eorum_fw-la credant_fw-la se_fw-la communiri_fw-la the_o honour_n dignity_n and_o highness_n of_o a_o bishop_n can_v be_v equalise_v by_o any_o comparison_n if_o thou_o compare_v it_o to_o kingly_a lustre_n and_o the_o diadem_n of_o prince_n thou_o shall_v say_v less_o than_o if_o thou_o shall_v compare_v lead_v to_o the_o glitter_a gold_n for_o as_o much_o as_o thou_o see_v king_n and_o prince_n neck_n submit_v to_o the_o knee_n of_o priest_n and_o then selue_o kiss_v their_o right_a hand_n to_o be_v warant_v by_o their_o prayer_n isaiae_n hom._n 4._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la isaiae_n s._n chysostome_n regi_fw-la corpora_fw-la commissa_fw-la sunt_fw-la sacerdoti_fw-la avima_fw-la rex_fw-la maculas_fw-la corporum_fw-la remittit_fw-la sacerdos_fw-la autem_fw-la maculas_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la ille_fw-la cogit_fw-la hic_fw-la exhortatur_fw-la ille_fw-la necessitate_v hic_fw-la consilio_fw-la ille_fw-la habet_fw-la armasensibilia_fw-la bic_n arma_fw-la spiritualia_fw-la ille_fw-la bellum_fw-la gerit_fw-la cum_fw-la barbaris_fw-la mihi_fw-la sacerdoti_fw-la bellnm_fw-la est_fw-la adversus_fw-la daemon_n maior_fw-la hic_fw-la principatus_fw-la propterea_fw-la rex_fw-la caput_fw-la submittit_fw-la manui_fw-la sacerdotis_fw-la &_o ubique_fw-la in_o veteri_fw-la scriptura_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la inungebant_fw-la reges_fw-la to_o the_o king_n body_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o priest_n soul_n the_o king_n forgive_v the_o punishment_n of_o the_o body_n the_o priest_n the_o blotte_n and_o blemish_n of_o sin_n he_o compel_v the_o priest_n exhort_v he_o by_o necessity_n this_o by_o counsel_n he_o have_v sensible_a weapon_n this_o spiritual_a he_o make_v war_n against_o the_o barbares_fw-la i_o the_o priest_n be_o to_o wage_v battle_n against_o the_o devil_n great_a be_v this_o principality_n and_o therefore_o the_o king_n incline_v his_o head_n to_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o every_o where_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n priest_n do_v anoint_v king_n and_o again_o siquiden_n sacerdotium_fw-la principatus_fw-la est_fw-la isaiae_n hom._n 5._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la isaiae_n ipso_fw-la etiam_fw-la regno_fw-la venerabilius_fw-la ac_fw-la maius_fw-la etc._n etc._n because_o priest_n hood_n be_v a_o principality_n and_o that_o great_a and_o more_o venerable_a than_o the_o kingdom_n speak_v not_o to_o i_o of_o the_o purple_a and_o diadem_n and_o golden_a robe_n these_o all_o be_v but_o shadow_n and_o more_o vain_a than_o springe_n flower_n speak_v not_o to_o i_o of_o these_o thing_n but_o if_o thou_o will_v see_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o a_o king_n and_o a_o priest_n way_n the_o power_n give_v to_o they_o both_o and_o thou_o shall_v see_v the_o priest_n fit_v much_o high_a in_o dignity_n then_o the_o king_n for_o a_o though_o the_o throne_n of_o a_o king_n seem_v to_o we_o admirable_a for_o the_o precious_a stone_n wherewith_o it_o be_v cover_v yet_o he_o have_v allo_v he_o only_o the_o administration_n of_o earthly_a thing_n but_o to_o the_o priest_n a_o throne_n be_v place_v in_o heaven_n and_o he_o have_v authority_n to_o pronounce_v sentence_n in_o heavenly_a business_n who_o say_v so_o 18._o mat._n 18._o the_o king_n of_o the_o heaven_n himself_o what_o soever_o you_o shall_v bind_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v also_o in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v loose_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v also_o in_o heaven_n what_o can_v be_v compare_v with_o this_o honour_n from_o earth_n heaven_n take_v the_o principal_a power_n of_o judge_v for_o the_o judge_n sit_v on_o earth_n our_o lord_n foliow_v his_o servant_n and_o whatsoever_o he_o shall_v judge_v here_o below_o that_o he_o approve_v above_o and_o a_o little_a after_o eoque_fw-la deus_fw-la ipsum_fw-la regale_n caput_fw-la sacerdotis_fw-la manibus_fw-la subiecit_fw-la not_o erudiens_fw-la quod_fw-la hic_fw-la princeps_fw-la est_fw-la illo_fw-la maior_fw-la siquidom_n id_fw-la quod_fw-la minus_fw-la est_fw-la benedictionem_fw-la accipit_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la quod_fw-la praestantius_fw-la est_fw-la and_o so_o much_o god_n hathsubmit_v the_o king_n head_n to_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n teach_v we_o that_o this_o prince_n be_v great_a than_o he_o for_o he_o that_o be_v less_o receave_v benediction_n from_o he_o that_o be_v great_a yea_o s._n chysostome_n give_v not_o only_a bishop_n but_o also_o even_a deacon_n eund_n hom._n 33._o in_o matth_n &_o hom_n 83._o in_o eund_n authoririe_a over_o king_n si_fw-mi dux_fw-la igitur_fw-la quispiam_fw-la say_v he_o si_fw-la consul_n ipse_fw-la si_fw-la qui_fw-la diademate_n ornatur_fw-la indignè_fw-la adeat_fw-la cohibe_fw-la ac_fw-la coërce_fw-la maiorem_fw-la tu_fw-la illo_fw-la potestatem_fw-la habes_fw-la if_o therefore_o any_o capitaine_n or_o consul_n if_o he_o that_o be_v adorn_v with_o a_o diadem_n approach_v unworthilie_o keep_v he_o back_o and_o restrain_v he_o thou_o have_v great_a power_n than_o he_o and_o to_o this_o purpose_n we_o read_v that_o s._n re._n migius_n the_o apostle_n of_o france_n 13._o histoire_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr de_fw-fr reins_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 13._o a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n command_v the_o bishop_n to_o excommunicate_v the_o king_n of_o france_n if_o they_o shall_v waste_v or_o invade_v the_o church_n but_o above_o all_o most_o forcible_a be_v the_o testimony_n of_o smyrn_n ignat._n epist_n ad_fw-la smyrn_n s._n ignatius_n a_o apostle_n scholar_n who_o so_o extoll_v princely_a dignity_n that_o yet_o he_o give_v the_o precedence_n unto_o the_o bishop_n authority_n honora_n deum_n say_v he_o ut_fw-la omnium_fw-la authorem_fw-la &_o dominum_fw-la &c._n &c._n honour_n god_n as_o the_o author_n and_o lord_n of_o all_o and_o the_o bishop_n as_o the_o prince_n of_o priest_n bear_v the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o hold_v his_o princedom_n of_o he_o and_o his_o priesthood_n of_o christ_n and_o after_o he_o you_o must_v honour_v also_o the_o king_n for_o none_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o god_n nor_o equal_a to_o he_o nor_o none_o more_o honourable_a in_o the_o church_n than_o the_o bishop_n exercise_v the_o priesthood_n of_o god_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n neither_o be_v any_o equal_a to_o the_o king_n in_o the_o host_n or_o camp_n procure_v peace_n and_o benevolence_n to_o the_o other_o prince_n under_o he_o for_o he_o that_o honour_v the_o bishop_n shall_v be_v honour_v of_o god_n and_o he_o that_o dishonour_v he_o shall_v of_o god_n be_v dishonour_v for_o if_o any_o man_n rise_v against_o the_o king_n be_v worthy_a of_o damnation_n how_o shall_v be_v escape_n god_n judgement_n that_o attempt_v any_o thing_n against_o or_o without_o the_o bishop_n for_o priesthood_n be_v the_o chief_a and_o sum_n of_o all_o man_n good_a which_o wh●_n soever_o disgrace_v dishonour_v god_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o chief_a priest_n of_o god_n 11._o sixth_o this_o i_o prove_v by_o emperor_n and_o king_n proper_a confession_n who_o all_o of_o they_o have_v acknowledge_v bishop_n and_o especial_o the_o chief_a bishop_n of_o rome_n their_o father_n pastor_n and_o superior_n and_o those_o that_o have_v supreme_a authority_n ovet_fw-la they_o constantine_n the_o great_a in_o a_o ●ict_n of_o his_o short_o after_o his_o baptism_n ●saieth_v thus_o 96._o cap._n constantinus_n 2._o do_v 96._o utile_fw-la iudicavimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n ut_fw-la sicut_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la beatus_fw-la petrus_n vicarius_fw-la silij_fw-la dei_fw-la videtur_fw-la esse_fw-la constitutus_fw-la it_o a_o etiam_fw-la &_o pontifices_fw-la qui_fw-la ipsius_fw-la principis_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la vice_n gerunt_fw-la principatus_fw-la potestatem_fw-la amplius_fw-la quàm_fw-la terrenae_fw-la imperialis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la serenitatis_fw-la mansuetudo_fw-la habere_fw-la videtur_fw-la concessam_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la nostroque_fw-la imperio_fw-la obtineant_fw-la we_o have_v judge_v it_o profitable_a that_o as_o bless_a peter_n be_v appoint_v the_o vicaire_a of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o earth_n so_o also_o bishop_n who_o be_v vicegerent_n of_o this_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n shall_v have_v more_o ample_o the_o power_n of_o principality_n grant_v by_o we_o and_o our_o empire_n 2._o ruffin_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 2._o than_o our_o terrene_a imperial_a serenity_n seem_v to_o have_v and_o russinus_n relate_v how_o that_o when_o certain_a bishop_n assemble_v at_o
speak_v in_o this_o manner_n if_o it_o be_v say_v to_o peter_n i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n of_o heaven_n i_o say_v unto_o you_o then_o that_o this_o be_v the_o porter_n who_o i_o will_v not_o contradict_v but_o as_o much_o as_o i_o know_v or_o can_v i_o desire_v to_o obey_v in_o all_o thing_n his_o statute_n lest_o when_o i_o come_v to_o heaven_n gate_n there_o be_v none_o to_o open_v they_o to_o i_o this_o say_v that_o religious_a king_n and_o this_o be_v his_o respect_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a iii_o epist_n ad_fw-la joan._n iii_o kenulphus_n king_n of_o the_o mercian_o write_v in_o his_o own_o and_o all_o his_o bishop_n angl._n vide_fw-la malme_n lib_n 1._o the_o gest_n reg._n angl._n and_o nobility_n name_n begin_v his_o letter_n in_o this_o humble_a manner_n to_o my_o most_o holy_a and_o well-beloved_a lord_n leo_n the_o roman_a bishop_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o apostolic_a sea_n kenulph_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n king_n of_o merchland_n with_o the_o bishop_n duke_n and_o all_o degree_n of_o honour_n with_o in_o our_o dominion_n with_o health_n of_o most_o sincere_a affection_n in_o christ_n and_o afterward_o he_o say_v the_o sublimity_n of_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n be_v our_o health_n and_o the_o prosperity_n thereof_o our_o continual_a joy_n because_o whence_o you_o have_v your_o apostolical_a dignity_n thence_o have_v we_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a say_v wherefore_o i_o think_v it_o sit_v that_o the_o ear_n of_o our_o obedience_n be_v humble_o incline_v unto_o your_o commandment_n and_o then_o demand_v the_o pope_n benediction_n for_o the_o better_a government_n of_o his_o people_n and_o resistance_n of_o foreign_a foe_n he_o add_v this_o blessing_n have_v all_o the_o king_n who_o sway_v the_o mercian_n sceptre_n deserve_v to_o obtain_v at_o your_o predecessor_n hand_n this_o same_o do_v i_o in_o humble_a manner_n request_n 20._o malme_n lib._n 3._o the_o gest_n be_v pont_n in_o wilfrido_n malme_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr gest_n pont_n angl._n westm_n a_o 854._o bale_n gent._n 2._o cap._n 20._o and_o desire_v to_o obtain_v of_o you_o most_o holy_a father_n first_o by_o way_n of_o adoption_n to_o receive_v i_o as_o a_o child_n as_o i_o love_v you_o in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o father_n and_o shall_v imbrate_v you_o with_o the_o whole_a force_n of_o obedience_n and_o afterwards_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o a_o token_n of_o a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o mancuze_n which_o he_o reque_v he_o to_o accept_v king_n etheldred_n receive_v the_o letter_n of_o pope_n john_n the_o seven_o upon_o his_o knee_n king_n ethelwolph_n sue_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o a_o dispensation_n send_v his_o son_n alfred_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v instruct_v and_o send_v peter-pence_n and_o make_v all_o england_n tributary_n to_o the_o roman_a sea_n king_n alfred_n surname_v the_o great_a 1066._o malme_n lib._n 3._o the_o gest_n reg._n angl._n fox_n act._n &_o mon._n pag_n 166._o &_o 167._o stow._n a_o 1066._o of_o who_o valour_n learning_n and_o piety_n our_o chronicler_n write_v wonder_n in_o his_o preface_n before_o the_o pastoral_n of_o s._n gregory_n which_o he_o translate_v into_o the_o saxon_a language_n call_v he_o christ_n vicaire_n king_n william_n the_o conqueror_n offer_v to_o try_v his_o title_n with_o harold_n before_o the_o pope_n and_o after_o get_v his_o title_n approve_v at_o rome_n he_o write_v a_o epistle_n to_o gregory_n the_o seven_o in_o which_o he_o confirm_v the_o tribute_n of_o peter_n penny_n which_o the_o king_n of_o england_n 502._o lib._n 5._o hist_o ang._n cambd._n in_o britan_n pag._n 350._o malme_n lib._n 3._o the_o gest_n reg._n &_o lib._n 1._o hist_o novel_a florent_fw-la vigour_n in_o chron_n a_o 1107_o matth._n paris_n pag_n 96._o hove_v a_o 1131._o fox_n pag._n 192._o fox_n pag._n 193._o hove_v pa._n 502._o even_o from_o king_n inas_fw-la pay_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o polidore_n virgil_n write_v in_o sign_n of_o reverence_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o roman_a sea_n king_n henry_n the_o first_o surname_v beauclerd_v for_o his_o knowledge_n in_o the_o seven_o liberal_a science_n build_v a_o church_n at_o dunstable_n and_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o pope_n eugenius_n the_o three_o as_o cambden_n confess_v place_v there_o canon_n regulars_n he_o yield_v the_o investiture_n of_o bishop_n and_o entertain_v most_o honourable_o pope_n innocent_a the_o second_o and_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v admit_v through_o out_o all_o france_n he_o write_v a_o letter_n to_o pope_n paschal_n which_o fox_n set_v down_o and_o give_v he_o this_o title_n to_o the_o venerable_a father_n paschal_n chief_a bishop_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n as_o the_o same_o fox_n relate_v he_o write_v another_o letter_n to_o the_o say_a pope_n demand_v the_o pall_n for_o gerard_n archbishop_n of_o york_n king_n henry_n the_o second_o though_o for_o a_o time_n he_o contend_v with_o pope_n alexander_n the_o three_o yet_o after_o the_o death_n of_o s._n thomas_n of_o canterbury_n 677._o fox_n pag._n 227._o coop_n a_o 1072._o bal._n cent_n 3._o cap._n 4._o hove_v par_fw-fr 2._o annal._n pag._n 677._o he_o permit_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o submit_v himself_o and_o his_o kingdom_n unto_o his_o pleasure_n king_n richard_z surname_v coeur_n de_fw-fr lion_n son_n to_o henry_n the_o second_o write_v a_o letter_n to_o pope_n clement_n the_o second_o with_o this_o title_n to_o his_o most_o reverend_a lord_n and_o bless_a father_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n clement_n chief_a bishop_n of_o the_o holy_a apostolic_a sea_n and_o a_o little_a after_o the_o fact_n of_o prince_n say_v he_o have_v better_a success_n 706._o hove_v pag._n 706._o when_o they_o receive_v assistance_n and_o favour_n from_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a 1190._o matth._n paris_n &_o hove_v a_o 1190._o and_o so_o when_o this_o king_n go_v to_o the_o holy_a land_n he_o leave_v the_o care_n and_o government_n of_o his_o kingdom_n unto_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a king_n henry_n the_o three_o when_o the_o pope_n send_v a_o legate_n into_o england_n as_o matthew_n paris_n relate_v meet_v the_o legate_n at_o the_o sea_n coast_n 287._o matth._n paris_n pag_n 589._o fox_n act_n pag._n 287._o and_o bow_v his_o head_n to_o his_o knee_n conduct_v he_o and_o after_o write_v a_o letter_n to_o pope_n innocent_a he_o callethe_v he_o most_o holy_a father_n and_o lord_n and_o chief_a bishop_n and_o offer_v kiss_v to_o his_o bless_a foot_n king_n edward_z the_o thiad_a writing_n a_o letter_n to_o the_o pope_n 150._o walse_v pag._n 150._o which_o walsingham_n sert_v down_o say_v that_o it_o be_v heresy_n to_o deny_v the_o pope_n judgement_n praesidere_fw-la omni_fw-la humanae_fw-la creaturae_fw-la to_o preside_v over_o all_o humane_a creature_n the_o same_o king_n write_v to_o pope_n clement_n use_v this_o submission_n to_o his_o most_o holy_a lord_n clement_n by_o the_o divine_a providence_n chief_a bishop_n of_o the_o sacred_a roman_a and_o universal_a church_n edward_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n king_n of_o france_n and_o england_n and_o lord_n of_o ireland_n devout_a kiss_n of_o your_o bless_a foot_n and_o the_o same_o king_n and_o all_o his_o noble_n anno_o 1343._o assemble_v in_o the_o parliament_n at_o westminster_n in_o a_o letter_n write_v to_o the_o pope_n 383._o fox_n act._n pa._n 383._o which_o fox_n set_v down_o call_v he_o head_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n king_n henry_n the_o sift_n that_o warlike_a and_o victorious_a prince_n send_v his_o ambassador_n to_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n call_v for_o the_o condemnation_n of_o wickleph_n 1416_o stowe_n a_o 1416_o and_o there_o demand_v and_o obtain_v that_o england_n may_v be_v call_v a_o nation_n and_o one_o of_o the_o four_o nation_n that_o owe_v devotion_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 1506._o fox_n act_v pa._n 799._o georg._n lilius_fw-la in_o chron._n a_o 1506._o king_n henry_n the_o seven_o anno_fw-la 1506._o send_v three_o solemn_a orator_n to_o pope_n julius_n the_o second_o to_o yield_v his_o obedience_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n unto_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n yea_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o in_o the_o year_n 152●_n dedicate_v his_o book_n against_o luther_n to_o pope_n leo_n the_o ten_o which_o book_n i_o have_v see_v sign_v with_o the_o king_n own_o hand_n in_o a_o english_a character_n for_o which_o the_o pope_n give_v he_o and_o his_o successor_n the_o title_n of_o defendor_n of_o the_o faith_n that_o he_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n his_o pastor_n appear_v by_o this_o that_o at_o first_o he_o make_v suit_n to_o he_o for_o a_o separation_n from_o queen_n catherine_n but_o when_o he_o perceave_v he_o can_v not_o obtain_v his_o suit_n then_o and_o upon_o that_o occasion_n only_o he_o exile_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o make_v himself_o head_n and_o the_o first_o head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o that_o which_o i_o
have_v say_v of_o the_o know_a respect_n the_o king_n of_o england_n ever_o before_o bare_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n 14._o seventhlis_n i_o prove_v this_o by_o the_o ancient_a ceremony_n of_o kiss_v the_o pope_n foot_n and_o other_o homage_n which_o no_o good_a christian_n though_o a_o king_n or_o emperor_n have_v ever_o disdain_v fulfil_v therein_o the_o prophecy_n of_o esay_n quam_fw-la speciosi_fw-la pedes_fw-la euangelizantis_fw-la pacem_fw-la how_o beautiful_a be_v the_o foot_n of_o he_o that_o euangelize_v and_o preach_v peace_n 52._o esay_n 52._o and_o follow_v therein_o the_o example_n of_o the_o three_o king_n 2._o matt._n 2._o who_o adore_v christ_n and_o of_o the_o prime_a christian_n who_o bring_v the_o price_n of_o their_o land_n to_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o apostle_n iu._n act._n 4._o &_o 5._o act._n 10._o phocius_fw-la in_o nomo_n con_fw-mi cap._n constantinus_n do_v 96._o naucler_n lib._n 2._o gener_fw-la 18._o blond_n li._n 10._o mart._n polonus_n &_o platina_n in_o steph._n 2._o s._n ansel_n luc_n li._n 1._o collecta_fw-la plat._n in_o adria_n 1._o baro._n to_o 12._o anno_fw-la 1130._o platina_n in_o eugenio_n iu._n and_o of_o cornelius_n that_o fall_v at_o peter_n foot_n constantine_n the_o great_a great_a for_o his_o humility_n then_o for_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o victory_n and_o empery_n honour_v the_o pope_n as_o his_o pastor_n and_o superior_a and_o bestow_v great_a temporal_a honour_n and_o regality_n upon_o he_o justinian_n the_o great_a in_o the_o year_n 535._o adore_v agapetus_n pope_n justinian_n the_o second_o crouch_v to_o pope_n constantine_n the_o first_o foot_n embrace_v he_o king_n pipin_n go_v to_o meet_v pope_n steeven_n who_o be_v go_v to_o he_o into_o france_n for_o help_v kiss_v his_o foot_n and_o lead_v his_o horse_n by_o the_o bridle_n into_o the_o court_n and_o palace_n charles_n the_o great_a will_v not_o be_v hinder_v by_o pope_n adrian_z the_o first_o from_o kiss_v his_o foot_n as_o platina_n write_v lewis_z king_n of_o france_n and_o henry_n the_o second_o king_n of_o england_n kiss_v humble_o the_o foot_n of_o innocent_a the_o second_o sigismond_n the_o emperor_n in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n worship_v pope_n martin_n prostrate_v upon_o the_o ground_n albert_n emperor_n of_o the_o west_n and_o joannes_n paleologus_n emperor_n of_o the_o east_n use_v the_o same_o submission_n to_o eugenius_n the_o four_o in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n 15._o by_o this_o which_o have_v be_v say_v who_o be_v of_o so_o little_a insight_n that_o see_v not_o how_o prince_n be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o chief_a bishop_n and_o high_a visible_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n which_o if_o prince_n also_o can_v see_v as_o their_o conceit_n of_o their_o own_o authority_n many_o time_n hinder_v they_o from_o see_v they_o will_v not_o encroach_v upon_o the_o church_n as_o they_o do_v they_o will_v not_o contemn_v her_o law_n but_o honour_v they_o as_o oracle_n they_o will_v not_o despise_v the_o church_n pastor_n but_o will_v as_o the_o ancient_a christian_a prince_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v honour_v they_o above_o all_o terrene_a potentate_n 16._o and_o will_v to_o god_n our_o noble_a sovereign_a king_n james_n have_v be_v train_v up_o in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n catholic_a church_n in_o which_o our_o ancient_a king_n his_o predecessor_n learn_v their_o duty_n towards_o the_o pope_n that_o rare_a and_o deep_a judgement_n of_o he_o will_v never_o have_v permit_v he_o to_o think_v a_o temporal_a king_n as_o great_a as_o the_o pope_n 5._o in_o praf_n monitor_fw-la pag._n 5._o to_o who_o his_o predecessor_n subject_v their_o person_n kingdom_n crown_n and_o sceptre_n it_o will_v never_o have_v sink_v into_o his_o learned_a head_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v antichrist_n and_o consequent_o all_o his_o predecessor_n the_o king_n of_o england_n yea_o of_o christendom_n so_o wise_a so_o pious_a so_o warlike_a so_o victorious_a worshipper_n and_o favourer_n of_o antichrist_n he_o will_v never_o have_v incite_v the_o emperor_n and_o christian_a princc_n monitor_fw-la in_o praef_n monitor_fw-la to_o curb_v he_o restrain_v he_o and_o to_o diminish_v that_o his_o authority_n which_o not_o they_o but_o christ_n give_v he_o by_o which_o he_o have_v put_v the_o crown_n upon_o many_o a_o emperor_n and_o king_n head_n by_o which_o all_o christian_a king_n and_o their_o kingdom_n have_v be_v maintain_v in_o religion_n wealth_n and_o prosperity_n against_o which_o authority_n no_o temporal_a stair_n have_v long_o prevail_v but_o like_o wave_n against_o the_o rock_n by_o persecute_v it_o have_v waste_v and_o ruin_v themselves_o which_o authority_n be_v not_o give_v he_o ex_fw-la prima_fw-la intention_n to_o take_v away_o temporal_a kingdom_n from_o any_o unless_o by_o evil_a comportement_fw-fr they_o make_v themselves_o unworthy_a of_o all_o rule_n and_o humane_a society_n but_o rather_o to_o conserve_v they_o and_o to_o add_v unto_o they_o a_o new_a crown_n and_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n for_o non_fw-la eripit_fw-la mortalia_fw-la qui_fw-la regna_fw-la that_fw-mi coelestia_fw-la he_o that_o give_v to_o man_n heavenly_a thing_n go_v not_o about_o to_o take_v away_o from_o he_o those_o that_o be_v earthly_a employ_v then_o o_o noble_a sovereign_a your_o rare_a wit_n power_n and_o force_v to_o defend_v and_o protect_v this_o authority_n not_o to_o impugn_v it_o show_v yourself_o worthy_a that_o title_n of_o a_o defendor_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v give_v to_o your_o predecessor_n by_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a not_o for_o impugn_v but_o for_o defend_v her_o faith_n and_o authority_n seek_v not_o to_o sack_v and_o raze_v that_o city_n which_o be_v build_v upon_o a_o rock_n think_v not_o to_o prevail_v against_o that_o church_n against_o which_o all_o the_o persecution_n schism_n and_o heresy_n that_o have_v be_v raise_v against_o she_o no_o nor_o the_o force_n or_o gate_n of_o hell_n can_v hitherto_o or_o shall_v ever_o here_o after_o prevail_v seek_v not_o to_o sink_v the_o ship_n which_o peter_n rule_v and_o at_o who_o stern_a christ_n himself_o sit_v it_o may_v be_v by_o god_n permission_n toss_v with_o wind_n wave_n and_o tempest_n but_o it_o can_v never_o be_v drown_v for_o as_o pope_n gregory_n the_o ninthe_n once_o tell_v a_o emperor_n that_o think_v by_o humane_a force_n and_o policy_n to_o sink_v she_o frederice_n cuspinianus_n in_o frederice_n niteris_fw-la incassum_fw-la navem_fw-la submergere_fw-la petri_n fluctuat_fw-la at_o nunquam_fw-la mergitur_fw-la illa_fw-la ratis_fw-la thou_o strive_v in_o vain_a s._n peter_n ship_n to_o sink_v float_v may_v it_o well_o to_o drown_v it_o never_o think_v chapter_n vi._n that_o prince_n king_n yea_o emperor_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n or_o to_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n neither_o to_o be_v account_v head_n or_o superior_n but_o subject_n of_o the_o church_n though_o protector_n and_o defendour_n and_o therefore_o be_v modest_o admonish_v of_o their_o duty_n and_o office_n 1._o almighty_a god_n as_o he_o have_v institute_v two_o power_n terrene_a and_o spiritual_a civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a and_o have_v distinguish_v they_o in_o nature_n object_n function_n &_o end_n so_o to_o avoid_v confusion_n he_o have_v place_v they_o in_o diverse_a subject_n the_o terrene_a power_n he_o have_v give_v to_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n the_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a to_o priest_n prelate_n and_o pastor_n as_o above_o we_o have_v see_v for_o although_o there_o be_v no_o such_o natural_a repugnancy_n but_o that_o these_o power_n may_v consort_v in_o one_o euag._n ep._n 126._o ad_fw-la euag._n and_o the_o self_n same_o person_n for_o as_o s._n hierome_n say_v in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n the_o first_o beget_v of_o every_o family_n be_v priest_n and_o temporal_a lord_n melchisedech_n also_o and_o moses_n and_o the_o machab●et_n be_v priest_n and_o prince_n yet_o it_o be_v most_o convenient_a that_o these_o two_o power_n shall_v be_v separate_v the_o king_n and_o prince_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o war_n and_o temporal_a affair_n wherewith_o he_o be_v entangle_v be_v not_o so_o apt_a to_o menage_n matter_n of_o the_o church_n and_o religion_n the_o prelate_n and_o pastor_n be_v by_o office_n oblige_v to_o attend_v to_o divine_a matter_n from_o which_o the_o menage_n of_o common_a wealth_n affair_n will_v much_o distract_v he_o and_o therefore_o as_o the_o church_n come_v to_o great_a perfection_n 27._o num._n 27._o so_o be_v these_o office_n give_v to_o distinct_a officer_n for_o josve_fw-la be_v make_v captain_n and_o commander_n in_o temporal_a thing_n 19_o 2._o paralip_n 19_o eleazar_n be_v the_o high_a priest_n and_o chief_a in_o matter_n of_o the_o church_n amarias_n the_o high_a priest_n command_v in_o his_o quae_fw-la ad_fw-la deum_fw-la pertinent_a in_o matter_n pertain_v to_o god_n and_o zabadias_n be_v depute_v to_o the_o government_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o
monstretur_fw-la the_o beginning_n be_v take_v from_o one_o and_o the_o primacy_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n that_o one_o church_n and_o one_o chair_n may_v be_v show_v jovin_n cypr._n ep_v ad_fw-la jubaianun_n hier._n lib._n 2._o contra_fw-la jovin_n and_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o jubaianus_n ecclesia_fw-la quae_fw-la una_fw-la est_fw-la super_fw-la unum_fw-la qui_fw-la clave_n accepit_fw-la voce_fw-la domini_fw-la fundata_fw-la est_fw-la the_o church_n which_o be_v one_o be_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o our_o lord_n found_v upon_o one_o who_o have_v receive_v the_o key_n and_o s._n hierome_n say_v inter_fw-la duodecim_fw-la unus_fw-la eligitur_fw-la ut_fw-la capite_fw-la constituto_fw-la schismatis_fw-la tollatur_fw-la occasio_fw-la amongst_o twelve_o one_o be_v choose_v that_o the_o head_n be_v appoint_v the_o occasion_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o but_o if_o we_o admit_v every_o king_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o kingdom_n we_o shall_v not_o have_v one_o visible_a head_n but_o many_o and_o those_o also_o very_o diverse_a for_o as_o king_n claim_v supremacy_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a because_o they_o be_v supreme_a prince_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n may_v the_o senate_n in_o venice_n genua_n and_o geneva_n challenge_v the_o same_o authority_n whence_o follow_v that_o unity_n in_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n under_o so_o diverse_a head_n can_v any_o long_a time_n be_v retain_v but_o we_o shall_v have_v as_o many_o religion_n as_o king_n and_o as_o many_o diverse_a and_o independent_a church_n and_o kingdom_n for_o one_o king_n will_v not_o depend_v either_o for_o himself_o or_o his_o people_n of_o a_o other_o 12._o this_o division_n we_o see_v already_o proceed_v from_o these_o diverse_a head_n have_v we_o not_o see_v how_o religion_n in_o england_n have_v change_v with_o our_o king_n since_o they_o challenge_v supremacy_n of_o our_o church_n king_n henry_n the_o eight_o in_o the_o six_o and_o twentieth_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n in_o the_o parliament_n hold_v at_o westminster_n the_o three_o of_o november_n 1534._o enact_v that_o the_o king_n shall_v be_v repute_v the_o only_o supreme_a head_n in_o earth_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o shall_v have_v aswell_o the_o title_n and_o stile_n as_o all_o honour_n authority_n and_o commodity_n belong_v thereunto_o and_o all_o power_n also_o to_o redress_v all_o heresy_n error_n and_o abuse_n in_o the_o same_o and_o the_o year_n before_o also_o the_o fiftenth_n of_o january_n the_o king_n and_o parliament_n decree_v that_o no_o appeal_v shall_v be_v make_v to_o rome_n no_o annates_fw-la or_o imposition_n shall_v be_v pay_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n no_o suit_n shall_v be_v make_v to_o he_o for_o licenre_n or_o dispensation_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o parlamet_n hold_v at_o westminster_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1554._o the_o first_o and_o second_o year_n of_o king_n philip_n and_o queen_n marie_n obedience_n be_v restore_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o statute_n repeal_v which_o derogate_a to_o the_o authority_n and_o honour_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o the_o title_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a be_v reject_v after_o this_o notwithstanding_o be_v the_o same_o authority_n take_v again_o by_o queen_n elizabeth_z in_o the_o parliament_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1558._o jan._n anno_fw-la 1._o regni_fw-la elizab_n die_v 13._o jan._n likewise_o in_o the_o parliament_n hold_v by_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o in_o the_o one_o and_o thirtith_n year_n of_o his_o reign_n and_o eight_o and_o twentieth_o of_o april_n and_o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1537._o these_o six_o article_n be_v enact_v article_n the_o six_o article_n the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o true_a and_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n without_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n 2._o that_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n be_v not_o necessary_a for_o the_o people_n 3._o that_o priest_n can_v marry_v after_o priesthood_n 4._o that_o religious_a after_o their_o vow_n can_v marry_v 5._o that_o private_a mass_n be_v according_a to_o god_n law_n and_o to_o be_v allow_v 6._o that_o auricular_a confession_n be_v expedient_a and_o necessary_a and_o yet_o this_o statute_n be_v qualify_v and_o repeal_v by_o edward_n the_o sixth_o his_o son_n and_o as_o yet_o a_o child_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1547._o 4._o novemb._n and_o first_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n after_o that_o again_o the_o self_n same_o six_o article_n be_v receive_v and_o confirm_v in_o queen_n mary_n reign_n in_o the_o first_o parliament_n a_fw-mi domini_fw-la 1553._o 24._o octob._n and_o in_o another_o a_o domini_fw-la 1554._o likewise_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o in_o the_o parliament_n hold_v the_o 22._o of_o january_n and_o 34._o of_o his_o reign_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1542._o condemn_a tindals_n translation_n of_o the_o bible_n and_o all_o book_n write_v against_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n and_o forbid_v the_o bible_n to_o be_v red_a in_o english_a in_o any_o church_n which_o statute_n be_v repeal_v by_o king_n edward_z at_o westminster_n a_o 1._o edu_n 6._o domini_fw-la 1547._o and_o yet_o the_o former_a statute_n of_o king_n henry_n be_v renew_v by_o queen_n marie_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o her_o reign_n a_o domini_fw-la 1553._o and_o repeal_v again_o by_o queen_n elizabeth_z in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o her_o reign_n so_o that_o if_o king_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n we_o shall_v have_v as_o many_o religion_n almost_o as_o king_n and_o even_o as_o king_n hbnrie_n the_o eight_o after_o his_o usurpation_n of_o the_o supremacy_n change_v his_o wife_n and_o make_v his_o marriage_n lawful_a and_o unlawful_a his_o child_n legitimat_fw-la and_z illegitimat_fw-la at_o his_o pleasure_n and_o by_o authority_n also_o of_o the_o parliament_n which_o dare_v not_o gainsay_v so_o every_o king_n shall_v have_v authority_n to_o change_v religion_n and_o must_v be_v obey_v as_o the_o only_o supreme_a head_n in_o earth_n of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o and_o his_o young_a son_n king_n edward_n and_o his_o daughter_n queen_n elizabeth_n challenge_v authority_n to_o redress_v error_n and_o correct_v heresy_n to_o give_v validity_n to_o all_o ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o synod_n as_o king_n henry_n make_v it_o heresy_n to_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n so_o another_o king_n of_o england_n or_o of_o another_o kingdom_n may_v decree_v the_o contrary_n as_o king_n henry_n forbid_v priest_n to_o marry_v so_o another_o king_n will_v permit_v they_o to_o marry_v as_o king_n henry_n command_v the_o bible_n to_o be_v read_v and_o divine_a service_n to_o be_v say_v and_o song_n in_o latin_a so_o another_o will_v like_v better_o of_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n of_o his_o own_o country_n and_o if_o you_o say_v that_o the_o king_n be_v tie_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n every_o one_o of_o they_o will_v say_v that_o they_o follow_v the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v the_o authority_n to_o judge_v of_o heresy_n and_o consequent_o of_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 3._o sixth_o if_o prince_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n a_o ridiculous_a consequence_n and_o of_o which_o even_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n of_o england_n have_v be_v ashamed_a will_v follow_v to_o wit_n that_o they_o may_v preach_v minister_v sacrament_n excommunicate_a call_v counsel_n and_o sit_v as_o judge_n in_o they_o etc._n etc._n for_o if_o the_o prince_n be_v supreme_a head_n he_o be_v also_o supreme_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o his_o kingdom_n for_o head_n and_o pastor_n in_o this_o kind_n be_v all_o one_o torti_n in_o tortura_fw-la torti_n and_o this_o d._n andrew_n grant_v and_o proove_v by_o the_o example_n of_o david_n to_o who_o the_o people_n say_v that_o god_n have_v say_v unto_o he_o tu_fw-la pafces_fw-la populum_fw-la meum_fw-la israel_n 5_o 2._o reg._n 5_o thou_o shall_v feed_v my_o people_n of_o israel_n whereas_o there_o only_o mention_n be_v of_o a_o temporal_a pastor_n government_n and_o feed_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n follow_v tu_fw-la eris_fw-la dux_n super_fw-la israel_n thou_o shall_v be_v captain_n over_o israel_n 45._o gen._n 45._o and_o in_o this_o sense_n joseph_n say_v ego_fw-la te_fw-la pascam_fw-la i_o will_v feed_v thou_o mean_v his_o father_n jacob_n so_o that_o if_o the_o prince_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n he_o be_v pastor_n but_o it_o pertain_v to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o pastor_n to_o govern_v his_o sheep_n by_o law_n to_o feed_v they_o with_o bread_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 4._o matt._n 4._o by_o which_o the_o soul_n live_v and_o the_o sacrament_n to_o sever_v a_o infect_a sheep_n from_o the_o flock_n by_o excommunication_n lest_o it_o infect_v the_o whole_a and_o consequent_o if_o the_o king_n be_v supreme_a head_n
follow_v he_o say_v s._n chrysostome_n non_fw-la ut_fw-la regem_fw-la eiecturus_fw-la isaiae_n homi._n 5._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la isaiae_n sed_fw-la ut_fw-la profugum_fw-la &_o ingratum_fw-la filium_fw-la expulsurus_fw-la not_o as_o though_o he_o be_v to_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n a_o king_n but_o a_o runnegate_n and_o ungrateful_a servant_n follow_v he_o as_o a_o eager_a mastiff_n do_v the_o beast_n to_o chase_v he_o out_o of_o his_o lord_n and_o master_n house_n and_o as_o one_o that_o take_v no_o care_n of_o the_o king_n threaten_v fear_v neither_o his_o guard_n nor_o his_o regality_n nor_o his_o golden_a crown_n nor_o his_o kingly_a sceptre_n nor_o his_o stern_a look_n and_o majesty_n but_o with_o a_o undaunted_a courage_n with_o a_o constant_a countenance_n and_o a_o free_a voice_n that_o never_o have_v learned_a how_o to_o flatter_v 26_o 2._o par_fw-fr 26_o he_o tell_v he_o as_o plain_o as_o true_o non_fw-la est_fw-la tui_fw-la officij_fw-la ozia_n ut_fw-la adoleas_fw-la incensum_fw-la domino_fw-la sed_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la filiorum_fw-la aaron_n qui_fw-la consecrati_fw-la sunt_fw-la ad_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la ministerium_fw-la egredere_fw-la de_fw-la sanctuario_fw-la ne_fw-la contempseris_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la reputabitur_fw-la tibi_fw-la ad_fw-la gloriam_fw-la hoc_fw-la à_fw-la domino_fw-la deo_fw-la it_o be_v not_o thy_o office_n ozias_n to_o burn_v incense_n to_o our_o lord_n but_o of_o the_o priest_n that_o be_v of_o the_o child_n of_o aaron_n which_o be_v consecrate_v to_o this_o kind_n of_o ministry_n go_v out_o of_o the_o sanctuary_n contemn_v not_o because_o this_o thing_n shall_v not_o be_v repute_v to_o thou_o for_o glory_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n vide_fw-la say_v s._n chrysostome_n esaiae_n hom._n 4._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la esaiae_n libertatem_fw-la vide_fw-la mentem_fw-la seruire_fw-la nesciam_fw-la vide_fw-la linguam_fw-la coelos_fw-la attingentem_fw-la vide_fw-la libertatem_fw-la incoercibilem_fw-la vide_fw-la hominis_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o angeli_fw-la mentem_fw-la vide_fw-la humi_fw-la ingredientem_fw-la &_o in_o caelum_fw-la versantem_fw-la behold_v the_o freeness_n and_o plainness_n of_o a_o priest_n behold_v a_o mind_n that_o never_o know_v how_o to_o be_v servile_a behold_v a_o tongue_n that_o be_v hear_v to_o heaven_n behold_v a_o unrestrained_a liberty_n behold_v the_o body_n of_o a_o man_n the_o mind_n of_o a_o angel_n behold_v one_o tread_v on_o the_o ground_n yet_o converse_v in_o heaven_n let_v i_o o_o christian_a prince_n a_o priest_n not_o of_o aaron_z but_o of_o christ_n use_v the_o like_a liberty_n against_o you_o that_o invade_v the_o church_n right_a and_o arrogate_v priestly_a dignity_n it_o be_v not_o thy_o office_n o_o king_n o_o prince_n to_o meddle_v in_o church_n matter_n or_o government_n of_o the_o church_n but_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o priest_n and_o prelate_n consecrate_v and_o ordain_v for_o that_o purpose_n dare_v a_o prince_n once_o offer_v to_o meddle_v in_o the_o church_n government_n to_o sit_v as_o judge_v in_o her_o synod_n to_o pronounce_v sentence_n in_o her_o tribunal_n to_o prescribe_v service_n in_o her_o temple_n depart_v o_o king_n whosoever_o thou_o be_v that_o be_v thus_o hardy_a depart_v out_o of_o the_o sanctuary_n command_v no_o more_o in_o the_o church_n if_o thou_o will_v command_v long_o and_o prosperous_o in_o thy_o kingdom_n depart_v i_o say_v this_o be_v no_o place_n for_o thou_o contemn_v not_o my_o counsel_n lest_o thou_o pay_v for_o thy_o contempt_n and_o be_v strike_v with_o a_o leprosy_n in_o thy_o forehead_n for_o such_o impudency_n it_o be_v no_o glory_n for_o thou_o o_o king_n to_o meddle_v in_o church_n matter_n it_o be_v a_o glory_n indeed_o and_o as_o much_o great_a than_o the_o office_n of_o a_o king_n at_o it_o be_v more_o to_o govern_v soul_n than_o body_n and_o to_o menage_n spiritual_a then_o temporal_a affair_n but_o it_o be_v no_o honour_n to_o a_o king_n neither_o will_v it_o ever_o turn_v to_o the_o prosperity_n of_o he_o or_o his_o posterity_n all_o the_o ancient_a king_n yea_o and_o emperor_n also_o so_o mighty_a in_o arm_n so_o rich_a in_o treasure_n so_o glitter_v in_o their_o crown_n sceptre_n purple_a and_o precious_a stone_n so_o fortunate_a in_o war_n so_o glorious_a in_o victory_n never_o dream_v of_o such_o ambition_n but_o think_v it_o their_o honour_n to_o be_v defendour_n not_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n subject_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n no_o pastor_n child_n no_o father_n inferior_a member_n to_o the_o church_n no_o supreme_a head_n and_o therefore_o submit_v their_o sceptre_n to_o the_o pastoral_n staff_n their_o crown_n to_o the_o mitre_n their_o temporal_a sword_n to_o the_o spiritual_a glaive_n their_o law_n to_o the_o canon_n their_o kingdom_n to_o the_o church_n their_o person_n to_o the_o priest_n and_o shall_v now_o a_o king_n &_o a_o christian_a king_n arrogate_v ecclesiastical_a authority_n if_o he_o will_v reign_v long_o over_o his_o subject_n let_v he_o permit_v the_o church_n rule_n and_o command_v over_o he_o if_o he_o will_v have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n let_v he_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n himself_o a_o son_n no_o father_n a_o subject_n in_o this_o kind_n no_o superior_a 25._o harken_v o_o king_n whosoever_o thou_o be_v that_o arrogate_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n or_o encroach_v upon_o the_o church_n right_a and_o domain_v unto_o s._n ambrose_n his_o counsel_n which_o he_o give_v to_o valentinian_n the_o young_a when_o do_v thou_o hear_v 143_o supra_fw-la citatus_fw-la pag._n 143_o o_o most_o clement_a king_n that_o layman_n be_v bishop_n judge_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o church_n do_v not_o trouble_v thyself_o as_o to_o think_v that_o thou_o have_v any_o imperial_a right_n in_o divine_a matter_n give_v to_o god_n and_o his_o church_n and_o pastor_n what_o be_v due_a to_o they_o if_o thou_o will_v that_o thy_o subject_n give_v to_o thou_o what_o belong_v to_o thou_o o_o king_n give_v ear_n o_o king_n to_o grave_n hos●us_n his_o speech_n leave_v of_o ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la o_o king_n to_o intermeddle_v in_o such_o matter_n remember_v thou_o be_v a_o mortal_a man_n a_o king_n no_o priest_n and_o reserve_v thyself_o pure_a and_o f●●e_a from_o such_o audacious_a attempt_n command_v not_o priest_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n but_o rather_o learn_v such_o thing_n of_o they_o o_o potentate_n o_o prince_n o_o king_n 16._o nu._n 16._o harken_v to_o azarias_n counsel_n which_o he_o give_v to_o king_n ozias_n it_o be_v not_o thy_o office_n o_o king_n to_o burn_v incense_n to_o our_o lord_n or_o if_o thou_o contemn_v azarias_n his_o counsel_n fear_v ozias_n his_o leprosy_n if_o thou_o will_v arrogate_v the_o office_n of_o aaron_z take_v heed_n least_o with_o chore_n dathan_n and_o abiron_n the_o earth_n devour_v thou_o or_o the_o fire_n consume_v thou_o 3._o 2._o ma●_n 3._o if_o thou_o will_v rob_v the_o treasure_n of_o the_o temple_n take_v heed_n the_o angel_n of_o god_n scourge_v thou_o not_o with_o heliodorus_n 9_o 2._o ma●_n 9_o if_o thou_o will_v spoil_v the_o temple_n and_o kill_v the_o people_n of_o god_n with_o antiochus_n if_o thou_o will_v destroy_v the_o temple_n with_o nabuchodonosor_n use_v prophanelie_o the_o holy_a vessel_n with_o balthasar_n profane_v the_o say_a temple_n with_o pompey_n and_o other_o fear_v their_o infamous_a and_o miserable_a end_n know_v that_o there_o be_v never_o king_n nor_o emperor_n that_o rebel_v against_o the_o church_n or_o persecute_v she_o especial_o since_o christ_n time_n and_o since_o he_o shed_v his_o blood_n for_o she_o that_o have_v not_o have_v some_o miserable_a end_n or_o other_o 26._o and_o to_o omit_v those_o pagan_a persecutor_n nero_n domitian_n dioclesian_n maximinian_n julian_n and_o other_o anast_n other_o zonar_n &_o cedr_n in_o eius_fw-la vira_fw-la rhegino_n lib._n 1._o chron._n a_o 5.8_o martin_n polon_n in_o anast_n anastasius_n the_o first_o emperor_n of_o that_o name_n for_o resist_v the_o pope_n for_o favour_v the_o arrian_n heresy_n and_o for_o disdain_v to_o receive_v or_o to_o admit_v to_o his_o sight_n the_o legate_n who_o hormisda_n pope_n send_v to_o he_o be_v sudden_o with_o a_o thunderbolt_n level_v at_o he_o from_o heaven_n strike_v to_o death_n omnes_fw-la death_n theop._n miscel_n lib._n 17._o cedren_n ●n_fw-fr annal._n niceph._n lib_n 18._o c._n 8._o &_o seqq_fw-la &_o alij_fw-la omnes_fw-la mauritius_n for_o his_o insolence_n against_o s._n gregory_n be_v drive_v out_o of_o his_o empire_n chase_v into_o a_o island_n where_o by_o phocas_n commandment_n himself_o his_o wise_n and_o child_n be_v miserable_o slay_v 565._o slay_v procop._n lib._n 3._o de_fw-la bello_fw-la goth._n nicep_v li._n 17._o c_o 31._o vide_fw-la baron_n to_z 7_o a_o 565._o justinian_n after_o many_o glorious_a victory_n fall_v into_o a_o most_o hard_a fortune_n for_o his_o heresy_n and_o tyranny_n against_o vigilius_n pope_n 〈◊〉_d be_v infest_a on_o all_o side_n with_o the_o incursion_n of_o the_o barbares_fw-la and_o at_o length_n
ecclesiastical_a law_n in_o give_v authority_n to_o preach_v to_o minister_v sacrament_n and_o such_o like_a yet_o when_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o conservation_n of_o this_o power_n or_o of_o the_o church_n or_o faith_n of_o which_o it_o have_v the_o charge_n that_o it_o dispose_v of_o temporal_a matter_n it_o can_v do_v that_o also_o and_o so_o the_o same_o spiritual_a authority_n which_o direct_o and_o as_o it_o be_v ex_fw-la prima_fw-la intention_n ordain_v and_o determine_v of_o spiritual_a matter_n deal_v also_o with_o temporal_a affair_n not_o absolute_o but_o as_o they_o be_v ordain_v and_o necessary_a to_o the_o attain_n of_o the_o spiritual_a end_n which_o be_v conservation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o faith_n and_o the_o soul_n faluation_n but_o because_o this_o power_n do_v not_o respect_n temporal_a thing_n principal_o and_o for_o they_o selnes_n but_o only_o secondarilie_o and_o as_o they_o be_v ordain_v to_o the_o conservation_n of_o the_o spiritual_a good_a of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v say_v indirect_o only_a to_o respect_v temporal_a matter_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o meddle_v not_o ordinary_o but_o in_o some_o extraordinary_a case_n with_o the_o say_v temporal_a matter_n we_o may_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n ordinary_o meddle_v with_o spiritual_a matter_n and_o have_v for_o his_o ordinary_a glaive_n and_o weapon_n the_o spiritual_a censure_n but_o when_o they_o will_v not_o serve_v to_o defend_v the_o church_n necessary_a right_n than_o he_o may_v also_o use_v the_o temporal_a sword_n and_o punishment_n because_o the_o same_o authority_n which_o handle_v principal_o direct_o and_o ex_fw-la prima_fw-la intention_n the_o spiritual_a glaive_n may_v also_o command_v and_o handle_v the_o temporal_a sword_n when_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o spiritual_a end_n for_o than_o gladius_fw-la est_fw-la sub_fw-la gladio_fw-la as_o boniface_n the_o eight_o say_v the_o temporal_a sword_n be_v subordinate_a and_o subject_a to_o the_o spiritual_a and_o this_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n which_o our_o most_o illustrious_a cardinal_n allan_n the_o honour_n of_o our_o country_n hold_v and_o defend_v in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o libeller_n chap._n 5.6_o 7._o but_o this_o subjection_n of_o temporal_a state_n to_o the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n may_v be_v diverslie_o take_v first_o it_o may_v be_v take_v for_o subjection_n and_o inferioritie_n in_o the_o order_n of_o dignity_n only_o and_o so_o all_o author_n agree_v that_o the_o spiritual_a power_n be_v superior_a to_o the_o temporal_a secondlie_o it_o may_v be_v understand_v of_o a_o superiority_n in_o direct_v not_o only_o by_o counsel_n but_o also_o by_o commandment_n under_o pain_n of_o sin_n and_o some_o spiritual_a mulct_n as_o excommunication_n suspension_n and_o interdict_v and_o so_o also_o all_o good_a and_o catholic_n author_n yea_o barclaye_n and_o widdrington_n confess_v 197._o widdr_a in_o apol._n n._n 197._o that_o the_o spiritual_a power_n may_v not_o only_o direct_v by_o counsel_n but_o may_v also_o command_v the_o temporal_a power_n not_o to_o use_v the_o temporal_a sword_n or_o authority_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o it_o may_v also_o correct_v and_o punish_v those_o that_o refuse_v to_o obey_v by_o spiritual_a penalty_n thirdlie_o it_o may_v be_v take_v for_o a_o subjection_n which_o import_v not_o only_o a_o subjection_n to_o the_o commandment_n but_o also_o to_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o spiritual_a power_n in_o which_o sense_n the_o pope_n and_o supreme_a pastor_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v authority_n not_o only_o to_o command_v under_o pain_n of_o sin_n christian_n prince_n to_o cease_v from_o persecute_v or_o wrong_v the_o church_n or_o to_o implore_v their_o sword_n and_o temporal_a authority_n and_o mean_n to_o the_o necessary_a defence_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o if_o they_o refuse_v and_o contemn_v his_o spiritual_a authority_n and_o penalty_n which_o he_o inflict_v upon_o they_o he_o may_v dispose_v of_o their_o crown_n kingdom_n and_o authority_n and_o bestow_v they_o on_o some_o other_o that_o shall_v do_v the_o church_n better_a service_n or_o at_o least_o shall_v not_o wrong_v she_o or_o do_v she_o that_o injury_n with_o the_o which_o the_o church_n right_a and_o faith_n can_v consist_v and_o this_o authority_n barclaye_v widdrington_n and_o some_o other_o not_o only_o heretic_n &_o schismatic_n but_o also_o who_o desire_v still_o to_o go_v by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n do_v deny_v wherefore_o for_o the_o respect_n i_o bear_v and_o owe_v to_o god_n and_o his_o church_n and_o for_o the_o information_n of_o some_o deceive_a catholic_n and_o confutation_n of_o heretic_n and_o those_o catholic_n who_o in_o this_o point_n join_v with_o they_o i_o will_v prove_v it_o by_o many_o convince_a argument_n in_o the_o ensue_a chapter_n of_o this_o treatise_n and_o first_o out_o of_o scripture_n chapter_n viii_o by_o diverse_a place_n and_o example_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n it_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o some_o case_n can_v not_o only_o by_o spiritual_a censure_n but_o also_o by_o temporal_a punishment_n and_o even_o by_o deprivation_n chastise_v prince_n who_o be_v rebellious_a and_o do_v tyrannical_o persecute_v and_o molest_v the_o church_n 1._o have_v explicate_v how_o the_o pope_n spiritual_a power_n may_v dispose_v of_o temporal_a thing_n and_o even_o crown_n and_o diadem_n when_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n conservation_n or_o great_a and_o necessary_a good_a it_o remain_v that_o i_o prove_v the_o same_o but_o because_o the_o proof_n be_v long_a and_o many_o i_o will_v in_o this_o chapter_n allege_v only_o those_o argument_n which_o may_v be_v deduce_v out_o of_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o lest_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n in_o this_o point_n play_n with_o i_o as_o they_o have_v do_v with_o some_o learned_a writer_n of_o this_o time_n and_o brag_v of_o the_o victory_n when_o they_o can_v devise_v any_o answer_n though_o never_o so_o slender_a i_o will_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o prevent_v they_o and_o to_o take_v this_o evasion_n from_o they_o for_o if_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o shape_v a_o unshape_a answer_n which_o have_v only_o a_o show_n of_o probability_n than_o all_o the_o proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n which_o the_o ancient_a father_n produce_v against_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n shall_v be_v call_v in_o question_n for_o what_o better_a and_o more_o pregnant_a place_n can_v be_v allege_v then_o that_o 10._o joa._n 10._o which_o the_o ancient_a father_n cite_v out_o of_o s._n john_n against_o the_o arrian_n ego_fw-la &_o pater_fw-la unum_fw-la sumus_fw-la i_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o and_o yet_o the_o arrian_n have_v their_o answer_n in_o readiness_n to_o wit_n that_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v one_o not_o by_o unity_n of_o substance_n but_o consent_n of_o will_n and_o what_o plain_a word_n can_v be_v allege_v for_o the_o real_a presence_n than_o those_o of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n 10._o mat._n 26._o clandius_n de_fw-fr saint_n repetit_fw-la 1._o ca._n 10._o and_o yet_o the_o reformer_n of_o this_o time_n have_v devise_v no_o less_o than_o fourscore_o exposition_n and_o answer_n all_o different_a from_o the_o catholic_n sense_n and_o meaning_n but_o my_o adversary_n be_v to_o weigh_v and_o ponder_v the_o solidity_n of_o their_o answer_n and_o the_o conformity_n also_o of_o they_o to_o the_o church_n definition_n and_o practice_n 2._o 13_o 1._o reg._n 13_o my_o first_o proof_n then_o shall_v be_v take_v from_o example_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n which_o do_v not_o a_o little_a patronize_v the_o aforesaid_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n samvel_n as_o he_o anoint_a king_n saul_n and_o create_v he_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n so_o he_o depose_v he_o and_o although_o he_o do_v this_o as_o a_o prophet_n yet_o this_o may_v be_v a_o figure_n of_o that_o which_o the_o chief_a pastor_n may_v do_v in_o the_o new_a law_n 26._o zuing._n art_n 41._o 2._o paral._n 26._o whereupon_o zuinglius_fw-la who_o authority_n must_v needs_o be_v of_o force_n against_o protestant_n say_v plain_o quòd_fw-la reges_fw-la deponi_fw-la possunt_fw-la saulis_n exemplum_fw-la manifestè_fw-la docet_fw-la that_o king_n may_v be_v depose_v saules_n example_n do_v manifest_o teach_v 26._o 2._o par._n 26._o azarias_n the_o high_a priest_n depose_v ozias_n for_o arrogate_a the_o priest_n office_n for_o although_o god_n immediate_o mark_v he_o with_o a_o leprosy_n yet_o the_o high_a priest_n after_o he_o be_v thus_o mark_v have_v authority_n from_o god_n by_o the_o levitical_a law_n 13._o leu._n 13._o to_o separate_v he_o from_o all_o society_n and_o cohabitation_n with_o his_o subject_n hence_o i_o infer_v first_o that_o the_o high_a priest_n have_v in_o some_o case_n authority_n to_o dispose_v of_o temporal_a thing_n though_o they_o belong_v to_o king_n for_o cohabitation_n
be_v a_o temporal_a thing_n and_o yet_o the_o high_a priest_n can_v deprive_v even_o a_o king_n of_o the_o same_o and_o if_o he_o may_v dispose_v of_o this_o temporal_a thing_n why_o not_o of_o other_o temporal_a thing_n though_o they_o be_v kingdom_n second_o cohabitation_n or_o at_o least_o power_n and_o right_n of_o cohabitation_n &_o society_n be_v essential_o include_v in_o kingly_a power_n or_o at_o least_o necessarille_n annex_v unto_o it_o for_o a_o king_n be_v he_o that_o have_v supreme_a power_n to_o govern_v his_o subject_n and_o see_v that_o government_n necessary_o require_v yea_o import_v possibility_n or_o right_o to_o cohabitate_a and_o converse_v with_o subject_n for_o how_o can_v he_o govern_v they_o if_o he_o can_v converse_v with_o they_o or_o his_o officer_n if_o the_o king_n may_v by_o the_o priest_n be_v deprive_v of_o all_o right_n to_o cohabitate_a and_o converse_v he_o may_v be_v deprive_v also_o of_o his_o kingdom_n thirdlie_o ozias_n disobey_v the_o high_a priest_n and_o notwithstanding_o his_o reprehension_n and_o express_v commandment_n to_o the_o contrary_a do_v burn_v incense_n to_o our_o lord_n and_o so_o azarias_n may_v have_v cause_v he_o to_o have_v be_v kill_v for_o this_o disobedience_n in_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n 17_o deut._n 17_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o deuteronomie_n where_o moses_n say_v he_o that_o shall_v be_v prove_v refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o priest_n which_o at_o that_o time_n minister_v to_o our_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o judge_n that_o man_n shall_v die_v and_o thou_o shall_v take_v away_o the_o evil_a out_o of_o israel_n hence_o i_o make_v this_o deduction_n azarias_n the_o high_a priest_n may_v have_v pronounce_v sentence_n of_o death_n against_o king_n ozias_n for_o disobey_v in_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n much_o more_o may_v he_o have_v depose_v he_o and_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o kingdom_n for_o death_n which_o be_v deprivation_n of_o life_n be_v a_o great_a penalty_n than_o deprivation_n of_o a_o kingdom_n and_o include_v also_o that_o because_o a_o dead_a man_n can_v be_v king_n and_o if_o azarias_n can_v deprive_v ozias_n of_o his_o kingdom_n it_o be_v like_a that_o in_o separate_v he_o from_o cohabitation_n with_o the_o people_n he_o do_v in_o deed_n deprive_v he_o and_o certes_o this_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o same_o place_n insinuare_v say_v fuit_fw-la igitur_fw-la ozias_n etc._n etc._n 26._o 2._o paral._n 26._o ozias_n therefore_o the_o king_n be_v a_o leper_n unto_o the_o day_n of_o his_o death_n and_o he_o dwell_v in_o a_o house_n a_o part_n moreover_o joathan_n his_o son_n govern_v the_o king_n house_n and_o judge_v the_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o last_o word_n insinuate_v that_o his_o son_n reign_v and_o be_v king_n in_o his_o place_n and_o consequent_o that_o he_o be_v depose_v 11._o lib._n 9_o antiq._n cap._n 11._o and_o so_o josephus_n seem_v to_o have_v understand_v the_o matter_n when_o treatinge_v of_o this_o fact_n of_o ozias_n and_o the_o issue_n thereof_o he_o say_v et_fw-la cum_fw-la aliquamdiu_fw-la extra_fw-la urbem_fw-la vixisset_fw-la filio_fw-la joathano_n rempnblicam_fw-la administrante_fw-la moerore_fw-la tanden_fw-mi confectus_fw-la obijt_fw-la and_o for_o some_o time_n he_o have_v live_v out_o of_o the_o city_n his_o son_n joathan_n administrate_v the_o common_a wealth_n isai_n hom._n 4._o de_fw-la verhis_fw-la isai_n at_o last_o he_o be_v kill_v with_o sorrow_n the_o same_o do_v also_o s._n chrysostome_n avouch_v say_v cumque_fw-la sacerdotium_fw-la sibi_fw-la vellet_fw-la sumere_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la quod_fw-la habebat_fw-la perdidit_fw-la and_o when_o he_o will_v take_v upon_o he_o priesthood_n he_o lose_v that_o kingdom_n which_o he_o have_v 15._o barron_n a_o christi_fw-la 31._o tiberij_fw-la 15._o to_o this_o may_v be_v add_v that_o which_o baronius_n well_o observe_v in_o his_o annal_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o jew_n have_v a_o council_n call_v synedrin_n or_o sanedrin_n which_o consist_v of_o 72._o person_n and_o succeed_v the_o 72._o who_o assist_v moses_n num._n 11._o which_o council_n have_v authority_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o of_o king_n and_o over_o this_o council_n the_o high_a priest_n have_v supreme_a authority_n this_o council_n be_v of_o such_o credit_n that_o it_o summon_v herod_n to_o appear_v and_o to_o answer_v to_o hircanus_n and_o the_o judge_n under_o he_o to_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v object_v against_o he_o and_o when_o he_o appear_v in_o his_o purple_a and_o with_o a_o strong_a troop_n sameas_fw-la one_o of_o the_o judge_n reprehend_v this_o his_o manner_n of_o come_v and_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o come_v in_o that_o manner_n 6.17_o exit_fw-la josepho_n lib._n 14._o antiq_fw-la 6.17_o ut_fw-la si_fw-la capitalem_fw-la iuxta_fw-la leges_fw-la sententiam_fw-la in_o eum_fw-la tulerimus_fw-la nobis_fw-la mactatis_fw-la ipse_fw-la evadat_fw-la illatâ_fw-la vi_fw-la legibus_fw-la that_o if_o we_o according_a to_o the_o law_n shall_v pronounce_v sentence_n of_o death_n against_o he_o he_o use_v force_n against_o the_o law_n and_o kill_v we_o may_v escape_v by_o which_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o this_o council_n and_o consequent_o the_o high_a priest_n have_v authority_n to_o judge_n of_o the_o law_n prophet_n and_o king_n and_o that_o therefore_o azarias_n have_v authority_n to_o pronounce_v sentence_n of_o death_n and_o much_o more_o of_o deposition_n against_o ozias_n and_o see_v he_o may_v depose_v he_o it_o be_v like_o the_o fore_n say_v circumstance_n consider_v that_o he_o do_v depose_v he_o 3._o i_o confess_v that_o our_o adversary_n may_v answer_v that_o this_o example_n do_v not_o convince_v that_o ozias_n be_v depose_v but_o only_o that_o he_o not_o actual_o govern_v his_o son_n govern_v for_o he_o he_o remain_v still_o king_n till_o his_o death_n but_o yet_o if_o this_o fact_n be_v not_o take_v bare_o but_o with_o the_o law_n also_o of_o leviticus_fw-la and_o the_o argument_n deduce_v out_o of_o it_o with_o other_o insinuation_n of_o scripture_n losephus_n s._n chrysostome_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sanedt_n in_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o high_a priest_n do_v or_o may_v have_v depose_v he_o i_o confess_v also_o that_o our_o adversary_n may_v answer_v 2._o deut._n 2._o that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o old_a law_n a_o express_a statute_n to_o put_v to_o death_n those_o that_o will_v disobey_v the_o high_a priest_n in_o matter_n pertain_v to_o the_o law_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o high_a priest_n may_v pronounce_v sentence_n of_o death_n and_o consequent_o of_o deprivation_n against_o a_o king_n but_o in_o the_o new_a law_n there_o be_v no_o such_o express_a law_n and_o the_o new_a law_n also_o be_v a_o law_n of_o sweetness_n and_o charity_n not_o of_o fear_n and_o rigour_n the_o case_n be_v not_o the_o like_a this_o they_o may_v say_v but_o yet_o see_v that_o it_o make_v much_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o synagogue_n and_o her_o security_n to_o have_v have_v such_o a_o power_n if_o the_o church_n be_v the_o verity_n the_o synagogue_n but_o the_o figure_n and_o as_o far_o inferior_a to_o the_o church_n as_o the_o law_n and_o priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n be_v superior_a to_o that_o of_o moses_n no_o honourable_a nor_o profitable_a power_n and_o authority_n grant_v to_o the_o synagogue_n be_v to_o be_v deny_v to_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o see_v it_o be_v a_o honour_n to_o have_v authority_n to_o depose_v prince_n and_o that_o it_o be_v many_o time_n necessary_a for_o the_o conservation_n of_o the_o church_n her_o right_a and_o faith_n for_o many_o time_n admonition_n yea_o commandment_n and_o excommunication_n will_v take_v no_o effect_n with_o proud_a and_o rebellious_a prince_n if_o such_o power_n be_v grant_v to_o the_o synagogue_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v to_o the_o church_n 4._o another_o example_n which_o divine_n use_v to_o allege_v be_v 23_o 4._o reg._n 11_o 2._o par._n 22._o &_o 23_o that_o of_o queen_n athalia_fw-la who_o as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o four_o book_n of_o king_n be_v by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n deprive_v first_o of_o her_o kingdom_n and_o afterward_o of_o her_o life_n and_o that_o also_o after_o she_o have_v reign_v six_o year_n and_o although_o it_o may_v seem_v that_o he_o only_o set_v the_o right_a king_n joas_n in_o his_o throne_n and_o displace_v a_o usurper_n who_o have_v kill_v all_o the_o right_a king_n son_n save_v joas_n alij_fw-la bellarminus_n becanus_n &_o alij_fw-la who_o be_v secret_o reserve_v and_o still_o live_v yet_o many_o learned_a author_n affirm_v that_o she_o be_v before_o her_o deposition_n true_a and_o lawful_a queen_n because_o though_o she_o enter_v by_o tyramnicall_a usurpation_n yet_o reign_v so_o long_o peaceable_o it_o be_v very_o like_a that_o she_o be_v receive_v
carnal_a but_o mighty_a to_o god_n unto_o the_o destruction_n of_o munition_n destroy_v counsel_n and_o all_o loftiness_n extol_v itself_o against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o bring_v into_o captivity_n all_o understanding_n unto_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v in_o a_o readiness_n to_o revenge_v all_o disobedience_n and_o a_o little_a after_o quam_fw-la dedit_fw-la nobis_fw-la dominus_fw-la etc._n etc._n which_o power_n our_o lord_n have_v give_v we_o to_o edification_n not_o to_o your_o destruction_n upon_o which_o place_n s._n chrysostome_n say_v cor._n chrysost_n hom_n 22._o in_o ep_n ad_fw-la cor._n ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la potentiam_fw-la accepimus_fw-la ut_fw-la aedificemus_fw-la quod_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la obluctetur_fw-la tum_fw-la demum_fw-la altera_fw-la quoque_fw-la facultate_fw-la utamur_fw-la eum_fw-la diruente_n ac_fw-la prosternentes_fw-la to_o this_o end_n we_o have_v receive_v power_n that_o we_o may_v edify_v but_o if_o so_o be_v any_o stand_v out_o or_o become_v obstinate_a then_o may_v we_o use_v another_o mean_n pull_v he_o down_o and_o prostratinge_v he_o which_o place_n as_o some_o think_v proove_v that_o the_o chief_a pastor_n may_v inflict_v temporal_a punishment_n even_o on_o prince_n and_o therefore_o s._n bonifac._n aug._n ep_v 50._o ad_fw-la bonifac._n augustine_n hence_o proove_v that_o heretic_n may_v he_o punish_v temporal_o but_o at_o least_o it_o proove_v that_o the_o pastor_n and_o especial_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v not_o only_o authority_n to_o preach_v and_o minister_v sacrament_n but_o also_o to_o chastise_v offender_n by_o spiritual_a censure_n which_o power_n calvin_n in_o his_o commentaty_n on_o this_o place_n affirm_v to_o be_v ground_v on_o the_o text_n of_o s._n matthew_n before_o allege_v 18._o mat._n 18._o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n etc._n etc._n to_o which_o purpose_n he_o appli_v that_o place_n of_o hieremie_n 1._o hier._n 1._o behold_v i_o have_v appoint_v thou_o this_o day_n over_o the_o gentile_n and_o over_o kingdom_n that_o thou_o may_v pluck_v up_o and_o destroy_v and_o waste_v and_o dissipate_v and_o build_v and_o plant_v which_o word_n insinuate_v power_n to_o dispose_v even_o of_o temporal_a kingdom_n and_o authority_n and_o at_o least_o by_o caluins_n confession_n signify_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v and_o to_o inflict_v spiritual_a pain_n which_o excommunication_n be_v no_o less_o pain_n and_o punishment_n than_o a_o spiritual_a band_n and_o chain_n wherewith_o the_o soul_n be_v chain_v than_o a_o banishment_n from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n than_o a_o delivery_n up_o to_o satan_n than_o a_o cut_n of_o from_o all_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n for_o as_o they_o who_o be_v obedient_a child_n of_o the_o church_n be_v partaker_n of_o three_o communion_n and_o communication_n quast_o aug._n li._n 1_o count_v advers_a legis_fw-la &_o proph_n cap._n 17._o aug._n ser_n 68_o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la apost_n &_o habetur_fw-la c._n omnis_fw-la christia_n nus_fw-la 11._o quast_o to_o wit_n of_o conversation_n one_o with_o another_o of_o sactament_n and_o of_o suffrage_n prayer_n satisfaction_n and_o merit_n so_o he_o that_o be_v excommunicate_v be_v deprive_v of_o all_o these_o three_o good_n wherefore_o s._n augustin_n say_v that_o it_o be_v gravius_fw-la malum_fw-la excommunicarià_fw-la sacerdotibus_fw-la dei_fw-la quàm_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la gladio_fw-la feriretur_fw-la flammis_fw-la absorberetur_fw-la aut_fw-la ferisobijceretur_fw-la it_o be_v a_o great_a ill_o to_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o priest_n of_o god_n then_o if_o a_o man_n be_v kill_v by_o the_o sword_n consume_v by_o fire_n or_o cast_v unto_o wild_a beast_n to_o be_v devour_v and_o again_o omnis_fw-la christianus_n qui_fw-la à_fw-la sacerdotibus_fw-la excommunicatur_fw-la sathanae_fw-la traditur_fw-la etc._n etc._n every_o christian_n that_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o priest_n be_v deliver_v up_o to_o satan_n how_o so_o because_o out_o of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o devil_n as_o within_o the_o church_n christ_n and_o so_o hereby_o he_o be_v as_o it_o be_v deliver_v up_o to_o the_o devil_n who_o be_v separate_v from_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n and_o society_n hence_o i_o deduce_v this_o argument_n the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n can_v excommunicate_v a_o rebellious_a prince_n and_o by_o excommunicate_v he_o deprive_v he_o of_o all_o the_o spiritual_a treasure_n of_o the_o church_n as_o sacrament_n suffrage_n merit_n and_o satisfaction_n yea_o he_o can_v cut_v he_o clean_o from_o the_o church_n and_o deliver_v he_o up_o to_o satan_n ergo_fw-la he_o can_v when_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n deprive_v he_o of_o temporal_a good_n and_o even_o of_o his_o kingdom_n i_o prove_v the_o consequence_n because_o he_o that_o can_v inflict_v the_o great_a punishment_n can_v inflict_v the_o lesser_a but_o it_o be_v a_o great_a punishment_n to_o be_v cut_v of_o from_o the_o church_n and_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o her_o spiritual_a good_n and_o grace_n then_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o city_n country_n and_o temporal_a kiugdome_n ergo_fw-la the_o chief_a pastor_n that_o can_v cast_v a_o prince_n out_o of_o the_o church_n can_v cast_v he_o out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n 2._o i_o know_v our_o adversary_n will_v deny_v for_o all_o this_o my_o consequence_n as_o widdrington_n do_v because_o not_o always_o he_o that_o can_v do_v more_o can_v do_v less_o but_o only_o then_o when_o the_o more_o and_o the_o less_o be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_n and_o nature_n as_o for_o example_n he_o that_o can_v carry_v fifty_o pound_n weight_n can_v carry_v five_o and_o twenty_o pound_n weight_n and_o yet_o he_o that_o can_v discourse_v and_o reason_n which_o be_v more_o can_v not_o fly_v which_o be_v less_o because_o reason_v and_o fly_v be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n and_o nature_n but_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o my_o illation_n and_o consequence_n be_v like_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n s_o paul_n 6._o 1._o cor._n 6._o which_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v for_o say_v he_o if_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v judge_v by_o you_o be_v you_o unworthy_a to_o judge_v of_o the_o least_o thing_n know_v you_o not_o that_o we_o shall_v judge_v angel_n how_o much_o more_o secular_a thing_n and_o the_o self_n same_o argument_n use_v gregory_n the_o seven_o to_o prove_v that_o he_o may_v depose_v henry_n the_o four_o for_o in_o the_o instrument_n of_o that_o emperor_n deposition_n speak_v to_o the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n 11._o vide_fw-la baron_n tom_fw-mi 11._o a_o 1080._o n._n 11._o and_o s._n paul_n he_o proove_v that_o they_o by_o he_o and_o he_o by_o authority_n receive_v from_o they_o may_v depose_v the_o aforesaid_a emperor_n because_o say_v he_o you_o by_o pope_n your_o successor_n have_v often_o take_v patriarchship_n primacy_n archiepiscopall_a and_o episcopal_a dignity_n from_o the_o wicked_a and_o unworthy_a and_o have_v bestow_v they_o on_o religious_a man_n si_fw-mi enim_fw-la spiritualia_fw-la iudicatis_fw-la quid_fw-la de_fw-la secularibus_fw-la vos_fw-la posse_fw-la credendum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o si_fw-fr angelos_n dominantes_fw-la omnibus_fw-la superbis_fw-la principibus_fw-la iudicabitis_fw-la quid_fw-la de_fw-la illorum_fw-la seruis_fw-la facere_fw-la potestis_fw-la for_o if_o you_o judge_v spiritual_a thing_n what_o may_v we_o think_v you_o can_v do_v concern_v thing_n that_o be_v secular_a and_o temporal_a and_o if_o you_o shall_v judge_v angel_n that_o have_v dominion_n over_o all_o proud_a prince_n what_o may_v you_o do_v with_o those_o that_o be_v their_o servant_n and_o inferior_n where_o we_o see_v that_o not_o only_o gregory_n the_o seven_o but_o also_o s._n paul_n do_v use_v the_o like_a argument_n to_o that_o which_o i_o use_v and_o prove_v that_o they_o who_o can_v judge_v of_o spiritual_a matter_n may_v much_o more_o of_o temporal_a for_o although_o it_o do_v not_o always_o follow_v in_o good_a consequence_n that_o a_o man_n can_v do_v the_o lesser_a because_o he_o can_v do_v the_o great_a as_o beside_o the_o allege_v example_n many_o other_o do_v convince_v for_o a_o man_n can_v speak_v which_o be_v more_o and_o yet_o he_o can_v not_o bark_v like_o a_o dog_n which_o be_v less_o yet_o when_o the_o thing_n be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n or_o at_o least_o not_o altogether_o disparate_a and_o independent_a the_o consequence_n be_v good_a wherefore_o see_v that_o temporal_a thing_n be_v ordain_v to_o a_o spiritual_a end_n if_o not_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n yet_o by_o god_n his_o institution_n who_o have_v ordain_v we_o unto_o a_o supernatural_a end_n as_o above_o i_o have_v declare_v and_o consequent_o be_v subordinate_a and_o as_o it_o be_v mean_n to_o a_o further_a end_n it_o may_v be_v say_v by_o good_a consequence_n as_o s._n paul_n and_o s._n gregory_n the_o seven_o say_v the_o chief_a pastor_n can_v judge_v and_o dispose_v of_o spiritual_a thing_n ergo_fw-la he_o can_v judge_v and_o dispose_v of_o temporal_a thing_n when_o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o conferue_v the_o spiritual_a and_o
also_o with_o great_a consent_n both_o of_o the_o latin_a and_o greek_a church_n and_o in_o it_o be_v present_v the_o patriatche_n of_o constant_a inopole_n and_o jerusalem_n in_o their_o proper_a person_n the_o patriatche_n of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n by_o their_o legate_n archbishop_n latin_a and_o greeke_n 70._o bishop_n 412._o abbot_n and_o priour_o above_o 800._o the_o total_a number_n of_o all_o the_o prelares_fw-la be_v at_o least_o 1215._o the_o legate_n also_o of_o the_o greek_a and_o roman_a emperor_n of_o the_o king_n of_o jerusalem_n france_n spain_n england_n and_o other_o prince_n be_v present_a with_o the_o rest_n this_o council_n then_o call_v the_o great_a for_o the_o number_n of_o prelate_n in_o the_o three_o chapter_n after_o excommunication_n pronounce_v against_o heretic_n admonish_v secular_a power_n and_o command_v they_o to_o purge_v their_o country_n from_o heretic_n and_o to_o promise_v the_o same_o by_o oath_n then_o the_o council_n add_v si_fw-la verò_fw-la dominus_fw-la temporalis_fw-la etc._n etc._n 3._o council_n late_a sub_fw-la innoc_n 111._o cap._n 3._o but_o if_o the_o temporal_a lord_n be_v require_v and_o admonish_v by_o the_o church_n shall_v neglect_v to_o purge_v his_o land_n or_o territory_n from_o heretical_a lewdness_n let_v he_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o metropolitan_a and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o comprovinciall_a bishop_n and_o if_o he_o contemn_v to_o satisfy_v within_o a_o year_n let_v this_o his_o contempt_n be_v signify_v to_o the_o chief_a bishop_n the_o pope_n that_o from_o that_o time_n he_o the_o pope_n may_v denounce_v his_o vasalle_n free_v from_o all_o fidelity_n unto_o he_o and_o may_v expose_v his_o land_n to_o be_v possess_v by_o catholik_o who_o heretic_n be_v exterminate_v may_v possess_v it_o without_o any_o contradiction_n and_o conserve_v it_o in_o purity_n of_o faith_n without_o prejudice_n to_o the_o principal_a lord_n so_o that_o he_o put_v no_o obstacle_n nor_o impediment_n the_o same_o law_n notwithstanding_o observe_v concern_v those_o who_o have_v not_o principal_a lord_n this_o council_n i_o suppose_v to_o be_v of_o sufficient_a authority_n for_o it_o be_v general_n and_o in_o number_n of_o prelate_n and_o bishop_n surpass_v the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a by_o many_o it_o be_v of_o as_o great_a authority_n as_o any_o council_n can_v be_v because_o the_o authority_n to_o make_v law_n and_o to_o decide_v controversy_n depend_v not_o of_o the_o sanctity_n but_o only_o of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o see_v that_o these_o pastor_n can_v say_v as_o much_o for_o their_o ordination_n and_o vocation_n as_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a can_v it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o this_o council_n as_o be_v also_o all_o lawful_a general_n counsel_n be_v of_o as_o great_a authority_n as_o be_v that_o of_o nice_a which_o our_o sovereign_a liege_n king_n james_n admit_v with_o the_o other_o first_o three_o general_n counsel_n 37._o in_o pr●f_n monit_fw-la pag._n 37._o and_o consequent_o can_v reject_v this_o which_o be_v of_o the_o same_o authority_n to_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n speak_v only_o of_o they_o who_o be_v subject_a temporal_o to_o his_o temporal_a authority_n which_o he_o have_v in_o italy_n be_v ridiculous_a because_o the_o word_n be_v general_n and_o if_o they_o be_v restrain_v to_o italy_n the_o decree_n can_v have_v have_v little_a force_n to_o say_v that_o absolute_a prince_n be_v not_o comprehend_v in_o this_o decree_n but_o only_o inferior_a prince_n who_o hold_v feudum_fw-la regale_n of_o they_o be_v absurd_a for_o a_o little_a before_o this_o allege_v decree_n the_o council_n ordain_v that_o seculares_fw-la potestates_fw-la secular_a power_n must_v take_v a_o oath_n to_o expel_v heretic_n out_o of_o their_o country_n which_o word_n secular_a power_n agree_v to_o absolute_a king_n and_o emperor_n else_o when_o s._n paul_n command_v that_o every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o high_a power_n potestatibus_fw-la sublimi●ribus_fw-la 13._o rom._n 13._o king_n and_o emperor_n must_v be_v except_v because_o they_o go_v not_o under_o the_o name_n of_o power_n and_o immediate_o after_o this_o admonition_n the_o council_n add_v the_o allege_v decree_n si_fw-mi verò_fw-la dominus_fw-la temporalis_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o of_o the_o temporal_a lord_n etc._n etc._n where_o she_o call_v the_o same_o dominos_fw-la temporales_fw-la temporal_a lord_n who_o before_o she_o call_v potestates_fw-la saeculares_fw-la secular_a power_n and_o be_v not_o king_n and_o emperor_n domini_fw-la temporales_fw-la temporal_a lord_n yea_o and_o principal_o and_o more_o proper_o to_o be_v call_v so_o than_o those_o prince_n that_o hold_v of_o other_o if_o widdrington_n will_v deny_v this_o title_n to_o our_o king_n he_o will_v be_v count_v a_o traitor_n and_o what_o can_v they_o allege_v against_o those_o other_o so_o express_v word_n eâdem_fw-la nihilominus_fw-la lege_fw-la seruatâ_fw-la circa_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la habent_fw-la dominos_fw-la principales_fw-la the_o same_o law_n not_o withstand_v observe_v concern_v those_o who_o have_v not_o principal_a lord_n in_o which_o word_n even_o king_n and_o emperor_n be_v comprehend_v for_o they_o especial_o have_v no_o temporal_a lord_n 3._o but_o let_v widdrington_n understand_v by_o secular_a power_n and_o temporal_a lord_n who_o he_o will_v as_o certes_o he_o spend_v many_o word_n to_o show_v that_o by_o temporal_a and_o principal_a lord_n absolute_a prince_n be_v not_o understand_v if_o the_o pope_n can_v make_v a_o decree_n of_o deposition_n against_o inferior_a prince_n why_o not_o against_o supreme_a prince_n they_o in_o that_o they_o be_v christian_n be_v as_o subject_a to_o the_o church_n and_o her_o chief_a pastor_n as_o other_o christian_n of_o inferior_a degree_n 3._o widdr._n in_o discussione_n discussion●s_fw-la decreti_fw-la council_n lat._n sec_fw-la 5._o a._n n._n 3._o widdrington_n answer_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o general_n council_n may_v make_v a_o decree_n of_o deposition_n against_o inferior_a magistrate_n or_o lotdes_n by_o consent_n and_o authority_n give_v they_o by_o sovereign_a prince_n but_o he_o can_v not_o make_v a_o decree_n of_o deposition_n against_o supreme_a prince_n because_o they_o never_o consent_v never_o give_v he_o authority_n against_o themselves_o 15._o idem_fw-la sec_fw-la 5._o nu_fw-la 15._o hence_o widdrington_n say_v also_o that_o all_o temporal_a mulcte_n and_o punishment_n which_o the_o church_n decree_v she_o decree_v by_o authority_n give_v she_o from_o prince_n and_o that_o therefore_o in_o such_o penal_a law_n christian_n may_v refuse_v to_o obey_v till_o they_o know_v that_o the_o prince_n give_v the_o pope_n and_o council_n such_o authority_n yea_o that_o in_o these_o law_n they_o may_v appeal_v from_o pope_n or_o general_n council_n to_o the_o prince_n but_o as_o in_o other_o thing_n widdrington_n to_o hold_v up_o the_o cause_n who_o defence_n he_o have_v undertake_v be_v force_v to_o help_v himself_o with_o the_o worst_a opinion_n and_o to_o seek_v authority_n from_o the_o obscure_a author_n and_o these_o of_o the_o least_o credit_n so_o deal_v he_o in_o this_o for_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o whatsoever_o some_o one_o or_o two_o author_n may_v say_v that_o all_o the_o current_n of_o divine_n mislike_v they_o in_o this_o and_o count_v it_o strange_a yea_o and_o absurd_a to_o say_v that_o all_o the_o penal_a law_n of_o the_o church_n which_o prescribe_v temporal_a mulcte_n relate_v in_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o in_o council_n shall_v have_v their_o force_n not_o from_o the_o council_n and_o pastor_n but_o from_o king_n and_o prince_n for_o although_o they_o confess_v that_o prince_n give_v to_o the_o pope_n his_o temporal_a domain_v and_o consequent_o temporal_a and_o princely_a authority_n within_o the_o limit_n of_o the_o same_o yet_o in_o what_o meeting_n of_o prince_n in_o what_o council_n do_v ever_o prince_n conspire_v to_o give_v the_o pope_n temporal_a authority_n through_o out_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o in_o the_o last_o general_n council_n of_o trent_n in_o which_o diverse_a temporal_a penalty_n be_v decree_v what_o mention_n be_v there_o of_o the_o prince_n donation_n of_o authority_n to_o the_o council_n prince_n and_o emperor_n by_o themselves_o or_o their_o legate_n be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n to_o protect_v the_o father_n to_o assist_v they_o for_o execution_n of_o their_o law_n but_o that_o they_o ever_o give_v authority_n to_o the_o council_n to_o enact_v any_o temporal_a law_n or_o that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n and_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n demand_v licence_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n or_o prince_n to_o make_v such_o law_n who_o ever_o read_v who_o ever_o hear_v and_o why_o can_v not_o the_o prince_n why_o will_v not_o they_o themselves_o enact_v such_o law_n in_o their_o own_o name_n as_o sometime_o they_o have_v do_v against_o heretic_n that_o be_v a_o thing_n more_o honourable_a for_o they_o and_o
less_o dangerous_a to_o they_o see_v that_o by_o permit_v pope_n and_o bishop_n to_o do_v it_o they_o may_v derogate_v to_o their_o own_o authority_n and_o give_v occasion_n to_o they_o to_o prescribe_v against_o they_o and_o to_o do_v it_o not_o in_o the_o prince_n but_o in_o their_o own_o name_n and_o authority_n and_o when_o do_v widdrington_n hear_v that_o any_o good_a christian_n appeal_v from_o the_o church_n and_o pope_n in_o these_o law_n unto_o prince_n as_o to_o their_o high_a superior_n when_o do_v they_o reject_v any_o of_o these_o law_n till_o they_o have_v inform_v themselves_o that_o they_o be_v make_v not_o by_o the_o church_n but_o by_o the_o prince_n authority_n certes_o widdrington_n in_o this_o open_v a_o wide_a gap_n for_o heretic_n and_o all_o contemner_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n and_o what_o may_v he_o not_o defend_v if_o he_o be_v permit_v to_o use_v this_o liberty_n and_o audacity_n as_o for_o his_o author_n we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o in_o the_o ensew_n thirteen_o chapter_n how_o many_o they_o be_v and_o of_o what_o authority_n 4._o wherefore_o my_o argument_n shall_v proceed_v as_o it_o begin_v in_o this_o manner_n the_o pope_n by_o widdrington_n can_v make_v a_o decree_n to_o depose_v inferior_a temporal_a lord_n ergo_fw-la supreme_a prince_n they_o as_o christian_n be_v as_o subject_a te_fw-la the_o church_n by_o baptism_n as_o above_o be_v show_v in_o the_o 5._o chapter_n num_fw-la 4.5.6_o as_o much_o as_o the_o low_a christian_n though_o in_o that_o they_o be_v absolute_a prince_n they_o have_v no_o superior_a but_o god_n in_o temporal_a authority_n to_o say_v that_o pope_n innocent_a make_v this_o decree_n of_o his_o own_o head_n be_v but_o to_o show_v great_a ignorance_n for_o in_o general_n counsel_n pope_n speak_v ex_fw-la cathedra_fw-la and_o as_o public_a not_o private_a person_n and_o what_o they_o decree_v be_v with_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o bishop_n or_o the_o most_o part_n else_o if_o the_o pope_n shall_v do_v all_o of_o his_o own_o head_n in_o vain_a shall_v he_o assemble_v general_n counsel_n but_o that_o all_o the_o council_n and_o christian_a world_n consent_v to_o this_o decree_n it_o be_v clear_a enough_o for_o that_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o any_o variance_n betwixt_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n in_o this_o matter_n to_o say_v that_o the_o true_a council_n of_o laterane_n be_v not_o extant_a or_o that_o the_o canon_n extant_a be_v compile_v only_o by_o innocentius_n because_o in_o this_o council_n the_o council_n of_o laterane_n though_o not_o this_o but_o another_o be_v cite_v and_o allege_v be_v so_o improbable_a evasion_n that_o they_o merit_v not_o confutation_n and_o be_v very_o suffieientlie_o reject_v by_o the_o book_n call_v discussio_fw-la decreti_fw-la magni_fw-la concilij_fw-la lateranensis_fw-la 5._o one_o thing_n there_o be_v bear_v more_o show_n which_o our_o adversary_n may_v allege_v to_o wit_n that_o if_o this_o council_n do_v in_o express_a term_n define_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o depose_v prince_n they_o will_v then_o yield_v because_o what_o a_o general_n council_n with_o the_o pope_n define_v direct_o and_o express_o be_v a_o mattet_n of_o faith_n and_o it_o be_v heresy_n to_o gainsay_v it_o but_o see_v that_o all_o thing_n speak_v or_o write_v in_o a_o council_n be_v not_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o as_o divine_n common_o say_v the_o reason_n which_o the_o council_n bring_v for_o confirmation_n of_o her_o decree_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v incidentlie_o 12._o bellarm._n lib_n 2._o the_o council_n cap._n 11._o &_o 12._o and_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v determine_v as_o probable_a be_v not_o of_o necessity_n to_o be_v believe_v it_o seem_v that_o by_o this_o decree_n we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v prince_n because_o though_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n make_v a_o decree_n of_o deposition_n yet_o they_o define_v not_o express_o nor_o sub_fw-la anathemate_fw-la under_o pain_n of_o curse_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v prince_n 6._o but_o who_o so_o please_v to_o consider_v this_o decree_n well_o and_o without_o all_o passion_n or_o partial_a affection_n must_v needs_o confess_v that_o this_o decree_n ought_v to_o be_v of_o very_o great_a credit_n for_o first_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n suppose_v at_o least_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v prince_n else_o they_o will_v never_o have_v make_v such_o a_o decree_n and_o consequent_o this_o decree_n argue_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o the_o prelate_n prince_n and_o legate_n present_a be_v of_o that_o opinion_n which_o no_o doubt_n they_o be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o learned_a must_v needs_o bear_v a_o great_a sway_n among_o all_o good_a christian_n for_o what_o they_o think_v all_o the_o christian_a world_n at_o least_o for_o the_o most_o part_n thought_n all_o receive_n and_o approve_v this_o council_n but_o widdrington_n will_v say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o they_o all_o think_v so_o piouslie_o and_o probable_o yet_o because_o they_o define_v not_o in_o express_a term_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v prince_n he_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o a_o peremptory_a answer_n certain_o and_o wherein_o to_o say_v no_o more_o the_o answerer_n shall_v show_v he_o self_n very_o slow_a and_o hard_o of_o belief_n and_o to_o hardy_a also_o who_o blush_v not_o to_o gainsay_v so_o many_o learned_a and_o godly_a prelate_n and_o who_o so_o many_o grave_a countenance_n and_o judgement_n can_v not_o move_v 7._o but_o i_o will_v deal_v yet_o another_o way_n and_o out_o of_o the_o self_n same_o decree_n although_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n in_o the_o allege_v decree_n do_v not_o express_o define_v that_o pope_n can_v upon_o just_a cause_n depose_v prince_n yet_o it_o argue_v that_o they_o nor_o only_o probable_o but_o very_o and_o assure_o think_v he_o can_v else_o to_o have_v ground_v so_o odious_a a_o decree_n and_o injurious_a also_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o authority_n upon_o a_o probable_a opinion_n have_v be_v great_a rashness_n for_o the_o council_n have_v expose_v thereby_o if_o the_o opinion_n have_v not_o be_v suppose_v most_o assure_v the_o king_n and_o common_a wealth_n yea_o and_o sometime_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o uproar_n garboil_n rebellious_a war_n and_o such_o like_a and_o war_n shall_v have_v be_v just_a also_o on_o both_o side_n for_o the_o subject_n may_v have_v refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o depose_a prince_n as_o be_v free_v by_o a_o general_n counsel_n authority_n from_o all_o obligation_n to_o he_o and_o be_v warrant_v by_o the_o same_o council_n that_o now_o he_o be_v no_o more_o their_o king_n but_o a_o usurper_n and_o inuader_n against_o who_o every_o particular_a man_n have_v iustum_fw-la bellum_fw-la just_a war_n and_o so_o as_o if_o a_o foreign_a prince_n shall_v uniustlie_o invade_v france_n without_o just_a title_n or_o wrong_n receive_v every_o frenchman_n may_v resist_v he_o if_o he_o can_v because_o he_o have_v no_o title_n all_o the_o kingdom_n and_o every_o particular_a member_n have_v just_a war_n against_o he_o so_o if_o a_o prince_n depose_v persist_v in_o government_n he_o be_v according_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o counsel_n opinion_n which_o widdrington_n confess_v to_o be_v probable_a a_o usurper_n and_o invader_n and_o consequent_o every_o one_o of_o his_o former_a subject_n have_v just_a war_n against_o he_o citandi_fw-la cicero_n lib._n 3._o the_o offic_n h●rodotus_n lib._n 3._o xiphilin_n in_o augusto_n alexand_n ab_fw-la alex._n li._n 3._o c._n 26_o d._n the_o in_o 2._o d._n ult._n q._n 2._o a._n 2._o ad_fw-la 5_o sot_n lib._n 5._o the_o just_a q._n 1._o art_n 3._o &_o alij_fw-la infra_fw-la cap._n 15._o citandi_fw-la no_o less_o than_o as_o all_o the_o best_a philosopher_n and_o divine_n teach_v the_o subject_n have_v against_o a_o usurper_n of_o the_o crown_n and_o yet_o this_o prince_n depose_v may_v justly_o also_o persist_v in_o his_o possession_n because_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o forgo_v that_o to_o which_o he_o have_v probable_a right_n be_v warrant_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o law_n 6._o law_n reg._n 65_o de_fw-la regulis_fw-la juris_fw-la in_o 6._o in_o pari_fw-la delicto_fw-la velcausa_fw-la potior_fw-la est_fw-la conditio_fw-la possidentis_fw-la in_o the_o like_a default_n or_o cause_n better_a be_v the_o condition_n of_o he_o that_o be_v in_o possession_n and_o again_o ibid._n again_o reg._n 11_o ibid._n cum_fw-la sunt_fw-la iura_fw-la partium_fw-la obscura_fw-la reo_fw-la favendum_fw-la est_fw-la potius_fw-la quàm_fw-la actori_fw-la when_o the_o right_n of_o the_o party_n be_v obscure_a the_o guilty_a or_o accuse_v be_v to_o be_v favour_v before_o the_o actor_n or_o accuser_n but_o the_o prince_n in_o this_o case_n have_v according_a to_o widdrington_n probable_a right_n and_o be_v in_o possession_n and_o he_o be_v reus_fw-la not_o actor_n
ergo_fw-la he_o may_v stand_v in_o his_o own_o defence_n and_o by_o war_n defensive_a may_v maintain_v his_o possession_n and_o then_o to_o what_o injury_n and_o gatboile_n the_o church_n shall_v expose_v king_n subject_n and_o kingdom_n and_o consequent_o the_o whole_a church_n who_o see_v not_o but_o he_o that_o be_v wilful_o blind_a and_o will_v not_o open_v his_o eye_n so_o that_o either_o the_o council_n of_o laterane_n be_v temerarious_a and_o rash_a to_o build_v so_o perilous_a a_o decree_n upon_o no_o assure_a but_o only_o probable_a opinion_n or_o she_o think_v assure_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v such_o authority_n and_o then_o every_o obedient_a child_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v rather_o follow_v she_o than_o widdrington_n and_o some_o few_o his_o companion_n opinion_n for_o certes_o otherwise_o as_o it_o be_v injustice_n to_o put_v one_o out_o of_o his_o land_n or_o house_n who_o have_v probable_a right_n and_o withal_o possession_n because_o potior_fw-la est_fw-la cónditio_fw-la possidentis_fw-la better_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o he_o that_o be_v in_o possession_n so_o be_v it_o open_a injustice_n in_o the_o pope_n to_o deprive_v a_o king_n of_o his_o crown_n and_o kingdom_n who_o have_v probable_a right_n because_o it_o be_v as_o widdrington_n say_v but_o probable_a not_o assure_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v he_o and_o who_o yet_o have_v possession_n he_o answer_v that_o the_o church_n command_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o conception_n and_o the_o pope_n have_v give_v authority_n to_o simple_a priest_n to_o confirm_v and_o moreover_o dispense_v with_o prince_n in_o the_o solemn_a vow_n of_o religion_n which_o yet_o be_v ground_v but_o on_o probable_a opinion_n but_o the_o foresay_a author_n in_o his_o discussion_n of_o this_o decree_n have_v very_o well_o show_v that_o such_o inconuenienec_n follow_v not_o upon_o these_o decree_n which_o be_v not_o so_o dangerous_a nor_o concern_v not_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o this_o decree_n do_v but_o only_o particular_a person_n and_o therefore_o i_o will_v not_o actum_fw-la agere_fw-la 8._o but_o here_o i_o can_v not_o but_o observe_v how_o cunning_o widdrington_n in_o his_o new_a yeares-gifte_n endeavour_v to_o make_v his_o reader_n believe_v that_o i_o make_v this_o argument_n against_o myself_o 52._o in_o his_o new_a year_n gift_n pag._n 43._o and_o 52._o for_o whereas_o i_o out_o of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o general_n council_n of_o lateran_n which_o i_o suppose_v to_o be_v just_a have_v infer_v that_o the_o opinion_n which_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v in_o some_o case_n depose_v a_o prince_n on_o which_o this_o decree_n be_v ground_v must_v needs_o be_v more_o than_o probable_a and_o no_o less_o than_o certain_a else_o if_o it_o be_v but_o probable_a that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n it_o be_v probable_a also_o that_o the_o prince_n depose_v have_v still_o probable_a title_n and_o so_o be_v in_o possession_n shall_v unjust_o be_v dispossess_v because_o better_a be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o possessor_n who_o have_v probable_a right_n widdrington_n take_v it_o for_o a_o probable_a opinion_n only_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n whieh_o i_o always_o deny_v and_o disproove_v and_o thence_o infer_v and_o as_o he_o will_v seem_v even_o by_o my_o argument_n and_o confession_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v without_o open_a injustice_n depose_v a_o prince_n where_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o note_v how_o i_o as_o all_o modest_a catholic_n shall_v do_v do_v attribute_n so_o much_o to_o the_o council_n decree_v that_o by_o it_o i_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v a_o certain_a opinion_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n in_o some_o case_n else_o the_o decree_n have_v be_v unjust_a widdrington_n notwitstand_v this_o decree_n hold_v still_o that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o probable_a opinion_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n and_o thence_o infer_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o justly_o depose_v and_o so_o be_v not_o ashamed_a nor_o afraid_a to_o confess_v in_o effect_n that_o this_o decree_n of_o that_o so_o great_a and_o general_n council_n be_v unjust_a which_o with_o what_o modesty_n he_o can_v do_v i_o report_v i_o to_o all_o modest_a catholic_n and_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o judicious_a reader_n 9_o last_o i_o will_v yet_o try_v another_o way_n to_o persuade_v these_o kind_n of_o man_n which_o if_o they_o contemn_v 18._o mat._n 18._o they_o can_v hardly_o avoid_v that_o imputation_n of_o ethnike_n and_o publican_n which_o christ_n himself_o lay_v on_o they_o that_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n for_o not_o only_o that_o which_o be_v express_o and_o in_o actu_fw-la signato_fw-la define_v by_o the_o council_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v under_o pain_n of_o heresy_n but_o also_o that_o which_o in_o actu_fw-la exercito_fw-la be_v define_v i_o will_v explicate_v myself_o if_o the_o pope_n especial_o with_o a_o general_n council_n decree_n or_o enact_v any_o general_n law_n which_o he_o command_v to_o be_v observe_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n he_o do_v not_o expresselie_o and_o in_o actu_fw-la signato_fw-la define_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v lawful_a which_o he_o command_v but_o yet_o he_o do_v in_o actu_fw-la exercito_fw-la and_o tacitè_fw-fr define_v it_o to_o be_v lawful_a because_o if_o he_o can_v err_v in_o prescribe_v general_a law_n to_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o if_o he_o can_v the_o whole_a church_n which_o must_v obey_v her_o chief_a pastor_n shall_v err_v with_o he_o it_o follow_v necessary_o that_o he_o have_v infallible_a assistance_n in_o enact_v such_o law_n and_o consequent_o that_o it_o must_v not_o only_o be_v probable_a but_o also_o certain_o true_a yea_o and_o so_o true_a that_o it_o be_v not_o only_o temeritie_n and_o rashenes_n but_o also_o obstinate_a heresy_n to_o hold_v that_o it_o be_v unlawful_a which_o the_o pope_n thus_o command_v 7._o bellarm._n lib_n 4._o de_fw-mi rom._n pont._n cap._n 5._o du_n valle_o lib._n de_fw-la suprema_fw-la rom._n pont._n in_o ecclesiam_fw-la potestate_fw-la part_n 2._o q._n 7._o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o bellarmine_n which_o he_o proove_v also_o very_o solidlie_o the_o same_o a_o learned_a doctor_n of_o the_o sorbonne_n and_o chief_a reader_n in_o divinity_n call_v du_n valle_n hold_v and_o as_o divine_n know_v it_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n though_o some_o few_o hold_v the_o contrary_n du_n valle_n have_v these_o word_n han●_n autem_fw-la infallibilitatem_fw-la non_fw-la minùs_fw-la quàm_fw-la in_o fidei_fw-la definitionibus_fw-la agnoscunt_fw-la omnes_fw-la catholici_fw-la doctores_fw-la but_o this_o infallibllitie_n no_o less_o than_o in_o definition_n of_o faith_n all_o catholic_n doctor_n do_v acknowledge_v this_o both_o bellarmine_n and_o he_o as_o other_o also_o prove_v by_o many_o argument_n for_o first_o if_o the_o pope_n can_v command_v a_o unlawful_a thing_n he_o shall_v command_v vice_n for_o virtue_n and_o may_v forbid_v virtue_n as_o unlawful_a whence_o shall_v follow_v that_o the_o church_n which_o must_v obey_v her_o chief_a pastor_n shall_v err_v in_o a_o matter_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o she_o shall_v embrace_v vice_n for_o virtue_n and_o imbracinge_n that_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o holy_a yea_o than_o the_o church_n shall_v err_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n because_o if_o the_o pope_n command_v vice_n for_o virtue_n the_o church_n which_o must_v give_v ear_n to_o her_o chief_a pastor_n shall_v embrace_v it_o as_o lawful_a and_o consequent_o shall_v embrace_v a_o thing_n against_o faith_n for_o as_o it_o be_v against_o faith_n to_o say_v or_o think_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o real_o in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n so_o be_v it_o to_o say_v or_o think_v that_o vice_n be_v virtue_n which_o yet_o the_o chief_a pastor_n shall_v teach_v in_o command_v and_o the_o church_n shall_v believe_v in_o embrace_v and_o observe_v whence_o i_o infer_v that_o the_o former_a decree_n of_o the_o council_n be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o necessary_o to_o be_v believe_v for_o by_o this_o decree_n the_o pope_n and_o council_n of_o lateran_n do_v absolve_v the_o subject_n from_o obedience_n and_o fidelity_n by_o a_o general_n decree_n &_o do_v depose_v the_o prince_n from_o his_o kingdom_n which_o if_o it_o be_v unjust_a as_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v if_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o authority_n the_o pope_n and_o council_n shall_v err_v in_o a_o matter_n against_o faith_n because_o the_o catholic_n faith_n teach_v that_o virtue_n be_v good_a vice_n be_v evil_a and_o unlawful_a &_o yet_o if_o this_o decree_n of_o deposition_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o absolution_n of_o his_o subject_n from_o their_o fidelity_n be_v against_o justice_n the_o church_n which_o must_v obey_v her_o chief_a pastor_n shall_v be_v bind_v to_o think_v injustice_n to_o be_v justice_n &_o vice_n to_o be_v virtue_n which_o be_v against_o faith_n and_o therefore_o if_o widdrington_n notwitstand_v this_o
must_v be_v skilful_a in_o that_o art_n or_o science_n which_o trithemius_n himself_o know_v and_o therefore_o leave_v this_o question_n undiscuss_v second_o i_o answer_v that_o trithemius_n speak_v of_o henry_n the_o four_o emperor_n who_o though_o he_o have_v commit_v many_o insolence_n against_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n and_o have_v set_v up_o a_o antipope_n &c._n &c._n which_o his_o enormity_n trithemius_n call_v scelera_fw-la inaudita_fw-la yet_o he_o profess_v himself_o a_o catholic_a and_o so_o the_o school_n divine_n to_o wit_n ocham_n almainus_n and_o such_o other_o as_o i_o have_v relate_v for_o other_o widdrington_n can_v not_o allege_v dispute_v whether_o he_o can_v be_v depose_v he_o be_v or_o pretend_v to_o be_v no_o heretic_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o epistle_n to_o gregor●e_v the_o seven_o allege_v above_o allege_v and_o what_o they_o resolve_v we_o have_v see_v 14._o gallicana_n widdr._n in_o his_o newyearesgift_n pag._n 46._o disput_fw-la theol._n c._n 3._o sec_fw-la 3._o num_fw-la 13._o petrus_n pithaeus_n god_n libert_n ecc._n gallicana_n petrus_n pithaeus_n say_v widdrington_n a_o man_n as_o possevin_n say_v trnlie_o learn_v and_o a_o diligent_a searcher_n of_o antiquity_n affirm_v that_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n of_o france_n be_v ground_v in_o this_o principle_n which_o france_n have_v ever_o hold_v for_o certain_a that_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o power_n to_o deprive_v the_o french_a king_n of_o his_o kingdom_n or_o in_o any_o other_o manner_n to_o dispose_v thereof_o and_o that_o notwithstanding_o any_o whatsoever_o monition_n or_o monitory_n excommunication_n or_o interdict_v which_o by_o the_o pope_n can_v be_v make_v yet_o the_o subject_n be_v bind_v to_o yield_v obedience_n due_a to_o the_o king_n for_o temporalle_n neither_o therein_o can_v they_o be_v dispense_v or_o absolve_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o his_o disput_n theological_a 13._o cap._n 3._o sec_fw-la 3._o num_fw-la 13._o he_o say_v that_o pithaeus_n out_o of_o a_o general_a maxim_n which_o france_n that_o be_v as_o he_o put_v in_o the_o margin_n the_o great_a part_n ever_o approve_v deduce_v this_o particular_a proposition_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o deprive_v the_o french_a king_n of_o his_o kingdom_n but_o first_o here_o we_o see_v widdrington_n ascribe_v two_o thing_n to_o pithaeus_n which_o seem_v to_o imply_v contradiction_n for_o in_o his_o newyearesgift_n he_o make_v he_o say_v that_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n of_o france_n be_v ground_v in_o this_o principle_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o power_n to_o deprive_v the_o king_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o in_o his_o theological_a disputation_n he_o say_v that_o pithaeus_n out_o of_o a_o certain_a general_a maxim_n deduce_v this_o particular_a proposition_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o give_v the_o kingdom_n of_o freunce_n into_o prey_n nor_o deprive_v the_o king_n of_o it_o and_o so_o he_o make_v this_o position_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o deprive_v the_o king_n of_o france_n both_o a_o general_a maxim_n in_o which_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n of_o f●aunce_n be_v ground_v and_o also_o a_o particular_a proposition_n deduce_v out_o of_o a_o general_a maxim_n which_o he_o name_v not_o which_o two_o thing_n how_o they_o cohere_v let_v widdrington_n look_v and_o certes_o i_o can_v not_o imagine_v any_o maxim_n receive_v in_o france_n out_o of_o which_o either_o widdrington_n or_o pithaeus_n can_v deduce_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v in_o no_o case_n deprive_v the_o king_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o maxim_n receive_v in_o france_n that_o learned_a prelate_n cardinal_n perone_n in_o his_o eloquent_a oration_n make_v in_o the_o chamber_n of_o the_o three_o estate_n not_o only_o in_o his_o own_o name_n but_o also_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o nobility_n and_o clergy_n of_o france_n will_v never_o have_v dare_v before_o such_o curious_a auditor_n to_o utter_v these_o word_n follow_v now_o if_o those_o who_o have_v of_o set_a purpose_n labour_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o england_n he_o put_v in_o the_o margin_n widdrington_n to_o find_v out_o author_n who_o have_v affirm_v that_o in_o case_n of_o heresy_n or_o infidelity_n the_o subject_n can_v not_o be_v absolve_v from_o the_o obligation_n that_o they_o owe_v to_o their_o prince_n can_v not_o find_v out_o any_o one_o and_o if_o those_o who_o have_v since_o write_v of_o the_o same_o subject_n in_o france_n can_v never_o find_v out_o in_o all_o france_n note_n these_o word_n since_o the_o time_n that_o school_n of_o divinity_n have_v be_v institute_v and_o set_v open_a till_o this_o day_n one_o only_o doctor_n neither_o divine_a nor_o lawyer_n nor_o decree_n nor_o council_n nor_o determination_n nor_o act_n of_o parliament_n nor_o magistrate_n either_o ecclesiastical_a or_o politic_a who_o have_v say_v that_o in_o case_n of_o heresy_n or_o infidelity_n the_o subject_n can_v not_o be_v absolve_v from_o the_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n which_o they_o owe_v to_o their_o prince_n on_o the_o contrary_a if_o all_o those_o who_o have_v write_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o temporal_a power_n of_o king_n have_v ever_o except_v the_o case_n of_o heresy_n and_o apostasy_n from_o christian_a religion_n how_o be_v it_o that_o they_o can_v without_o enforce_v of_o conscience_n make_v man_n not_o only_o to_o receive_v this_o doctrine_n that_o in_o no_o case_n the_o subject_n can_v be_v absolve_v from_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n they_o owe_v to_o their_o prince_n for_o a_o perpetual_a and_o universal_a doctrine_n of_o the_o french_a church_n etc._n etc._n thus_o he_o whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o receive_v maxim_n in_o france_n out_o of_o which_o pithaeus_n or_o widdrington_n can_v deduce_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o no_o case_n can_v deprive_v the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o what_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n kingdom_n of_o france_n at_o this_o present_a be_v may_v well_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o all_o the_o nobility_n and_o clergy_n the_o two_o most_o worthy_a part_n and_o member_n of_o that_o realm_n in_o the_o year_n 1615._o reject_v a_o oath_n like_a to_o the_o oath_n of_o england_n as_o pernicious_a cause_n of_o schism_n &_o the_o open_a gap_n to_o heresy_n as_o our_o most_o excellent_a and_o learned_a king_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o his_o declaration_n for_o the_o right_n of_o king_n set_v forth_o in_o french_a the_o same_o year_n confess_v though_o in_o a_o complain_v manner_n and_o as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o oration_n of_o the_o say_a cardinal_n send_v to_o our_o say_a sovereign_n and_o although_o the_o tierce_n estate_n propose_v a_o oath_n like_a to_o that_o of_o england_n yet_o that_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o low_a of_o the_o three_o estate_n and_o as_o cardinal_z perone_n affirm_v they_o have_v their_o lesson_n give_v they_o from_o england_n 15._o he_o allege_v also_o out_o of_o bochellus_n the_o testimony_n of_o cardinal_n pelue_v and_o other_o prelate_n who_o in_o a_o assembly_n at_o paris_n 1595._o reject_a the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n sess_v 25._o cap._n 19_o by_o which_o it_o be_v forbid_v king_n to_o permit_v duelle_n under_o pain_n of_o lose_v the_o city_n or_o place_n in_o which_o they_o permit_v a_o duelle_fw-fr concilium_fw-la tridentiwm_fw-la inquiunt_fw-la excommunicate_a &_o private_a regem_fw-la civitate_fw-la illâ_fw-la vel_fw-la loco_fw-la in_o quo_fw-la permittit_fw-la fieri_fw-la duellum_fw-la hic_fw-la articulus_fw-la est_fw-la contra_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la regis_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la privari_fw-la svo_fw-la dominio_fw-la temporali_fw-la respectu_fw-la cvius_fw-la nullum_fw-la superiorem_fw-la recognoscit_fw-la the_o council_n of_o trent_n say_v they_o excommunicate_v and_o deprive_v a_o king_n of_o that_o city_n or_o place_n in_o which_o he_o permit_v a_o duelle_fw-fr to_o be_v make_v this_o article_n be_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n who_o can_v not_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o temporal_a dominion_n in_o respect_n of_o which_o he_o acknowledge_v no_o superior_a i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o credible_a that_o cardinal_n pelue_fw-mi and_o those_o prelate_n will_v thus_o reject_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n or_o affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o deprive_v the_o king_n and_o lest_o i_o may_v seem_v to_o do_v injury_n to_o bochellus_n in_v not_o credit_v he_o i_o shall_v give_v reason_n for_o it_o 111._o cap._n 3._o pag._n 111._o for_o first_o as_o schulkennius_n show_v he_o thrust_n into_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n of_o france_n and_o recken_v amongst_o her_o liberty_n many_o scandalous_a thing_n and_o to_o omit_v many_o of_o they_o which_o schulkennius_n note_v i_o will_v note_v only_o two_o or_o three_o of_o his_o absurdity_n which_o i_o have_v see_v in_o his_o book_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n he_o show_v himself_o no_o good_a catholic_a in_o carp_n uniustelie_o and_o saucy_o
at_o that_o venerable_a council_n of_o trent_n lectorem_fw-la bochel_n in_o praef_n ad_fw-la lectorem_fw-la say_v quantas_fw-la novissimis_fw-la temporibus_fw-la ubique_fw-la terrarum_fw-la excitarit_fw-mi turbas_fw-la synodus_fw-la tridentina_n nemo_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la nesciat_fw-la what_o trouble_v in_o these_o latter_a time_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v stir_v up_o no_o man_n be_v ignorant_a and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o seek_v to_o exempt_v the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o his_o officer_n from_o excommunication_n 3._o lib._n 2._o tit_n 16._o cap._n 3._o as_o though_o they_o can_v not_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o their_o pastor_n wherein_o while_o he_o will_v exalt_v his_o king_n he_o depress_v he_o so_o low_o as_o that_o he_o make_v he_o of_o christian●ssimus_n which_o title_n he_o have_v worthy_o long_o enjoy_v not_o to_o be_v christianus_n because_o if_o he_o be_v a_o christian_n he_o be_v a_o sheep_n of_o christ_n and_o consequent_o of_o s._n peter_n to_o who_o christ_n commit_v his_o sheep_n meas_fw-la joan._n 21._o pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la and_o consequent_o also_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o successor_n yea_o and_o of_o other_o pastoure_n and_o therefore_o for_o a_o just_a cause_n may_v be_v by_o they_o sever_v from_o the_o fold_n by_o excommunication_n trent_n lib._n 5._o c._n 45._o pag._n 906._o en_fw-fr extraic_n d'aucuns_n artic●tes_n du_fw-ge concile_v de_fw-fr trent_n likewise_o in_o his_o 5._o book_n he_o set_v down_o a_o extract_n of_o many_o of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n which_o like_a to_o no_o good_a catholic_a he_o reject_v as_o contrary_a to_o the_o liberty_n and_o practice_n of_o france_n yea_o in_o many_o place_n upon_o the_o least_o occasion_n he_o glance_v against_o that_o hohe_o and_o renown_v council_n wherefore_o as_o in_o other_o thing_n so_o in_o this_o which_o he_o father_v on_o cardinal_n pelue_fw-mi and_o other_o prelate_n he_o deserve_v no_o credit_n secondlie_o the_o imputation_n which_o he_o lay_v on_o they_o be_v so_o absurd_a that_o i_o can_v not_o believe_v that_o they_o who_o be_v well_o see_v in_o the_o council_n decree_n will_v ever_o reject_v that_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n because_o that_o decree_n only_o deprive_v a_o king_n of_o the_o city_n place_n or_o dominion_n which_o he_o hold_v of_o the_o church_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o those_o word_n qu●d_v ab_fw-la ecclesia_n obtinent_fw-la 19_o council_n trid._n ●ess_n 25._o c._n 19_o which_o they_o hold_v of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o either_o the_o king_n of_o france_n hold_v some_o city_n or_o demaine_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n or_o he_o do_v not_o if_o he_o do_v no_o marvel_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v in_o that_o case_n deprive_v he_o the_o pope_n be_v in_o this_o his_o temporal_a lord_n of_o who_o he_o hold_v that_o temporal_a dominion_n if_o he_o be_v not_o that_o extract_n of_o bochellus_n be_v most_o absurd_a which_o he_o set_v down_o in_o these_o french_a word_n l●_n concile_v excommunie_a &_o prive_a le_fw-fr roy_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr ville_fw-fr on_o lieu_n trent_n bochell_n lib._n 5._o tit_n 20._o c._n 45._o pag._n 916_o en_fw-fr extraict_n d'aueun_v article_n du_fw-fr concile_v de_fw-fr trent_n ou_fw-fr il_fw-fr aurà_fw-it permis_fw-fr un_fw-fr duel_n sess_v 25._o cap._n 19_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n excommunicate_v and_o deprive_v the_o king_n of_o the_o town_n or_o place_n where_o he_o shall_v permit_v a_o duelle_fw-fr sess_v 25._o cap._n 19_o where_o we_o see_v that_o he_o ascribe_v to_o the_o council_n as_o though_o it_o do_v absolute_o deprive_v the_o king_n of_o whatsoever_o town_n or_o place_n whereas_o the_o council_n deprive_v he_o only_o of_o that_o town_n or_o place_n which_o he_o hold_v of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o these_o word_n follow_v ceste_fw-fr article_n est_fw-fr contre_fw-fr l'authoritie_n du_fw-fr roy_fw-fr qui_fw-fr ne_fw-fr peut_fw-fr estre_fw-fr priuè_fw-fr de_fw-fr son_fw-fr temporel_n ou_fw-fr party_n d'iceluy_fw-fr pour_fw-fr le_fw-fr regard_n duquel_fw-fr il_fw-fr ne_fw-fr recognoit_fw-fr aucun_fw-fr superieur_fw-fr quelque_fw-fr il_fw-fr soit_fw-fr this_o article_n be_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n who_o can_v not_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o temporallity_n or_o any_o part_n thereof_o in_o respect_n of_o which_o he_o acknowledge_v no_o superior_a these_o word_n i_o say_v be_v most_o absurd_a and_o unworthy_a that_o grave_a assembly_n not_o unbeseeming_a bochellus_n who_o spirit_n they_o resemble_v wherefore_o this_o book_n of_o bochellus_n be_v forbid_v to_o be_v print_v or_o sell_v in_o catholic_a country_n where_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v receive_v and_o where_o a_o censor_n librorum_fw-la be_v appoint_v and_o yet_o such_o author_n widdrington_n be_v enforce_v to_o fly_v unto_o 16._o he_o allege_v also_o mr._n george_n blacwell_o the_o late_a archpriest_n who_o in_o his_o examination_n and_o as_o widdrington_n say_v even_o to_o his_o death_n persist_v in_o widdringtons_n opinion_n concern_v both_o the_o oath_n and_o deposition_n of_o king_n but_o it_o be_v well_o know_v to_o many_o that_o mr._n blacwell_o while_o he_o be_v at_o liberty_n be_v so_o zealous_a for_o the_o pope_n authority_n depose_v that_o he_o think_v it_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o i_o have_v hear_v a_o catholic_a gentleman_n name_v who_o visit_v m._n blacwell_v in_o prison_n say_v unto_o he_o do_v not_o you_o m._n blacwell_o heretofore_o tell_v i_o that_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v in_o no_o case_n lawful_a and_o widdrington_n himself_o know_v that_o in_o a_o certain_a conference_n betwixt_o the_o archpriest_n and_o other_o priest_n at_o which_o widdrington_n himself_o be_v present_a mr._n archpriest_n say_v he_o think_v the_o pope_n have_v authority_n to_o depose_v a_o prince_n but_o yet_o matter_n stand_v as_o they_o do_v he_o can_v not_o lawful_o exercise_v it_o yea_o in_o that_o conference_n also_o widdrington_n himself_o be_v zealous_n for_o this_o the_o pope_n authority_n though_o after_o his_o imprisonment_n and_o after_o his_o chief_a pastors_n breve_n which_o shall_v have_v confirm_v he_o he_o have_v change_v his_o opinion_n let_v then_o the_o reader_n judge_v of_o what_o authority_n the_o word_n of_o a_o fearful_a old_a man_n then_o prisoner_n and_o straight_o examine_v be_v he_o especial_o have_v aver_v the_o contrary_a when_o he_o be_v at_o liberty_n what_o else_o can_v hence_o be_v gather_v than_o that_o rather_o out_o of_o fear_n then_o judgement_n he_o allow_v the_o oath_n when_o he_o be_v in_o his_o adversary_n hand_n of_o who_o otherwise_o he_o expect_v all_o rigour_n and_o perchance_o widdrington_n himself_o who_o before_o his_o imprisonement_n be_v so_o zealous_a for_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o against_o the_o oath_n have_v not_o now_o so_o much_o change_v his_o mind_n as_o his_o tongue_n nor_o speak_v not_o so_o much_o out_o of_o judgement_n and_o opinion_n as_o out_o of_o fear_n or_o faintenesse_n of_o heart_n and_o now_o that_o he_o have_v begin_v he_o think_v he_o must_v go_v forward_o 17._o last_o he_o allege_v in_o all_o his_o book_n the_o 13._o reverend_a priest_n think_v by_o their_o authority_n and_o credit_n for_o they_o be_v grave_a and_o learned_a man_n constant_a confessor_n and_o twoe_o of_o they_o glorious_a martyr_n to_o grace_v and_o credit_v his_o opinion_n but_o because_o they_o be_v able_a enough_o to_o answer_v for_o themselves_o i_o will_v not_o intermeddle_v myself_o in_o other_o man_n matter_n only_o in_o a_o word_n or_o two_o i_o will_v answer_v what_o in_o effect_n i_o think_v they_o may_v answer_v and_o what_o i_o have_v hear_v some_o of_o they_o answer_v and_o this_o i_o think_v good_a to_o do_v for_o 2._o reason_n first_o for_o the_o respect_n and_o love_n i_o bear_v to_o they_o they_o be_v of_o my_o coat_n and_o principal_a man_n of_o the_o english_a clergy_n which_o so_o constant_o have_v bear_v the_o brunt_n of_o a_o long_a persecution_n that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o example_n to_o all_o other_o clergy_n and_o a_o mirrout_a to_o furure_v age_n second_o lest_o i_o shall_v do_v they_o injury_n for_o if_o i_o answer_v to_o widdringtons_n other_o author_n shall_v say_v nothing_o of_o these_o by_o widdrington_n so_o often_o allege_v i_o may_v give_v occasion_n to_o the_o world_n to_o think_v that_o i_o pass_v these_o with_o silence_n because_o they_o be_v so_o manifest_a fautour_n of_o widdringtons_n opinion_n as_o i_o can_v not_o tell_v what_o to_o say_v in_o their_o defence_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o this_o their_o protestation_n be_v by_o they_o make_v before_o the_o pope_n breve_n come_v forth_o that_o be_v anno_fw-la 1603._o and_o therefore_o be_v it_o that_o then_o they_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n yet_o see_v that_o since_o the_o breve_n be_v publish_v they_o profess_v and_o protest_v the_o contrary_a as_o widdrington_n well_o know_v and_o that_o one_o of_o they_o yet_o live_v while_o he_o be_v in_o
antealata_fw-la quia_fw-la princeps_fw-la non_fw-la improbans_fw-la usum_fw-la censetur_fw-la illum_fw-la approbare_fw-la when_o the_o prince_n know_v the_o use_n do_v approve_v it_o or_o do_v not_o disproove_v it_o there_o arise_v a_o custom_n which_o have_v the_o force_n of_o a_o law_n or_o which_o suffice_v to_o derogate_v to_o the_o law_n before_o make_v because_o the_o prince_n not_o disproove_v a_o use_n be_v think_v to_o approve_v it_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o divine_n and_o lawyer_n 25.27.28_o widdr._fw-la disput_fw-la theol._n c._n 6._o sec_fw-la 3._o n._n 25.27.28_o which_o widdrington_n himself_o approove_v in_o diverse_a place_n wherefore_o see_v that_o in_o england_n the_o sentence_n of_o pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la pronounce_v against_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v not_o observe_v for_o three_o and_o thirty_o year_n before_o the_o thirteen_o priest_n protestation_n and_o that_o all_o that_o while_n even_o the_o catholic_n obey_v she_o as_o queen_n the_o pope_n know_v and_o not_o contradict_v yea_o some_o of_o they_o as_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o pope_n gregory_n the_o 13._o and_o clement_n the_o 8._o expresselie_o approve_v it_o follow_v that_o at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o 13._o priest_n protestation_n the_o sentence_n of_o deposition_n by_o contrary_a use_n and_o custom_n be_v abrogate_a and_o so_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v at_o that_o time_n in_o the_o same_o state_n she_o be_v in_o before_o the_o sentence_n and_o consequent_o may_v be_v acknowledge_v for_o true_a queen_n and_o to_o have_v as_o full_a power_n and_o authority_n as_o any_o of_o her_o predecessor_n but_o because_o widdrington_a may_v allege_v that_o these_o 13._o reverend_a priest_n not_o only_o promise_v that_o they_o will_v acknowledge_v q._n elizabeth_n notwithstanding_o any_o sentence_n already_o pronounce_v but_o also_o notwitstand_v any_o authority_n or_o any_o excommunication_n whatsoever_o either_o denounce_v or_o to_o be_v denounce_v to_o yield_v unto_o her_o majesty_n all_o obedience_n in_o temporal_a cause_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o 13._o reverend_a priest_n may_v acknowledge_v in_o the_o pope_n authority_n to_o depose_v the_o queen_n and_o yet_o promise_v her_o obedience_n in_o lawful_a thing_n suppose_v the_o sentence_n will_v be_v invalid_a for_o some_o of_o the_o aforesaid_a cause_n and_o not_o for_o want_v of_o authority_n again_o they_o may_v think_v that_o if_o the_o queen_n will_v give_v for_o hereafter_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n as_o be_v pretend_v and_o continue_v the_o same_o as_o the_o 13._o priest_n may_v hope_v the_o pope_n shall_v have_v no_o cause_n to_o excommunicate_v or_o depose_v she_o and_o therefore_o will_v not_o or_o if_o he_o will_v they_o may_v imagine_v that_o in_o that_o case_n he_o can_v not_o justly_o nor_o without_o great_a injury_n to_o the_o catholic_n of_o england_n proceed_v so_o against_o she_o that_o be_v to_o provoke_v she_o to_o a_o new_a persecution_n and_o so_o the_o 13._o reverend_a priest_n may_v think_v themselves_o not_o bind_v to_o obey_v in_o that_o case_n the_o pope_n sentence_n and_o commandment_n it_o be_v unjust_a and_o consequent_o rebus_fw-la sic_fw-la stantibus_fw-la they_o may_v promise_v notwithstanding_o any_o sentence_n to_o be_v denounce_v to_o obey_v the_o queen_n in_o all_o temporal_a and_o lawful_a cause_n and_o to_o defend_v and_o assist_v she_o if_o widdrington_n shall_v here_o object_v that_o if_o the_o 13._o priest_n may_v promise_v to_o acknowledge_v and_o obey_v queen_n elizabeth_n notwithstanding_o any_o sentence_n to_o be_v pronounce_v suppose_v the_o sentence_n will_v be_v unjust_a why_o may_v not_o the_o catholic_a subject_n of_o england_n take_v the_o oath_n of_o pretend_a allegiance_n and_o swear_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v the_o king_n and_o that_o if_o he_o shall_v he_o will_v still_o acknowledge_v and_o obey_v he_o suppose_v the_o sentence_n will_v be_v unjust_a i_o answer_v he_o that_o the_o case_n be_v not_o like_a because_o in_o the_o oath_n the_o question_n be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la not_z de_fw-la facto_fw-la and_o therefore_o the_o subject_n swear_v absolutlie_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o any_o power_n or_o authority_n to_o depose_v the_o king_n and_o that_o notwithstanding_o any_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n or_o deprivation_n make_v or_o grant_v or_o to_o be_v make_v or_o grant_v against_o the_o say_a king_n or_o any_o absolution_n of_o the_o say_a subject_n from_o their_o obedience_n he_o will_v bear_v true_a faith_n and_o true_a allegiance_n to_o his_o majesty_n and_o see_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v such_o authority_n to_o depose_v a_o prince_n as_o here_o i_o suppose_v it_o be_v perjury_n at_o least_o to_o swear_v absolutlie_o that_o he_o have_v no_o such_o authority_n over_o the_o king_n and_o it_o be_v injury_n to_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o 13._o priest_n speak_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la not_z de_fw-la jure_fw-la and_o therefore_o they_o protest_v not_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o such_o authority_n but_o promise_v what_o they_o will_v do_v de_fw-fr sacto_fw-la notwithstanding_o any_o his_o authority_n that_o be_v that_o not_o withstand_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o sentence_n so_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n be_v grant_v to_o all_o english_a catholic_n as_o they_o be_v bear_v in_o hand_n it_o shall_v they_o will_v still_o acknowledge_v and_o obey_v the_o queen_n suppose_v in_o that_o case_n the_o sentence_n will_v be_v unjust_a and_o so_o of_o no_o force_n to_o bind_v in_o conscience_n wherefore_o see_v that_o these_o 13._o reverend_a priest_n may_v make_v their_o protestation_n of_o acknowledge_v and_o obey_v q._n elizabeth_n not_o for_o that_o they_o think_v the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v she_o but_o for_o other_o reason_n allege_v why_o shall_v then_o widdrington_n take_v they_o in_o the_o worst_a sense_n why_o shall_v he_o bring_v they_o so_o oft_o on_o the_o stage_n why_o shall_v he_o think_v to_o grace_v his_o opinion_n by_o their_o gravity_n learning_n and_o authority_n he_o know_v whatsoever_o they_o think_v of_o the_o pope_n authority_n in_o depose_v before_o the_o pope_n breve_n come_v forth_o as_o they_o protest_v they_o never_o think_v as_o widdrington_n do_v that_o when_o he_o begin_v to_o impugn_v this_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o against_o his_o chief_a pastors_n commandment_n to_o defend_v the_o oath_n they_o protest_v in_o private_a and_o public_a the_o contrary_n and_o so_o widdrington_n may_v ask_v they_o forgiveness_n by_o public_a writing_n who_o he_o have_v publickelie_o and_o yet_o wrongefullie_o seek_v to_o defame_v 18._o here_o because_o i_o will_v not_o pass_v my_o limit_n of_o brevity_n which_o i_o intend_v in_o this_o book_n i_o think_v to_o have_v conclude_v this_o chapter_n but_o after_o i_o have_v examine_v these_o author_n yea_o after_o that_o the_o printer_n be_v come_v to_o this_o chapter_n i_o come_v to_o the_o sight_n of_o widdringtons_n supplication_n and_o appendix_n join_v to_o it_o which_o before_o i_o have_v nor_o see_v for_o that_o catholic_n make_v a_o scruple_n either_o to_o read_v or_o to_o keep_v book_n forbid_v by_o the_o chief_a pastor_n and_o superior_n be_v vigilant_a and_o worthy_o to_o suppress_v such_o book_n it_o be_v hard_o in_o catholic_a country_n to_o meet_v with_o any_o of_o widdringtons_n book_n two_o of_o they_o be_v expresselie_o condemn_v and_o all_o his_o late_a book_n be_v almost_o but_o repetition_n of_o the_o former_a yet_o have_v hit_v upon_o this_o book_n i_o be_v desirous_a to_o see_v with_o what_o dexterity_n he_o defend_v these_o author_n against_o schulckennius_n and_o i_o find_v that_o he_o refuse_v to_o acknowledge_v two_o of_o they_o to_o wit_n dante_n be_v and_o ocham_n 2._o in_o append_v §_o 6_o num_fw-la 2._o say_v imprimis_fw-la falsum_fw-la est_fw-la i_o aut_fw-la dantem_fw-la aut_fw-la occamum_fw-la pro_fw-la meis_fw-la authoribus_fw-la produxisse_fw-la etc._n etc._n first_o it_o be_v false_a that_o i_o produce_v either_o dante_n be_v or_o ocham_n for_o my_o author_n but_o i_o only_o affirm_v that_o by_o john_n azorius_n they_o be_v allege_v for_o that_o opinion_n and_o yet_o who_o can_v think_v otherwise_o then_o that_o he_o have_v produce_v they_o for_o his_o author_n see_v that_o after_o the_o first_o opinion_n of_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n and_o other_o which_o hold_v that_o the_o chief_a pastor_n may_v in_o some_o case_n dispose_n of_o temporality_n and_o regality_n he_o set_v down_o the_o second_o opinion_n of_o those_o who_o hold_v that_o the_o chief_a pastor_n in_o no_o case_n by_o no_o authority_n either_o direct_o or_o indirect_o have_v power_n to_o depose_v a_o prince_n and_o come_v to_o the_o author_n of_o this_o second_o opinion_n which_o he_o himself_o embrace_v he_o say_v hanc_fw-la sententiam_fw-la ut_fw-la refert_fw-la joannes_n azorius_fw-la societatis_fw-la jesu_fw-la theologus_fw-la sequuntur_fw-la gulielmus_fw-la occamus_fw-la joannes_n parisiensis_fw-la dante_n be_v aligerius_n jacobus_n almainus_n etc._n etc._n this_o sentence_n as_o joannes_n azorius_fw-la a_o divine_a of_o
to_o my_o sovereign_n speak_v no_o more_o of_o he_o then_o any_o other_o prince_n but_z abstract_v from_o all_o prince_n fact_n and_o case_n in_o particular_a i_o intend_v only_o to_o dispute_v as_o i_o have_v hitherto_o of_o the_o pope_n right_a and_o authority_n over_o prince_n in_o general_n the_o first_o clause_n of_o the_o oath_n i._o a._n b._n do_v true_o and_o sincere_o acknowledge_v profess_v and_o testify_v in_o my_o conscience_n before_o god_n and_o the_o world_n that_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n king_n james_n be_v lawful_a and_o true_a king_n of_o this_o realm_n and_o of_o all_o other_o his_o majesty_n dominion_n and_o country_n 12._o i_o will_v not_o stand_v much_o with_o widdrington_n about_o this_o clause_n because_o all_o catholic_n will_v acknowledge_v his_o majesty_n that_o now_o be_v for_o their_o prince_n and_o king_n and_o will_v swear_v also_o fidelity_n unto_o he_o in_o all_o temporal_a matter_n and_o this_o oath_n have_v be_v offer_v by_o the_o catholic_n in_o a_o epistle_n they_o write_v to_o his_o majesty_n which_o other_o also_o have_v offer_v and_o for_o better_a notice_n and_o in_o argument_n of_o their_o true_a meaning_n publish_v their_o offer_n in_o print_n this_o then_o be_v one_o reason_n which_o make_v catholic_n to_o suspect_v that_o in_o this_o oath_n covertlie_o be_v intend_v a_o denial_n of_o the_o pope_n spiritual_a supremacy_n for_o if_o the_o prince_n and_o his_o magistrate_n intend_v only_o civil_a and_o temporal_a allegiance_n why_o do_v they_o not_o propose_v this_o oath_n in_o the_o ordinary_a tenor_n and_o term_n of_o a_o civil_a oath_n with_o which_o the_o former_a king_n of_o england_n and_o all_o catholic_n king_n of_o other_o country_n even_o to_o this_o day_n content_v themselves_o why_o bring_v they_o in_o the_o pope_n authority_n which_o other_o prince_n leave_v out_o but_o they_o know_v that_o catholic_n will_v never_o have_v refuse_v such_o a_o oath_n and_o therefore_o to_o trouble_v and_o engage_v their_o conscience_n to_o have_v thereby_o some_o pretence_n to_o seize_v upon_o their_o live_n and_o good_n and_o to_o vex_v their_o person_n they_o devise_v this_o oath_n which_o their_o manner_n of_o proceed_v may_v make_v catholic_n justly_o suspect_v that_o some_o thing_n be_v intend_v to_o which_o in_o conscience_n they_o can_v agree_v and_o consequent_o oath_n conscience_n and_o religion_n be_v so_o nice_a and_o dangerous_a matter_n if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o reason_n then_o this_o 37._o in_o his_o newyearesguift_n numb_a 8._o pag._n 37._o the_o catholic_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o make_v not_o only_o a_o scruple_n but_o also_o a_o conscience_n to_o take_v it_o and_o therefore_o widdrington_n himself_o in_o his_o newyeares-guist_a confess_v at_o least_o that_o in_o the_o beginning_n and_o why_o not_o still_o catholic_n may_v justly_o suspect_v this_o oath_n to_o be_v unlawful_a 13._o gretzerus_n suarez_n &_o gretzerus_n hence_o it_o be_v also_o that_o some_o writer_n make_v a_o scruple_n of_o those_o word_n supremus_fw-la dominus_fw-la sovereign_a lord_n because_o the_o oath_n be_v of_o itself_o suspicious_a and_o the_o king_n of_o england_n by_o his_o ordinary_a title_n give_v he_o by_o parliament_n be_v style_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n which_o dignity_n the_o bishop_n and_o divine_n of_o england_n affirm_v to_o be_v annex_v to_o the_o king_n regality_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la as_o we_o have_v see_v above_o chap._n 6._o they_o fear_v lest_o a_o snake_n lie_v hide_v in_o the_o grass_n and_o a_o pad_n in_o the_o straw_n and_o that_o under_o that_o title_n of_o supreme_a or_o sovereign_a lord_n be_v covertlie_o understand_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n not_o only_o in_o temporal_a but_o also_o in_o spiritual_a cause_n but_o because_o these_o word_n sovereign_a lord_n may_v be_v take_v in_o that_o good_a sense_n which_o ordinary_o they_o import_v and_o be_v not_o put_v ex_fw-la parte_fw-la praedicati_fw-la but_o only_o ex_fw-la parte_fw-la subiecti_fw-la for_o by_o this_o clause_n the_o swearer_n swear_v not_o that_o his_o majesty_n be_v supreme_a or_o sovereign_a lord_n but_o only_o that_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n be_v true_a and_o lawful_a king_n i_o will_v not_o much_o stand_n about_o they_o 14._o for_o as_o if_o one_o shall_v swear_v that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o cantetburie_n be_v true_o a_o persecutor_n of_o catholic_n he_o shall_v not_o swear_v that_o he_o be_v true_o archbishop_n but_o only_o that_o he_o who_o be_v call_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v true_o a_o persecutor_n so_o by_o swear_v that_o our_o supreme_a lord_n king_n james_n be_v true_a and_o lawful_a king_n we_o do_v not_o swear_v that_o he_o be_v sovereign_a or_o supreme_a lord_n but_o only_o that_o he_o who_o be_v so_o style_v be_v our_o prince_n and_o king_n which_o not_o english_a catholic_a will_n refuse_v to_o swear_v but_o howsoever_o catholic_n have_v good_a cause_n to_o suspect_v all_o thing_n in_o this_o unwonted_a oath_n it_o be_v not_o the_o ordinary_a oath_n of_o allegiance_n which_o the_o king_n in_o other_o country_n propose_n and_o wherewith_o the_o king_n of_o england_n content_v themselves_o till_o they_o begin_v to_o sever_v themselves_o from_o the_o true_a catholic_a roman_n church_n for_o true_a catholic_a and_o roman_a ever_o go_v together_o and_o to_o banish_v out_o of_o their_o realm_n all_o papal_a authority_n as_o a_o enemy_n to_o their_o state_n which_o other_o prince_n do_v retain_v and_o ever_o have_v reverence_v and_o maintain_v as_o the_o chief_a support_n of_o their_o kingdom_n and_o that_o which_o augment_v the_o suspicion_n be_v for_o that_o his_o majesty_n himself_o seem_v to_o make_v doubt_n of_o this_o oath_n and_o so_o it_o seem_v dangerous_a either_o for_o the_o magistrate_n to_o propose_v it_o or_o the_o subject_n to_o receive_v it_o for_o these_o be_v his_o majesty_n word_n utter_v in_o the_o parliament_n a_fw-mi 1606._o some_o doubt_n have_v be_v conceive_v in_o use_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o that_o part_n of_o the_o act_n which_o ordain_v the_o take_v thereof_o be_v think_v so_o absurd_a as_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v who_o ought_v to_o be_v press_v therewith_o for_o i_o myself_o when_o upon_o a_o time_n i_o call_v the_o judge_n before_o i_o at_o their_o go_v to_o their_o court_n move_v the_o question_n unto_o they_o wherein_o as_o i_o think_v they_o can_v not_o reasonable_o auswer_v so_o that_o this_o obscurity_n in_o the_o oath_n shall_v first_o be_v clear_v lest_o swear_v to_o that_o which_o we_o understand_v not_o we_o expose_v ourselves_o to_o perjury_n the_o second_o clause_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n neither_o by_o himself_o nor_o by_o any_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o sea_n of_o rome_n or_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n with_o any_o other_o have_v any_o power_n or_o authority_n to_o depose_v the_o king_n or_o to_o dispose_v of_o any_o of_o his_o majesty_n kingdom_n or_o dominion_n or_o to_o authorise_v any_o foreign_a prince_n to_o annoy_v he_o or_o invade_v his_o country_n or_o to_o discharge_v any_o of_o his_o subject_n of_o their_o allegiance_n and_o obedience_n to_o his_o majesty_n or_o to_o give_v licence_n or_o leave_v to_o any_o of_o they_o to_o bear_v arm_n raise_v tumult_n or_o to_o offer_v any_o violence_n or_o hurt_v to_o his_o majesty_n royal_a person_n state_n or_o government_n or_o to_o any_o of_o his_o majesty_n subject_n within_o his_o majesty_n dominion_n 15._o clausulae_fw-la widdr._n in_o disp_n theol._n in_o exam_n huius_fw-la clausulae_fw-la this_o clause_n say_v widdrington_n be_v petra_n illa_fw-la scandali_fw-la &_o lapis_fw-la offensionis_fw-la that_o rock_n of_o scandal_n and_o stone_n of_o offence_n at_o which_o so_o many_o of_o this_o age_n as_o well_o learned_a as_o unlearned_a have_v stumble_v and_o in_o deed_n to_o widdrington_n himself_o it_o have_v be_v such_o a_o rock_n of_o scandal_n but_o by_o his_o own_o fault_n for_o many_o have_v pass_v it_o with_o out_o either_o fall_v or_o stumble_v that_o he_o have_v not_o only_o stumble_v and_o fall_v at_o it_o himself_o but_o by_o his_o fall_n he_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o fall_n and_o ruin_n of_o many_o a_o hundred_o for_o if_o 22._o august_n serm_n 14._o de_fw-la sanctis_fw-la act._n 7._o &_o 22._o as_o s._n augustin_n say_v s._n paul_n by_o hold_v the_o garment_n of_o those_o that_o stone_a s._n steven_n do_v more_o stone_n he_o then_o any_o of_o the_o stoner_n themselves_o magis_fw-la saeviens_fw-la omnes_fw-la adiwaudo_fw-la quàm_fw-la suis_fw-la manibus_fw-la lapidando_fw-la certes_o widdrington_n persuade_v by_o his_o book_n that_o the_o oath_n be_v lawful_a sin_v more_o damnable_o than_o any_o one_o of_o they_o that_o take_v the_o oath_n yea_o take_v it_o in_o every_o one_o of_o they_o and_o stumble_v and_o fall_v in_o they_o all_o and_o consequent_o more_o than_o they_o all_o but_o vae_fw-la homini_fw-la illi_fw-la
know_v that_o so_o many_o scripture_n theological_a reason_n counsel_n pope_n their_o fact_n and_o practice_n so_o many_o learned_a doctor_n and_o saint_n stand_v for_o the_o contrary_a he_o can_v not_o swear_v absolute_o and_o with_o the_o former_a asseveration_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o such_o authority_n he_o know_v that_o so_o many_o author_n and_o so_o great_a argument_n and_o authority_n do_v countenance_n the_o contrary_a opinion_n yea_o much_o less_o can_v he_o swear_v for_o his_o opinion_n in_o this_o point_n then_o can_v a_o thomist_n for_o his_o touch_v our_o lady_n conception_n because_o the_o thomist_n be_v licence_v by_o the_o express_a leave_n of_o the_o church_n to_o teach_v and_o think_v as_o he_o do_v and_o his_o adversary_n be_v command_v by_o the_o church_n not_o to_o condemn_v his_o opinion_n as_o heretical_a reliq_n council_n trid._n sess_v 5._o c._n 1._o de_fw-fr reform_v sixtus_n 4_o ca._n grave_n nimis_fw-la de_fw-fr reliq_n or_o erroneous_a or_o rash_a which_o warrant_v widdrington_n have_v not_o for_o his_o opinion_n rather_o the_o church_n have_v condemn_v it_o in_o counsel_n and_o practice_n as_o we_o have_v show_v who_o be_v then_o so_o hardy_a or_o rather_o so_o rash_a that_o dare_v swear_v absolute_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o depose_v prince_n or_o dispose_v of_o their_o kingdom_n the_o contrary_a being_n not_o only_o probable_a yea_o more_o probable_a which_o widdrington_n can_v not_o deny_v but_o also_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o so_o near_o concern_v faith_n as_o the_o argument_n and_o authority_n produce_v do_v warrant_n that_o cardinal_n allan_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o libeller_n say_v 4._o chap._n 4._o it_o concern_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o power_n apostolical_a 259._o apol._n pro_fw-la card._n bellar._n cap._n 6._o cont_n 4._o pag._n 259._o and_o schulkennius_n very_o well_o aver_v the_o contrary_a be_v either_o heretical_a or_o erroneous_a and_o temerarious_a either_o of_o which_o be_v enough_o to_o deter_v any_o timorous_a conscience_n but_o be_v it_o that_o the_o opinion_n which_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o some_o case_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n be_v but_o probable_a yet_o see_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v probable_a may_v be_v true_a and_o if_o it_o be_v the_o more_o common_a and_o probable_a opinion_n as_o widdrington_n deny_v not_o but_o that_o this_o opinion_n of_o depose_v prince_n be_v it_o be_v most_o like_a to_o be_v true_a it_o follow_v consequent_o that_o he_o that_o abiur_v this_o probable_a yea_o more_o probable_a opinion_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v in_o some_o case_n depose_v prince_n expose_v himself_o to_o probable_a danger_n of_o swear_v false_a and_o abiur_v the_o truth_n and_o so_o be_v perjure_a because_o qui_fw-la amat_fw-la periculum_fw-la in_o illo_fw-la peribit_fw-la 3_o eccl._n 3_o he_o that_o love_v danger_n shall_v perish_v therein_o out_o of_o which_o word_n divine_n do_v prove_v that_o he_o who_o witting_o and_o willing_o expose_v himself_o to_o probable_a danger_n of_o any_o sin_n be_v guilty_a before_o god_n of_o that_o sin_n as_o if_o he_o have_v actuallie_o commit_v 19_o certes_o if_o verity_n be_v a_o necessary_a companion_n of_o a_o lawful_a oath_n no_o man_n can_v swear_v more_o than_o he_o think_v there_o be_v verity_n in_o the_o thing_n he_o swear_v wherefore_o that_o he_o may_v swear_v that_o this_o opinion_n be_v probable_a he_o must_v in_o conscience_n think_v it_o at_o least_o probable_a which_o if_o he_o ponder_v the_o authority_n which_o above_o i_o have_v produce_v for_o the_o contrary_a he_o can_v not_o possible_o and_o with_o any_o reason_n think_v to_o swear_v that_o he_o think_v it_o not_o only_o probable_a but_o also_o absolute_o and_o undoubted_o true_a he_o must_v in_o conscience_n be_v so_o persuade_v else_o he_o shall_v swear_v against_o his_o conscience_n and_o otherwise_o then_o in_o his_o conscience_n be_v true_a and_o how_o can_v he_o persuade_v himself_o so_o full_o as_o to_o swear_v that_o from_o his_o hart_n and_o before_o god_n he_o think_v and_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o no_o case_n can_v depose_v prince_n or_o dispose_v of_o their_o dominion_n he_o know_v that_o so_o many_o and_o with_o so_o great_a reason_n hold_v the_o contrary_a who_o be_v as_o likely_a and_o as_o far_o more_o likely_a not_o to_o be_v deceive_v than_o he_o as_o they_o have_v more_o reason_n and_o authority_n for_o their_o opinion_n than_o he_o 20._o 63._o pag._n 62._o and_o pag._n 63._o widdrington_n in_o his_o newyearesgift_n answer_v that_o whatsoever_o opinion_n a_o man_n follow_v in_o speculation_n concern_v the_o pope_n authority_n to_o deprive_v prince_n yet_o he_o may_v as_o certain_o acknowledge_v and_o swear_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o depose_v the_o king_n that_o be_v to_o practice_v his_o deposition_n as_o it_o be_v clear_a and_o manifest_a that_o he_o may_v certain_o acknowledge_v and_o swear_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o commit_v open_a injustice_n and_o that_o in_o a_o doubtful_a uncertain_a and_o disputable_a case_n the_o condition_n of_o the_o possessor_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v but_o although_o widdrington_n make_v great_a account_v of_o this_o answer_n yet_o it_o will_v be_v find_v defective_a for_o first_o widdrington_n be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o power_n and_o exercise_v of_o the_o power_n be_v two_o thing_n which_o also_o may_v be_v separate_v for_o we_o have_v the_o power_n of_o see_v when_o we_o sleep_v but_o not_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o &_o we_o have_v the_o power_n of_o walk_v when_o we_o repose_v ourselves_o on_o our_o bed_n and_o yet_o then_o we_o walk_v not_o and_o so_o the_o power_n of_o excommunicate_v and_o depose_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o be_v a_o other_o and_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n may_v have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v and_o yet_o not_o exercise_v that_o power_n and_o the_o pope_n may_v have_v power_n to_o depose_v although_o he_o do_v not_o actuallie_o depose_v any_o second_o widdrington_n know_v that_o a_o man_n may_v have_v the_o power_n to_o do_v a_o thing_n validlie_o that_o be_v so_o as_o the_o thing_n donne_fw-fr shall_v stand_v in_o force_n and_o yet_o not_o lawful_o that_o be_v with_o out_z sin_n as_o for_o example_n the_o prelate_n or_o sovereign_a prince_n who_o have_v authority_n to_o dispense_v in_o positive_a law_n subject_a to_o their_o authority_n if_o they_o dispense_v with_o out_o just_a cause_n the_o dispensation_n according_a to_o the_o probable_a opinion_n of_o diverse_a divine_n be_v valid_a and_o of_o force_n and_o free_v the_o dispense_v in_o conscience_n dispensatio_fw-la soto_n li._n 1_o de_fw-la justitia_fw-la &_o jure_fw-la q._n 7_o a._n 3._o silu_a &_o angelus_n v._o dispensatio_fw-la but_o it_o be_v unlawful_a and_o the_o dispenser_n sin_v so_o the_o pope_n or_o bishop_n may_v sometime_o excommunicate_v validlie_a and_o yet_o not_o lawful_o for_o divine_n affirm_v excommunication_n may_v be_v three_o way_n unjust_a exit_fw-la animo_fw-la when_o there_o be_v just_a cause_n to_o excommunicate_v but_o the_o bishop_n who_o excommunicate_v do_v it_o not_o out_o of_o zeal_n of_o justice_n or_o desire_v of_o amendment_n but_o out_o of_o envy_n hatred_n or_o malice_n exit_fw-la ordine_fw-la when_o the_o bishop_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o excommunicate_v but_o observe_v not_o the_o order_n of_o canonical_a premonition_n which_o be_v to_o be_v do_v thrice_o or_o once_o for_o thrice_o exit_fw-la caviâ_fw-la when_o there_o be_v no_o just_a cause_n the_o first_o excommunication_n be_v always_o valid_a 7._o lib._n 1._o thesauri_fw-la ●●suum_fw-la ●●●sci_fw-la entia_fw-la ca._n 7._o but_o unlawful_a so_o be_v ordinary_o the_o second_o as_o note_v sayrus_n our_o country_n man_n the_o three_o be_v not_o only_o unlawful_a but_o also_o invalid_a and_o of_o no_o force_n so_o also_o the_o pope_n may_v depose_v validlie_o and_o yet_o not_o lawful_o or_o without_o sin_n for_o if_o the_o prince_n give_v sufficient_a cause_n of_o deposition_n and_o the_o pope_n notwithstanding_o shall_v as_o such_o a_o superior_a be_v not_o easy_o to_o be_v think_v so_o to_o do_v depose_v the_o prince_n out_o of_o hatred_n or_o envy_n or_o else_o when_o prudence_n will_v have_v he_o to_o tolerate_v the_o prince_n for_o fear_n of_o garboil_n and_o great_a hurt_n the_o deposition_n shall_v be_v valid_a and_o of_o force_n but_o yet_o unlawful_a and_o sinful_a wherefore_o see_v that_o in_o this_o second_o clause_n we_o be_v to_o swear_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o power_n or_o authority_n to_o depose_v the_o king_n or_o to_o dispose_v of_o his_o majesty_n kingdom_n or_o dominion_n etc._n etc._n although_o perchance_o he_o can_v not_o now_o as_o thing_n stand_v lawful_o exercise_v his_o power_n in_o depose_v a_o absolute_a prince_n because_o much_o more_o hurt_v then_o good_a may_v come_v of_o it_o yet_o if_o it_o be_v
man_n even_o he_o that_o think_v it_o by_o intrinsical_a principle_n of_o reason_n and_o argument_n to_o be_v false_a frame_v a_o conscience_n that_o it_o be_v probable_a for_o the_o extrinsecall_v principle_n as_o the_o multitude_n learning_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o author_n that_o hold_v it_o and_o consequent_o may_v swear_v that_o he_o for_o these_o principle_n think_v it_o probable_a yet_o he_o can_v not_o swear_v as_o be_v command_v by_o this_o oath_n from_o his_o hart_n and_o before_o god_n that_o widdringtons_n opinion_n be_v true_a and_o that_o therefore_o absolute_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v a_o prince_n for_o any_o heresy_n or_o rebellion_n against_o the_o church_n because_o as_o be_v before_o say_v he_o know_v that_o many_o hold_v contrary_a to_o widdrington_n and_o that_o far_o more_o be_v against_o he_o then_o with_o he_o who_o be_v as_o likely_a yea_o more_o likely_a to_o have_v find_v out_o the_o truth_n than_o he_o he_o can_v not_o swear_v absolute_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o in_o any_o case_n depose_v prince_n for_o that_o be_v to_o swear_v that_o a_o thing_n false_a as_o i_o have_v prove_v or_o at_o least_o but_o probable_a as_o widdrington_n confess_v be_v so_o certain_a that_o the_o contrary_n be_v most_o certain_o false_a which_o be_v to_o swear_v a_o untruth_n and_o to_o commit_v perjury_n for_o as_o it_o be_v perjury_n to_o swear_v that_o that_o be_v true_a which_o we_o know_v to_o be_v false_a so_o be_v it_o perjury_n to_o swear_v that_o to_o be_v absolute_o true_a which_o yet_o be_v doubtful_a or_o at_o least_o but_o probable_a 23._o hence_o may_v easy_o be_v gather_v that_o this_o clause_n of_o the_o oath_n want_v all_o the_o three_o companion_n of_o a_o lawful_a oath_n and_o so_o can_v be_v take_v first_o it_o want_v judgement_n because_o in_o deed_n as_o appear_v by_o my_o former_a argument_n there_o be_v no_o just_a cause_n or_o reason_n to_o swear_v that_o it_o be_v probable_a much_o less_o that_o it_o be_v assure_v which_o be_v even_o by_o widdringtons_n own_o acknowledgement_n but_o probable_a and_o so_o it_o be_v rash_a and_o want_v judgement_n second_o it_o want_v verity_n for_o beside_o that_o i_o have_v prove_v above_o that_o widdringtons_n opinion_n be_v false_a derogate_a to_o faith_n and_o church_n yea_o scripture_n and_o reason_n and_o consequent_o that_o to_o swear_v that_o it_o be_v true_a be_v to_o swear_v a_o untruth_n and_o to_o commit_v perjury_n widdrington_n himself_o confess_v his_o opinion_n be_v but_o probable_a and_o consequent_o to_o swear_v that_o it_o be_v undoubtedlie_o true_a and_o the_o contrary_a false_a be_v to_o swear_v also_o a_o untruth_n because_o it_o be_v false_a that_o that_o which_o be_v but_o probable_a be_v assure_o true_a thirdlie_o this_o clause_n want_v justice_n because_o it_o be_v a_o injury_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o swear_v absolute_o that_o he_o have_v no_o power_n nor_o authority_n to_o depose_v prince_n he_o have_v so_o assure_v and_o at_o least_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v so_o probable_a claim_n and_o title_n to_o this_o authority_n supra_fw-la widdr._fw-la supra_fw-la even_o by_o widdrington_n his_o own_o confession_n who_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o pope_n who_o depose_a prince_n follow_v a_o probable_a opinion_n although_o he_o must_v also_o faith_n that_o all_o those_o pope_n though_o holy_a and_o learned_a commit_v great_a in_o justice_n in_o depose_v they_o they_o be_v in_o possession_n and_o have_v also_o probable_a right_n if_o those_o pope_n have_v but_o probable_a authority_n as_o above_o i_o have_v declare_v 24._o this_o may_v serve_v to_o reject_v this_o clause_n as_o altogether_o unlawful_a to_o be_v swear_v but_o yet_o for_o more_o full_a satisfaction_n of_o catholic_n in_o this_o point_n i_o will_v bring_v another_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o can_v not_o in_o conscience_n be_v swear_v because_o this_o clause_n import_v that_o the_o pope_n neither_o by_o himself_o nor_o by_o any_o another_o authority_n or_o mean_n can_v depose_v the_o king_n or_o dispose_v of_o any_o of_o his_o majesty_n dominion_n or_o authorise_v any_o foreign_a prince_n to_o annoy_v he_o or_o invade_v his_o country_n or_o discharge_v any_o of_o his_o subject_n of_o their_o allegiance_n or_o to_o give_v licence_n or_o leave_v to_o any_o of_o they_o to_o bear_v arm_n raise_v tumult_n or_o offer_v violence_n or_o hurt_n to_o his_o majesty_n royal_a person_n state_n or_o government_n or_o any_o his_o majesty_n subject_n etc._n etc._n wherein_o also_o be_v such_o difficulty_n that_o i_o can_v not_o see_v how_o in_o a_o matter_n so_o doubtful_a or_o not_o so_o certain_a a_o man_n may_v swear_v so_o peremptory_o and_o undoubted_o who_o so_o please_v to_o read_v franciscus_n de_fw-fr victoria_n that_o learned_a dominican_n shall_v find_v that_o he_o set_v down_o diverse_a title_n by_o which_o the_o spaniard_n may_v just_o invade_v &_o subdue_v the_o indian_n which_o title_n whether_o any_o christian_a prince_n may_v have_v to_o invade_v england_n or_o any_o other_o country_n i_o will_v not_o dispute_v but_o only_o allege_v they_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o evident_a that_o a_o man_n may_v take_v this_o clause_n of_o the_o oath_n in_o so_o general_a term_n as_o be_v lie_v victoria_n his_o opinion_n be_v no_o way_n condemn_v but_o rather_o approve_a by_o many_o hispanorum_fw-la victoria_fw-la relect._n de_fw-la indis_fw-la insulanis_fw-la &_o titulis_fw-la quibus_fw-la barbari_fw-la potuerint_fw-la venire_fw-la inditionem_fw-la hispanorum_fw-la 25._o the_o first_o title_n pertain_v to_o this_o matter_n which_o victoria_n allege_v be_v the_o authority_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v to_o send_v preacher_n even_o to_o infidel_n much_o more_o to_o christian_a country_n that_o be_v heretic_n because_o over_o these_o he_o have_v spiritual_a jurisdiction_n and_o although_o pagan_n can_v not_o be_v compel_v to_o embrace_v christian_a faith_n yet_o the_o christian_a preacher_n after_o they_o have_v give_v reason_n of_o their_o embassage_n may_v preach_v by_o that_o authority_n which_o christ_n give_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o successor_n when_o he_o say_v euntes_fw-la docete_fw-la omnes_fw-la gentes_fw-la baptizantes_fw-la eos_fw-la etc._n etc._n 28_o mat._n 28_o go_v therefore_o teach_v you_o all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o etc._n etc._n and_o if_o the_o pagan_n will_v hinder_v their_o preach_n or_o after_o they_o have_v preach_v hinder_v the_o conversion_n of_o infidel_n and_o the_o fruit_n of_o preach_v they_o may_v with_o the_o soldier_n who_o they_o carry_v with_o they_o force_v they_o to_o permit_v they_o to_o preach_v and_o to_o permit_v all_o that_o will_v to_o hear_v they_o and_o not_o to_o hinder_v their_o spiritual_a good_a and_o conversion_n and_o if_o otherwise_o they_o can_v pursue_v nor_o defend_v this_o their_o right_n they_o may_v make_v war_n upon_o those_o that_o hinder_v they_o and_o pursue_v all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v lawful_a in_o a_o just_a war_n and_o by_o this_o title_n say_v victoria_n the_o spaniard_n may_v make_v war_n upon_o the_o indian_n if_o otherwise_o they_o can_v not_o preach_v the_o christian_a faith_n nor_o withstand_v the_o obstinate_a pagan_n who_o will_v hinder_v their_o conversion_n that_o desire_v to_o be_v christian_n and_o thus_o victoria_n will_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v send_v preacher_n to_o england_n and_o may_v desire_v and_o licence_v some_o catholic_a prince_n to_o assist_v and_o defend_v the_o preacher_n in_o procure_v heretic_n conversion_n and_o if_o any_o heretic_n will_v not_o permit_v the_o catholic_a doctor_n to_o preach_v or_o will_v hinder_v the_o conversion_n of_o those_o that_o will_v be_v catholic_n the_o foreign_a prince_n licence_v by_o the_o pope_n may_v in_o manner_n aforesaid_a as_o victoria_n think_v for_o i_o will_v say_v nothing_o of_o myself_o make_v war_n upon_o the_o english_a and_o see_v that_o war_n can_v unless_o by_o reason_n of_o ignorance_n be_v just_a on_o both_o side_n the_o english_a especial_o who_o be_v catholic_n can_v not_o defend_v those_o that_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o this_o prince_n who_o assi_v the_o preacher_n thus_o will_v he_o say_v but_o as_o i_o so_o honour_v my_o prince_n and_o love_v my_o country_n that_o i_o desire_v not_o that_o any_o such_o title_n shall_v take_v place_n in_o england_n so_o i_o will_v not_o dispute_v of_o it_o 26._o another_o title_n say_v victoria_n by_o which_o the_o spaniard_n may_v make_v war_n on_o the_o indian_n be_v if_o after_o some_o of_o they_o be_v convert_v to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n the_o other_o will_v force_v they_o to_o idolatry_n for_o then_o say_v he_o the_o spaniard_n may_v by_o arm_n defend_v they_o they_o be_v become_v now_o their_o friend_n and_o fellow_n 27._o a_o three_o title_n say_v he_o may_v be_v this_o if_o the_o indian_n by_o lawful_a or_o unlawful_a mean_n that_o be_v by_o peaceble_a preach_n
fire_n to_o the_o straw_n there_o be_v great_a difference_n because_o he_o that_o appli_v the_o fire_n give_v no_o force_n nor_o activity_n to_o the_o fire_n &_o so_o his_o application_n be_v but_o conditio_fw-la sine_fw-la qua_fw-la non_fw-la and_o he_o be_v causa_fw-la per_fw-la accidens_fw-la but_o the_o commander_n sometime_o give_v authority_n and_o always_o give_v moral_a influence_n and_o motion_n as_o do_v the_o principal_a cause_n to_o the_o instrument_n and_o so_o he_o be_v a_o principal_a cause_n and_o causa_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la 38._o wherefore_o to_o clear_v the_o matter_n more_o i_o will_v distinguish_v three_o kind_n of_o commander_n the_o first_o be_v a_o unlawful_a commander_n the_o second_o a_o lawful_a commander_n who_o have_v authority_n to_o command_v one_o to_o do_v a_o thing_n but_o can_v not_o do_v it_o himself_o the_o three_o be_v a_o commander_n who_o have_v authority_n not_o only_o to_o command_v another_o but_o may_v also_o by_o himself_o do_v the_o thing_n command_v if_o he_o will_n and_o these_o be_v absolute_o call_v cause_n and_o cause_n principal_a and_o per_fw-la se_fw-la though_o not_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n in_o the_o first_o kind_n be_v comprehend_v all_o lord_n or_o master_n who_o command_v their_o servant_n or_o minister_n to_o kill_v they_o who_o they_o themselves_o have_v no_o authority_n to_o kill_v so_o if_o a_o captain_n shall_v command_v his_o man_n to_o kill_v his_o enemy_n or_o one_o that_o stand_v in_o his_o way_n of_o preferment_n or_o one_o who_o wife_n or_o purse_n he_o desire_v to_o have_v he_o be_v say_v common_o to_o be_v the_o principal_a cause_n 3._o antonin_n lib._n 4._o tit_n 13._o part_n 7._o lib._n 5._o tit_n 15._o part_n eadem_fw-la mercado_n lib._n 6._o sum._n cap._n 7._o vasq_n in_o opusc_n de_fw-fr restit_fw-la c._n 9_o this_o 1._o dub_v 3._o &_o the_o servant_n though_o he_o be_v a_o physical_a cause_n yet_o he_o be_v but_o a_o ministerial_a and_o instrumental_a cause_n of_o the_o murder_n and_o though_o he_o have_v no_o true_a authority_n from_o his_o master_n yet_o he_o have_v as_o i_o say_v moral_a influence_n and_o do_v the_o effect_n by_o virtue_n of_o that_o moral_a influence_n which_o move_v he_o and_o therefore_o if_o any_o restitution_n be_v to_o be_v make_v he_o be_v bind_v principal_o and_o in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o restore_v and_o his_o servant_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o restitution_n but_o in_o defect_n of_o his_o master_n who_o be_v the_o principal_a cause_n and_o give_v moral_a influence_n and_o motion_n to_o his_o servant_n although_o the_o servant_n also_o because_o he_o be_v bind_v not_o to_o obey_v his_o master_n shall_v endure_v the_o punishment_n due_a to_o murderer_n by_o the_o law_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o d●●uines_n and_o canonist_n do_v affirm_v that_o if_o the_o commander_n do_v recall_v his_o commandment_n before_o his_o servant_n have_v do_v the_o murder_n the_o servant_n than_o shall_v be_v the_o principal_a and_o sole_a cause_n because_o after_o the_o commandment_n be_v recall_v he_o do_v the_o murder_n of_o his_o own_o authority_n have_v now_o no_o moral_a influence_n or_o motion_n from_o his_o master_n and_o so_o then_o he_o only_o be_v cause_n of_o the_o murder_n not_o his_o master_n he_o only_o be_v bind_v to_o restitution_n if_o any_o be_v require_v not_o his_o master_n and_o he_o only_o in_o the_o inward_a court_n of_o conscience_n deserve_v hang_v not_o his_o master_n though_o the_o external_a court_n oftentimes_o when_o it_o presume_v that_o the_o master_n do_v not_o revoke_v his_o commandment_n will_v pronounce_v sentence_n also_o against_o the_o master_n in_o the_o second_o kind_n be_v the_o confessarius_fw-la who_o according_a to_o the_o common_a opinion_n in_o the_o sacrarnent_n of_o confession_n can_v command_v his_o penitent_a to_o give_v alm_n and_o his_o penitent_n be_v borind_v in_o conscience_n to_o give_v the_o alm_n be_v it_o money_n bread_n corn_n or_o such_o like_a good_n and_o yet_o the_o penitent_a do_v not_o loose_a dominion_n of_o those_o good_n though_o he_o sin_n in_o not_o give_v they_o to_o the_o poor_a and_o so_o the_o confessari●us_n can_v not_o justly_o take_v they_o from_o he_o in_o the_o three_o kind_n be_v prince_n who_o give_v authority_n to_o their_o judge_n to_o condemn_v to_o death_n and_o by_o they_o or_o other_o his_o officer_n to_o the_o hangman_n to_o punish_v and_o hang_v malefactor_n because_o although_o it_o be_v not_o convenient_a for_o the_o king_n person_n to_o execute_v any_o immediate_o himself_o yet_o as_o he_o command_v and_o give_v authority_n to_o other_o so_o he_o may_v do_v that_o act_n of_o justice_n himself_o so_o the_o pope_n or_o bishop_n who_o give_v authority_n to_o other_o to_o hear_v confession_n may_v themselves_o hear_v confession_n though_o because_o of_o their_o other_o affair_n they_o use_v not_o so_o to_o do_v 39_o this_o distinction_n of_o commander_n suppose_v although_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o authority_n of_o himself_o to_o depose_v a_o prince_n yet_o if_o he_o can_v command_v the_o common_a wealth_n in_o some_o case_n to_o depose_v the_o prince_n as_o widdrington_n grant_v he_o can_v he_o shall_v be_v a_o true_a moral_n and_o principal_a cause_n of_o the_o deposition_n because_o he_o shall_v not_o only_o give_v moral_a influence_n to_o the_o common_a wealth_n to_o depose_v for_o that_o even_o a_o unlawful_a commander_n do_v but_o he_o shall_v also_o give_v authority_n to_o the_o common_a wealth_n for_o although_o the_o common_a wealth_n have_v of_o itself_o authority_n to_o depose_v a_o prince_n in_o some_o case_n and_o have_v not_o this_o authority_n from_o the_o pope_n if_o the_o pope_n have_v authority_n to_o command_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o common_a wealth_n obey_v his_o commandment_n and_o authority_n do_v depose_v by_o his_o authority_n and_o this_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v depose_v a_o prince_n mediatlie_o by_o the_o common_a wealth_n i_o prove_v out_o of_o widdrington_n himself_o who_o to_o confirm_v his_o own_o opinion_n which_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v a_o prince_n allege_v joannes_n parisiensis_fw-la who_o write_v thus_o as_o widdrington_n allege_v he_o 7._o apud_fw-la widdr_n disp_n th._n ca._n 3._o ser_n 3._o n._n 7._o si_fw-mi rex_fw-la est_fw-la haereticus_fw-la &_o incorrigibilis_fw-la &_o contemptor_n ecclesi●sticae_fw-la censurae_fw-la poor_a papa_n aliquid_fw-la facere_fw-la in_o populo_fw-la unde_fw-la privaretur_fw-la ille_fw-la saeculari_fw-la honore_fw-la &_o deponeretur_fw-la a_o populo_fw-la excommunicando_fw-la scilicet_fw-la eos_fw-la omnes_fw-la ad_fw-la quos_fw-la spectat_fw-la regem_fw-la deponere_fw-la qui_fw-la ei_fw-la ut_fw-la domino_fw-la obedirent_fw-la if_o a_o king_n be_v a_o heretic_n and_o incorrigible_a and_o a_o contemner_n of_o the_o church_n censure_n the_o pope_n may_v do_v some_o thing_n in_o the_o people_n whereby_o he_o shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o his_o secular_a honour_n and_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o people_n to_o wit_n by_o excommunicate_v all_o those_o to_o who_o it_o appertain_v to_o depose_v the_o king_n who_o shall_v obey_v he_o as_o lord_n out_o of_o this_o aurhour_n who_o widdrington_n allege_v as_o a_o favourer_n of_o his_o opinion_n i_o can_v easy_o deduce_v that_o which_o widdrington_n deny_v to_o wit_n that_o though_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o by_o himself_o depose_v a_o prince_n yet_o he_o may_v by_o the_o common_a wealth_n because_o if_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o only_o command_v the_o common_a wealth_n but_o also_o excommunicate_a all_o those_o subject_n that_o obey_v such_o a_o prince_n he_o can_v compelle_fw-fr they_o to_o deny_v obedience_n to_o he_o unless_o they_o will_v be_v separate_v by_o excommunication_n from_o the_o church_n out_o of_o which_o be_v no_o salvation_n if_o then_o any_o one_o will_v complain_v of_o that_o common_a wealth_n for_o depose_v their_o prince_n and_o deny_v obedience_n unto_o he_o the_o people_n may_v answer_v that_o the_o pope_n compel_v they_o so_o to_o do_v and_o to_o leave_v the_o king_n unless_o they_o will_v leave_v the_o church_n whence_o follow_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o that_o case_n shall_v be_v true_o say_v to_o have_v be_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o deposition_n because_o he_o compel_v the_o commonwealth_n to_o depose_v he_o if_o widdrington_n shall_v say_v to_o his_o man_n kill_v such_o a_o one_o or_o i_o will_v kill_v thou_o who_o doubt_v but_o that_o widdrington_n shall_v be_v count_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o murder_n wherefore_o see_v that_o this_o author_n who_o widdrington_n produce_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v say_v to_o the_o commonwealth_n to_o who_o it_o appertain_v to_o depose_v the_o prince_n depose_v your_o prince_n or_o i_o will_v separate_v you_o from_o the_o church_n by_o excommunication_n 3._o aug._n lib._n cont_n advers_a leg_n &_o prophet_n ca._n 17._o serm_n 68_o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la apost_n ca._n omnis_fw-la christianus_n 11._o q._n
or_o be_v take_v copulativelie_a in_o the_o clause_n allege_v as_o for_o example_n if_o one_o shall_v say_v it_o be_v heretical_a to_o say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v steal_v or_o commit_v advoutrie_n in_o that_o proposition_n or_o be_v take_v disiunctivelie_a and_o the_o proposition_n import_v that_o it_o be_v heretical_a to_o say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v either_o steal_v or_o commit_v advoutrie_n or_o because_o he_o may_v say_v this_o be_v true_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o matter_n not_o of_o the_o form_n if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o dear_a as_o heresy_n that_o position_n which_o say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v baptize_v of_o a_o heretieke_a either_o lawful_o or_o validlie_o be_v it_o not_o a_o false_a and_o heretical_a detestation_n and_o yet_o by_o reason_n of_o one_o part_n of_o the_o disiunctive_a proposition_n to_o wit_n or_o validlie_o the_o very_a like_a as_o who_o so_o mark_v shall_v perceive_v be_v the_o proposition_n allege_v and_o therefore_o it_o import_v that_o it_o be_v a_o heretical_a proposition_n to_o say_v that_o prince_n excommunicate_v and_o deprive_v by_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v either_o depose_v or_o kill_v whence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o party_n who_o swear_v that_o clause_n shall_v swear_v that_o it_o be_v heretical_a to_o say_v that_o prince_n excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v depose_v which_o notwithstanding_o be_v no_o where_o condemn_v as_o heretical_a yea_o be_v decree_v by_o general_n counsel_n and_o practise_v by_o many_o holy_a and_o learned_a pope_n allow_v of_o by_o common_a consent_n and_o last_o confess_v by_o widdrington_n himself_o as_o probable_a 50._o secondlie_o see_v that_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n be_v often_o yea_o ordinary_o take_v in_o a_o disiunctive_a meaning_n it_o make_v this_o clause_n at_o least_o doubtful_a whether_o it_o also_o be_v not_o take_v disiunctivelie_o and_o so_o import_v that_o it_o be_v heretical_a to_o say_v that_o a_o prince_n excommunicate_v may_v be_v depose_v and_o see_v that_o no_o man_n can_v swear_v a_o doubtful_a thing_n lest_o he_o expose_v himself_o to_o perjury_n in_o swear_v false_a and_o consequent_o make_v himself_o guilty_a indeed_o of_o perjury_n because_o every_o one_o be_v esteem_v guilty_a of_o that_o sin_n or_o crime_n 3._o eccles_n 3._o to_o which_o he_o expose_v himself_o and_o qui_fw-la amat_fw-la periculum_fw-la in_fw-la illo_fw-la peribit_fw-la ht_o that_o love_v danger_n shall_v perish_v in_o it_o therefore_o he_o can_v not_o swear_v this_o clause_n have_v no_o better_a assurance_n for_o the_o truth_n thereof_o then_o as_o yet_o widdrington_n or_o any_o other_o can_v allege_v which_o be_v none_o at_o all_o and_o so_o long_o remain_v at_o the_o least_o doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a thirdlie_o widdrington_n in_o this_o his_o explication_n do_v evidentlie_o eontradict_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o king_n majesty_n parliament_n &_o author_n of_o the_o oath_n for_o their_o intention_n as_o we_o have_v see_v above_o be_v to_o secure_v the_o prince_n not_o only_o from_o kill_v but_o also_o &_o especial_o from_o deprivation_n and_o deposition_n partly_o because_o a_o king_n ordinary_o will_v choose_v as_o willingelie_o to_o be_v kill_v as_o to_o be_v deprive_v and_o depose_v he_o by_o deposition_n or_o deprivation_n be_v make_v of_o a_o king_n no_o king_n but_o a_o private_a man_n partly_o because_o when_o he_o be_v once_o deprive_v or_o depose_v he_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v kill_v by_o his_o subject_n if_o he_o persist_v in_o government_n for_o than_o they_o who_o hold_v his_o deposition_n to_o be_v of_o force_n do_v hold_v he_o as_o a_o invader_n so_o that_o widdrington_n by_o this_o exposition_n make_v the_o swearer_n to_o swear_v only_o that_o the_o king_n excommunicate_v can_v be_v kill_v secure_v he_o not_o from_o deposition_n or_o deprivation_n no_o nor_o from_o kill_v as_o i_o have_v show_v and_o so_o make_v the_o oath_n frustrate_v secure_v not_o the_o king_n and_o contradict_v the_o king_n and_o parliament_n intention_n which_o they_o have_v in_o frame_v propose_v and_o command_v this_o oath_n to_o be_v take_v thereby_o to_o secure_v the_o king_n 51._o fourthlie_o although_o for_o the_o respect_n i_o owe_v and_o bear_v to_o prince_n and_o especial_o to_o my_o own_o natural_a liege_n i_o will_v not_o aver_v that_o prince_n persist_v in_o possession_n and_o government_n of_o their_o kingdom_n after_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v excommunicate_v and_o deprive_v they_o may_v be_v depose_v and_o kill_v also_o by_o their_o former_a subject_n or_o any_o other_o power_n or_o potentate_n yet_o see_v that_o many_o do_v affirm_v and_o hold_v it_o who_o opinion_n notwithstanding_o be_v no_o way_n censure_v for_o heretical_a or_o so_o much_o as_o temerarious_a or_o erroneous_a i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o that_o position_n though_o take_v in_o widdringtons_n sense_n and_o meaning_n can_v be_v abjure_v as_o heretical_a i_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v condemn_v as_o heresy_n in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n 15._o council_n constant_n sess_v 15._o to_o say_v that_o quilibet_fw-la tyrannus_n potest_fw-la &_o debet_fw-la licitè_fw-fr &_o meritoriè_fw-la occidi_fw-la per_fw-la quemlibet_fw-la vasallum_n suum_fw-la vel_fw-la subditum_fw-la etc._n etc._n every_o tyrant_n may_v and_o ought_v lawful_o and_o meritorious_o be_v kill_v by_o every_o one_o of_o his_o vasall_n or_o subject_n even_o by_o secret_a wile_n or_o ambushement_n and_o by_o crafty_a enticement_n and_o adulation_n notwithstanding_o whatsoever_o oath_n or_o covenant_n or_o without_o expect_v the_o sentence_n or_o commandment_n of_o whatsoever_o judge_n but_o this_o be_v understand_v of_o he_o who_o be_v true_a king_n but_o govern_v tyrannical_o who_o can_v not_o be_v kill_v by_o any_o one_o of_o his_o vasall_n or_o subject_n and_o not_o of_o every_o tyrant_n for_o if_o the_o tyrant_n be_v a_o open_a invader_n and_o usurper_n of_o the_o crown_n without_o all_o title_n than_o according_a to_o the_o citandos_fw-la †_o vide_fw-la d._n tho._n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la regim_fw-la princip_n c._n 6._o caiet_fw-mi 2.2_o q._n 64._o a._n 3_o &_o arragon_n ibid._n sayr_n lib._n 7._o claeu_n regiae_n cap._n 10._o vu_fw-la 4._o &_o reliquos_fw-la infra_fw-la citandos_fw-la common_a opinion_n every_o one_o of_o the_o realm_n have_v iustum_fw-la bellum_fw-la just_a war_n against_o he_o and_o so_o may_v kill_v he_o by_o way_n of_o defence_n yea_o although_o the_o tyrant_n have_v just_a title_n and_o so_o be_v true_a king_n yet_o if_o he_o tyrannize_v in_o government_n not_o howsoever_o for_o 2._o *_o ronvere_n 13._o 1._o pet._n 2._o evil_a king_n must_v be_v bear_v withal_o and_o aught_o to_o be_v obey_v but_o intolerable_o and_o so_o as_o the_o common_a wealth_n can_v not_o consist_v under_o he_o that_o then_o not_o particular_a subject_n but_o the_o common_a wealth_n after_o sufficient_a admonition_n may_v by_o common_a consent_n public_a authority_n and_o public_a sentence_n depose_v he_o as_o for_o example_n if_o the_o prince_n shall_v uniuste_o kill_v all_o his_o nobility_n cause_n their_o wife_n to_o be_v ravish_v massacre_v their_o child_n ransack_v their_o house_n and_o family_n and_o withal_o give_v their_o land_n and_o live_n to_o other_o &_o for_o no_o offence_n also_o but_o out_o of_o his_o own_o humour_n then_o say_v diverse_a author_n the_o common_a wealth_n as_o she_o make_v he_o king_n for_o although_o some_o be_v king_n by_o succession_n yet_o the_o first_o king_n as_o before_o be_v declare_v if_o he_o be_v lawful_a come_v to_o the_o crown_n by_o election_n of_o the_o people_n so_o by_o the_o same_o power_n which_o in_o case_n of_o intolerable_a tyranny_n return_v again_o unto_o she_o she_o may_v depose_v he_o and_z if_o after_o deposition_n he_o persist_v she_o may_v kill_v he_o if_o otherwise_o she_o find_v no_o mean_n to_o resist_v he_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o many_o of_o the_o offic_n the_o zen●phon_n lib._n the_o tyrant_n arist_n lib._n 2._o polit._n cap._n 5._o &_o li_z 5._o cap._n 10._o &_o 11._o cic._n lib._n 3._o the_o offic_n ancient_a philosopher_n and_o this_o also_o many_o christian_a 4._o christian_a gigas_fw-la paridius_n de_fw-fr puteo_fw-la &_o alij_fw-la citati_fw-la a_o suar._n lib._n 6._o defence_n fidei_fw-la cathol_a c._n 4._o lawyer_n and_o learned_a verò_fw-la learned_a d._n tho._n citat_fw-la in_o 2_o d._n ult._n q._n 2_o be_v 2._o ad_fw-la 5._o gerson_n par_fw-fr 4_o tract_n contra_fw-la adulatores_fw-la consid_fw-la 7._o sotus_n lib._n 5._o the_o just_a q._n 1._o be_v 3._o bannes_n 2.2_o q_o 64._o a_o 3._o dub_v 1._o §_o sed_fw-la quaeret_fw-la aliquis_fw-la valentia_n to_o 3._o disp_n 5_o q._n 8_o p._n 3._o §._o si_fw-mi est_fw-fr tyrannus_n molina_n to_o 4._o the_o just_a tract_n 3._o disp_n 6._o n._n 2._o tolet_n lib._n 5._o summa_fw-la cap._n 6_o num_fw-la 17._o sa_o in_o aphorismis_n v._o tyrannus_n num_fw-la 2._o lessius_fw-la lib._n 2._o the_o just_a &_o jure_fw-la cap._n 9_o
dub_v 4._o num_fw-la 12._o suar._n lib._n 6._o defence_n fidei_fw-la cap._n 4._o estius_n in_o 2._o do_v 44._o §._o 2_o vers_n utrum_fw-la verò_fw-la divine_n do_v maintain_v yea_o this_o 3._o this_o disput_fw-la theol._n cap._n 3._o sect_n 4_o n._n 3._o widdrington_n himself_o dare_v not_o deny_v for_o say_v he_o i_o do_v not_o absolute_o profess_v testify_v and_o declare_v that_o the_o civil_a common_a wealth_n have_v no_o power_n to_o depose_v a_o prince_n etc._n etc._n and_o if_o king_n who_o be_v not_o excommunicate_v nor_o deprive_v by_o the_o pope_n may_v by_o the_o commonwealth_n be_v depose_v and_o kill_v when_o they_o be_v intolerable_a tyrant_n why_o may_v not_o the_o common_a wealth_n exercise_v the_o same_o power_n over_o tyrant_n excommunicate_v and_o deprive_v by_o the_o pope_n they_o after_o excommunication_n and_o deprivation_n be_v no_o more_o king_n but_o private_a man_n 52._o how_o then_o and_o with_o what_o conscience_n can_v any_o one_o swear_v that_o he_o hold_v it_o in_o conscience_n for_o a_o heretical_a position_n and_o doctrine_n to_o say_v that_o prince_n excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n may_v by_o he_o or_o any_o other_o authority_n be_v depose_v or_o kill_v yea_o in_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o second_o clause_n seqq_fw-la clause_n supra_fw-la nu_fw-la 14._o &_o seqq_fw-la i_o have_v allege_v title_n out_o of_o victoria_n of_o just_a war_n which_o a_o foreign_a prince_n may_v make_v against_o the_o true_a prince_n in_o favour_n of_o religion_n and_o innocence_n which_o title_n be_v at_o least_o probable_a and_o at_o least_o be_v in_o no_o part_n of_o scripture_n nor_o council_n condemn_v as_o unlawful_a and_o impious_a or_o heretical_a i_o demand_v then_o how_o widdrington_n who_o hold_v it_o probable_a that_o the_o common_a wealth_n may_v depose_v a_o tyrant_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n may_v command_v the_o common_a wealth_n so_o to_o do_v with_o a_o timorous_a conscience_n or_o with_o any_o conscience_n at_o all_o can_v swear_v that_o the_o prince_n excommunicate_v can_v in_o no_o case_n and_o by_o no_o authority_n nor_o for_o no_o tyranny_n be_v depose_v or_o kill_v yea_o that_o it_o be_v a_o heretical_a and_o damnable_a position_n to_o teach_v it_o so_o many_o teach_n it_o who_o doctrine_n be_v never_o condemn_v if_o widdringtons_n conscience_n can_v digest_v this_o what_o can_v it_o not_o digest_v but_o widdrington_n as_o he_o that_o will_v make_v good_a that_o which_o can_v hardly_o be_v aver_v must_v needs_o do_v have_v devise_v yet_o two_o answer_n 53._o 103._o pag._n 43._o 52._o 103._o the_o first_o which_o he_o give_v in_o his_o newyearesguifte_a be_v in_o effect_n this_o it_o be_v but_o a_o probable_a opinion_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n and_o so_o after_o the_o sentence_n of_o deposition_n or_o deprivation_n the_o prince_n depose_v have_v probable_a right_n and_o title_n and_o so_o be_v in_o possession_n the_o pope_n can_v justly_o depose_v he_o because_o better_a be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o possessor_n wherefore_o as_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o swear_v that_o it_o be_v heretical_a to_o say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v steal_v or_o kill_v his_o neightbour_n by_o private_a authority_n and_o not_o in_o his_o own_o defence_n or_o thrust_v he_o out_o of_o his_o own_o house_n so_o it_o be_v as_o lawful_a to_o swear_v that_o it_o be_v heresy_n to_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v depose_v a_o prince_n it_o be_v open_a injustice_n to_o dispossess_v he_o who_o have_v probable_a right_n and_o title_n and_o if_o you_o object_n that_o it_o be_v not_o against_o any_o definition_n of_o church_n or_o council_n to_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n and_o so_o can_v be_v heretical_a he_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v against_o scripture_n which_o forbid_v injustice_n and_o that_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v the_o assertion_n heresy_n which_o affirm_v it_o lawful_a but_o to_o omit_v that_o it_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o heretic_n to_o square_v all_o by_o scripture_n and_o not_o by_o the_o church_n definition_n this_o answer_n first_o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v a_o opinion_n only_o probable_a that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n and_o yet_o above_o i_o have_v prove_v it_o no_o less_o than_o certain_a by_o many_o argument_n and_o by_o this_o in_o particular_a that_o if_o it_o be_v but_o probable_a the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o laterane_n and_o the_o fact_n of_o many_o holy_a pope_n who_o have_v depose_v prince_n shall_v be_v all_o unjust_a which_o with_o what_o modesty_n widdr._n can_v grant_v i_o report_v i_o to_o all_o modest_a catholic_n and_o if_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n than_o it_o be_v not_o probable_a that_o the_o prince_n depose_v have_v probable_a right_n but_o rather_o it_o be_v certain_a he_o have_v not_o and_o so_o possession_n without_o probable_a title_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o that_o even_a thief_n have_v such_o possession_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v depose_v a_o prince_n without_o all_o injustice_n and_o so_o it_o can_v be_v a_o heresy_n to_o teach_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n and_o consequent_o that_o position_n can_v not_o be_v abjure_v as_o heresy_n secondlie_o the_o power_n to_o depose_v and_o the_o exercise_n of_o this_o power_n be_v two_o thing_n as_o above_o we_o have_v see_v in_o so_o much_o that_o one_o may_v have_v power_n and_o yet_o can_v not_o lawful_o exercise_v it_o nor_o some_o time_n validlie_o and_o this_o clause_n of_o the_o oath_n not_o command_v only_o to_o swear_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o lawful_o depose_v but_o absolutlie_o that_o he_o can_v not_o depose_v how_o can_v widdrington_n without_o remorse_n swear_v absolute_o that_o it_o be_v a_o heresy_n to_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n 54._o his_o second_o answer_n which_o he_o have_v in_o his_o theological_a disputation_n 105._o disp_n th._n c._n 5._o n._n 28_o newyearesguifte_n pag._n 105._o as_o also_o in_o his_o newyearesguifte_a be_v this_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o adverbe_n sicut_fw-la as_o may_v here_o only_o signify_v a_o similitude_n and_o not_o equallitie_n or_o identity_n and_o so_o the_o sense_n be_v i_o do_v from_o my_o heart_n abhor_v detest_v and_o abjure_v as_o impious_a and_o heretical_a that_o be_v not_o as_o a_o position_n with_o be_v heresy_n but_o which_o have_v such_o affiniitie_n or_o similitude_n with_o heresy_n and_o error_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v declare_v it_o heresy_n if_o he_o will_v as_o say_v he_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v i_o detest_v he_o as_o a_o devil_n i_o love_v he_o as_o my_o brother_n he_o do_v not_o therefore_o affirm_v he_o to_o be_v true_o a_o devil_n or_o true_o his_o brother_n and_o when_o s._n gregory_n say_v 24._o lib._n 1_o ep_v 24._o that_o he_o receive_v the_o 4._o general_n counsel_n as_o the_o 4._o gospels_n and_o when_o christ_n say_v marc._n 15._o be_v you_o perfitt_a as_o your_o heavenly_a father_n be_v perfitt_a s._n gregory_n do_v not_o receive_v those_o counsel_n as_o true_o scripture_n nor_o do_v christ_n counsel_n we_o to_o be_v true_o as_o perfitt_a as_o our_o heavenly_a father_n but_o first_o this_o silly_a answer_n show_v to_o what_o shift_n widdrington_n be_v drive_v for_o first_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n do_v hold_v it_o as_o a_o position_n true_o heretical_a that_o the_o pope_n can_v deprive_v or_o that_o the_o subject_n can_v depose_v &_o kill_v he_o who_o the_o pope_n deprive_v and_o so_o it_o be_v most_o like_a that_o in_o this_o clause_n they_o intend_v that_o the_o swearer_n shall_v abjure_v that_o position_n as_o true_o heretical_a secondlie_o those_o protest_v execrate_v and_o thunder_a word_n i_o do_v further_o swear_v that_o i_o do_v from_o my_o heart_n abhor_v detest_v and_o abjure_v as_o impious_a &_o heretical_a this_o damnable_a doctrine_n and_o position_n etc._n etc._n do_v argue_v that_o the_o swearer_n detest_v that_o position_n as_o in_o deed_n heretical_a impious_a and_o damnable_a otherwise_o if_o after_o so_o great_a word_n of_o abjuration_n he_o shall_v abjure_v it_o only_o as_o approach_v or_o something_a like_a to_o heresy_n we_o may_v say_v partur_fw-la montes_fw-la nascetur_fw-la ridiculus_fw-la mus_fw-la neither_o be_v widdringtons_n example_n to_o the_o purpose_n because_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o who_o we_o detest_v as_o a_o devil_n can_v not_o be_v true_o a_o devil_n and_o that_o he_o who_o we_o love_v as_o our_o brother_n can_v not_o be_v our_o true_a brother_n it_o must_v needs_o signify_v only_o similitude_n not_o equality_n but_o see_v that_o it_o be_v not_o evident_a in_o terminis_fw-la as_o the_o former_a position_n be_v that_o that_o position_n can_v not_o be_v heresy_n and_o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o oath_n do_v hold_v it_o for_o heresy_n it_o follow_v
that_o in_o this_o place_n as_o must_v signify_v equality_n or_o identity_n not_o similitude_n 106._o newyearesguifte_a pag._n 106._o as_o widdrington_n in_o his_o newyearesguifte_a confess_v that_o sometime_o it_o do_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o so_o by_o this_o clause_n we_o be_v to_o abjure_v that_o position_n not_o as_o like_v to_o heresy_n but_o as_o all_o one_o with_o heresy_n &_o true_o heresy_n thirdlie_o it_o be_v at_o least_o doubtful_a lest_o this_o may_v be_v the_o sense_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o position_n be_v true_o heresy_n special_o see_v that_o the_o word_n and_o manner_n of_o speech_n as_o widdrington_n confess_v be_v to_o be_v take_v in_o the_o common_a sense_n and_o according_a to_o the_o lawemakers_n intention_n ergo_fw-la this_o be_v a_o clause_n not_o to_o be_v digest_v by_o any_o timorous_a conscience_n nor_o by_o any_o other_o then_o by_o a_o all_o devour_a conscience_n the_o five_o clause_n and_o i_o do_v further_o believe_v and_o in_o conscience_n be_o resolve_v that_o neither_o the_o pope_n nor_o any_o person_n whatsoever_o have_v power_n to_o absolve_v i_o of_o this_o oath_n 75._o sayrus_n in_o clavi_fw-la regius_fw-la li._n 6._o ca._n 11._o n_o 7._o lesfius_n li_n 2._o the_o just_a et_fw-la jure_fw-la cap._n 40._o dub_v 17._o num_fw-la 114._o arragon_n 2.2_o q._n 88_o art_n 10._o in_o expl_n art_n §._o his_o constitutis_fw-la psal_n 75._o or_o any_o part_n thereof_o 55._o in_o this_o clause_n first_o be_v abjure_v all_o power_n to_o dispense_v in_o oath_n and_o vow_n which_o be_v heretical_a it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n conformable_a to_o common_a consent_n and_o to_o the_o canon_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v dispense_v in_o oath_n and_o vow_n when_o there_o be_v just_a cause_n and_o if_o in_o other_o oath_n why_o not_o in_o this_o widdrington_n perchance_o will_v answer_v that_o this_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n bind_v by_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n in_o which_o the_o pope_n can_v dispense_v but_o he_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o all_o oath_n and_o vow_n do_v bind_v by_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n according_a to_o that_o 75._o psal_n 75._o vovete_fw-la &_o reddite_fw-la vow_n and_o render_v and_o yet_o if_o he_o will_v be_v a_o catholic_a he_o must_v confess_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v and_o often_o time_n have_v and_o do_v dispense_v in_o some_o oath_n and_o vow_n as_o in_o a_o vow_n to_o make_v a_o long_a pilgrimage_n or_o to_o give_v a_o sum_n of_o money_n to_o a_o church_n or_o monastery_n which_o be_v temporal_a thing_n though_o ordain_v to_o a_o spiritual_a end_n and_o why_o then_o can_v he_o not_o dispense_v in_o this_o for_o a_o good_a end_n to_o wit_n conservation_n of_o faith_n and_o upon_o just_a cause_n as_o certes_o if_o ever_o there_o be_v just_a cause_n to_o dispense_v than_o there_o be_v when_o the_o prince_n with_o intolerable_a tyranny_n persecute_v faith_n and_o religion_n 56._o and_o therefore_o widdrington_n shall_v call_v to_o mind_v that_o distinction_n which_o divine_n use_v in_o this_o matter_n to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v duplex_fw-la ius_fw-la dininum_fw-la naturale_fw-la 1._o sanchez_n lib._n 2._o the_o matrim_n disp_n 14._o n._n 5._o ad_fw-la 4_o &_o lib._n 8._o disp_n 6._o n._n 1._o a_o two_o fold_v divine_a and_o natural_a law_n or_o right_n the_o one_o be_v absolute_a derive_v only_o from_o god_n and_o nature_n the_o other_o supponit_fw-la factum_fw-la vel_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la humanam_fw-la that_o be_v suppose_v some_o fact_n or_o will_v of_o man_n of_o this_o sort_n be_v oath_n and_o vow_n which_o bind_v not_o absolute_o but_o only_o suppose_v some_o fact_n or_o will_n of_o we_o by_o which_o we_o swear_v or_o vow_v what_o otherwise_o we_o need_v not_o and_o although_o in_o all_o such_o thing_n the_o pope_n can_v dispense_v for_o he_o can_v not_o dispense_v in_o matrimony_n consummate_v nor_o in_o matrimony_n betwixt_o brother_n and_o sister_n nor_o in_o plurality_n of_o wyve_n which_o yet_o suppose_v some_o fact_n or_o will_n of_o we_o yet_o he_o can_v dispense_v in_o vow_n especial_o simple_a yea_o and_o in_o those_o that_o be_v solemn_a also_o as_o many_o divine_n do_v probable_o hold_v he_o can_v also_o dispense_v in_o oath_n already_o make_v when_o there_o be_v just_a cause_n for_o see_v that_o these_o vow_n and_o oath_n suppose_v our_o free_a will_n and_o consent_n and_o be_v such_o also_o as_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o the_o pope_n many_o time_n shall_v dispense_v in_o they_o such_o as_o be_v not_o matrimony_n consummate_v nor_o marriage_n betwixt_o brother_n and_o sister_n nor_o plurality_n of_o wife_n because_o if_o once_o dispensation_n in_o these_o be_v grant_v it_o will_v occasion_v many_o fornication_n and_o advoutry_n 28._o sanchez_n lib._n 2._o the_o matrim_n disp_n 13._o n._n 11._o lib._n 7._o disp_n 52_o n._n 11._o &_o disp_a 82._o num_fw-la 9_o vide_fw-la etiam_fw-la bellarm_n li._n the_o matrim_n ca._n 10.16_o &_o 28._o as_o sanchez_n and_o other_o observe_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o christ_n shall_v leave_v such_o power_n to_o his_o church_n and_o especial_o to_o his_o chief_a vicaire_n the_o pope_n by_o which_o he_o may_v take_v away_o the_o obligation_n of_o these_o oath_n and_o vow_n which_o in_o some_o circumstance_n of_o time_n and_o person_n can_v not_o so_o easy_o nor_o so_o convenient_o be_v fulfil_v and_o observe_v so_o that_o to_o swear_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o dispense_v with_o a_o subject_n in_o his_o oath_n by_o which_o he_o have_v swear_v fidelity_n to_o the_o king_n where_o as_o notwithstanding_o when_o the_o king_n be_v a_o intolerable_a tyrant_n there_o be_v good_a reason_n 2._o in_o disp_n theolog._n ca_fw-mi 6_o sect_n 1._o n._n 2._o and_o just_a cause_n of_o dispensation_n be_v in_o effect_n what_o soever_o widdrington_n affirm_v to_o abjure_v all_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o dispensation_n for_o although_o it_o be_v no_o good_a argument_n to_o argue_v à_fw-la particulari_fw-la ad_fw-la universale_fw-la and_o to_o say_v the_o pope_n can_v not_o dispense_v in_o this_o oath_n ergo_fw-la in_o none_o yet_o when_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n of_o the_o particular_a which_o be_v in_o the_o universal_a then_o to_o deny_v the_o particular_a be_v to_o deny_v the_o universal_a and_o therefore_o as_o to_o say_v peter_n who_o be_v a_o man_n as_o well_o as_o other_o be_v not_o risihilis_fw-la be_v in_o effect_n to_o say_v that_o nullus_fw-la homo_fw-la est_fw-la risibili_fw-la so_o see_v there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n of_o this_o oath_n to_o ward_n the_o prince_n which_o be_v of_o other_o oath_n he_o that_o deni_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v dispense_v in_o this_o oath_n deny_v also_o in_o effect_n that_o he_o can_v dispense_v in_o any_o oath_n at_o all_o 57_o this_o power_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v in_o dispense_n in_o this_o oath_n i_o confirm_v by_o all_o that_o which_o above_o i_o have_v allege_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v prince_n and_o absolve_v subject_n from_o their_o allegiance_n and_o even_o by_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v 18_o mat._n 18_o which_o though_o ordinary_o it_o be_v understand_v of_o lose_v from_o sin_n and_o censure_n yet_o it_o be_v also_o extend_v to_o absolution_n from_o allegiance_n when_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o church_n conservation_n as_o above_o i_o have_v show_v not_o only_o by_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n who_o aythoritie_n widdrington_n shall_v rather_o reverence_v than_o contemn_v but_o also_o by_o ancient_a pope_n who_o testimony_n in_o this_o kind_a aught_o to_o counterpoise_v all_o contrary_a asseveration_n they_o be_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n undoubted_o illuminate_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o deliver_v the_o right_a sense_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o his_o chief_a and_o infallible_a interpretes_n 58._o to_o this_o widdrington_n answer_v 6._o disp_n th._n cap._n 6._o grant_v that_o although_o the_o pope_n can_v dispense_v in_o iuramento_fw-la assertorio_n of_o which_o no_o man_n doubt_v yet_o he_o may_v in_o iuramento_fw-la promissorio_n a_o promissorie_a oath_n because_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o promise_v for_o the_o future_a time_n may_v prove_v hurtful_a or_o unlawful_a and_o see_v that_o the_o thing_n promise_v for_o the_o future_a time_n in_o this_o clause_n be_v three_o 1._o that_o i_o will_v keep_v fidelity_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o king_n and_o his_o heir_n notwithstanding_o excommunication_n or_o deprivation_n 2._o that_o i_o will_v defend_v he_o and_o they_o with_o all_o my_o force_n against_o all_o conspiracy_n make_v against_o they_o and_o their_o crown_n and_o dignity_n 3._o that_o i_o will_v reveal_v all_o such_o treason_n and_o traitorous_a conspiracy_n etc._n etc._n he_o say_v i_o may_v as_o safe_o and_o secure_o swear_v without_o all_o danger_n of_o perjury_n that_o
i_o will_v do_v all_o these_o three_o thing_n as_o i_o may_v swear_v without_o danger_n of_o perjury_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o deprive_v a_o prince_n but_o out_o of_o these_o word_n of_o widdrington_n i_o will_v frame_v this_o argument_n against_o himself_o i_o can_v no_o more_o swear_v these_o three_o thing_n than_o i_o can_v swear_v without_o all_o danger_n of_o perjury_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o deprive_v a_o prince_n but_o i_o can_v not_o without_o danger_n of_o perjury_n swear_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v deprive_v a_o prince_n ergo_fw-la i_o can_v swear_v these_o three_o thing_n without_o danger_n of_o perjury_n the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v widdrington_n the_o minor_a i_o have_v often_o prove_v because_o itis_fw-la at_o least_o probable_a even_o by_o widdringtons_n confession_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v deprive_v a_o prince_n and_o if_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o he_o can_v it_o may_v be_v true_a if_o it_o may_v be_v true_a there_o be_v danger_n of_o perjury_n to_o abjure_v it_o and_o so_o the_o conclusion_n follow_v to_o wit_n that_o i_o can_v not_o swear_v these_o three_o thing_n without_o danger_n of_o perjury_n the_o sixth_o clause_n which_o oath_n i_o acknowledge_v by_o full_a and_o lawful_a authority_n to_o be_v propose_v unto_o i_o and_o do_v renounce_v all_o pardon_n and_o dispensation_n to_o the_o contrary_n 59_o in_o this_o clause_n the_o swearer_n acknowledge_v that_o this_o oath_n be_v propose_v by_o full_a and_o lawful_a authority_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v not_o at_o least_o so_o certain_a a_o thing_n as_o that_o a_o man_n may_v swear_v it_o for_o although_o the_o magistrate_n have_v authority_n to_o propose_v a_o oath_n of_o mere_a civil_a allegiance_n unto_o lay_a subject_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o authority_n to_o propose_v such_o a_o oath_n as_o this_o which_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v contain_v so_o many_o thing_n not_o to_o be_v swear_v and_o so_o much_o derogate_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n he_o have_v possess_v and_o practise_v and_o especial_o the_o magistrate_n can_v not_o pronose_a this_o oath_n to_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n see_v 〈◊〉_d can_v not_o be_v without_o moral_a danger_n of_o perjury_n much_o less_o can_v he_o propose_v it_o to_o priest_n who_o ecclesiastical_a immunity_n free_v they_o from_o magistrate_n and_o temporal_a judge_n interrogation_n and_o tribunal_n eccl._n ca._n qu●quam_fw-la de_fw-la censibus_fw-la in_o 6._o ca._n adversus_fw-la &_o cap._n non_fw-la minus_fw-la de_fw-la immunit_fw-la eccl._n and_o who_o only_o be_v to_o be_v examine_v by_o their_o bishop_n and_o ordinary_n and_o by_o they_o to_o be_v punish_v when_o they_o offend_v and_o not_o by_o any_o temporal_a judge_n unless_o the_o fault_n be_v so_o great_a that_o the_o bishop_n think_v it_o meet_v to_o degrade_v the_o delinquent_n and_o to_o deliver_v he_o to_o secular_a power_n and_o so_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n at_o least_o very_a doubtful_a whether_o the_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n have_v authority_n to_o propose_v such_o a_o oath_n yea_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o can_v because_o as_o above_o be_v prove_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o it_o contain_v many_o thing_n which_o be_v against_o faith_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o counsel_n the_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n can_v have_v no_o authority_n at_o all_o much_o less_o full_a and_o lawful_a autho_n itie_n to_o propose_v this_o oath_n and_o so_o neither_o can_v this_o clause_n be_v admit_v 60._o add_v to_o this_o that_o what_o soever_o widdrington_n say_v the_o king_n and_o parliament_n by_o this_o oath_n do_v take_v upon_o they_o to_o decide_v what_o power_n the_o pope_n have_v from_o christ_n the_o author_n and_o s._n peter_n the_o pope_n first_o predecessor_n for_o what_o be_v it_o other_o to_o determine_v and_o decide_v a_o question_n then_o to_o declare_v that_o one_o part_n of_o it_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o follow_v towitt_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v deprive_v or_o depose_v a_o prince_n and_o that_o the_o contrary_n be_v to_o be_v abjure_v as_o impious_a and_o heretical_a and_o if_o any_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v define_v this_o question_n or_o any_o other_o how_o can_v he_o determine_v more_o plain_o and_o resolutelie_o as_o for_o example_n the_o church_n define_v that_o there_o be_v 7._o sacrament_n and_o pronounce_v anathema_n against_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n which_o say_v there_o be_v but_o two_o or_o not_o 7._o do_v she_o not_o in_o this_o define_v the_o question_n even_o so_o our_o prince_n and_o parliament_n by_o this_o oath_n have_v decree_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v or_o deprive_v a_o prince_n and_o they_o oblige_v the_o subject_n to_o swear_v this_o part_n and_o to_o abjure_v the_o contrary_a as_o heresy_n be_v not_o this_o then_o to_o determine_v 61._o whereas_o widdrington_n allege_v 11_o disp_n th._n c._n 7._o n._n 11_o that_o the_o faculty_n of_o divinity_n in_o paris_n and_o mentz_n do_v oblige_v those_o that_o be_v to_o proceed_v doctor_n not_o to_o teach_v or_o preach_v public_o that_o our_o b._n lady_n be_v conceive_v in_o original_a sin_n and_o yet_o do_v not_o define_v the_o controversy_n this_o make_v rather_o against_o he_o for_o they_o also_o do_v in_o this_o define_v and_o though_o not_o absolute_o yet_o as_o much_o as_o by_o their_o authority_n they_o can_v and_o therefore_o they_o do_v not_o oblige_v their_o subject_n to_o abjure_v as_o heresy_n the_o contrary_a opinion_n of_o the_o thomist_n for_o that_o be_v absolute_o to_o determine_v and_o to_o arrogate_v the_o pope_n authority_n wherefore_o see_v that_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n do_v oblige_v catholic_n to_o abjure_v as_o heresy_n and_o under_o the_o penalty_n also_o of_o a_o praemunire_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v deprive_v or_o depose_v a_o prince_n it_o follow_v that_o they_o absolute_o determine_v of_o such_o a_o spiritual_a proposition_n and_o matter_n of_o divinity_n &_o against_o the_o practice_n of_o many_o pope_n and_o against_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o lateran_n council_n and_o so_o in_o this_o they_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o the_o pope_n or_o church_n authority_n to_o which_o it_o appertain_v to_o define_v what_o be_v heresy_n and_o consequent_o to_o swear_v that_o this_o oath_n be_v propose_v by_o lawful_a authority_n be_v to_o swear_v in_o effect_n that_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n have_v spiritual_a authority_n and_o that_o the_o king_n be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o have_v authority_n to_o define_v what_o proposition_n be_v heretical_a at_o least_o this_o argument_n make_v it_o doubtful_a lest_o this_o clause_n import_v thus_o much_o and_o so_o be_v not_o to_o be_v swear_v the_o seven_o clause_n and_o all_o these_o thing_n i_o do_v plain_o and_o sincere_o acknowledge_v and_o swear_v according_a to_o the_o express_a word_n by_o i_o speak_v &_o without_o any_o equivocation_n or_o mental_a reservation_n whatsoever_o and_o i_o do_v make_v this_o recognition_n and_o acknowledgement_n hearty_o willing_o and_o true_o upon_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o a_o christian_n so_o help_v i_o god_n 62._o divine_n affirm_v that_o the_o guilty_a restit_fw-la d._n th._n 2._o 2._o q._n 69._o a._n 1._o caiet_fw-mi ibid._n henric._n quodl_v 1._o q._n 44._o petrus_n navarre_n li._n 2._o de_fw-la restit_fw-la or_o suppose_a guilty_a be_v not_o laway_n bind_v to_o answer_v according_a to_o the_o judge_n meaning_n and_o intention_n if_o the_o judge_n do_v not_o make_v his_o interrogation_n iuridicallie_o the_o same_o divine_n affirm_v that_o a_o judge_n do_v not_o make_v his_o interrogation_n iuridicallie_o when_o he_o question_v about_o any_o secret_a thing_n of_o which_o there_o be_v not_o some_o fame_n accusationibus_fw-la cap._n 4._o n._n 136._o lessius_fw-la lib._n 2._o the_o just_a &_o jure_fw-la cap._n 31._o dub_v 3_o &_o alij_fw-la vide_fw-la cap._n qualiter_fw-la &_o quando_fw-la &_o ca._n inquisitionis_fw-la d●_n accusationibus_fw-la or_o report_v against_o the_o suppose_a guilty_a or_o when_o he_o examine_v thing_n which_o pertain_v not_o to_o his_o court_n but_o rather_o to_o the_o spiritual_a court_n or_o when_o there_o be_v not_o semiplena_fw-la probatio_fw-la or_o sufficientia_fw-la indicia_fw-la or_o when_o the_o suppose_a guilty_a know_v himself_o innocent_a for_o than_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o answer_v according_a to_o the_o judge_n intention_n but_o may_v equivocate_v likewise_o when_o he_o know_v himself_o innocent_a and_o yet_o if_o he_o confess_v the_o circumstance_n which_o be_v demand_v he_o shall_v be_v presume_v nocent_a he_o may_v deny_v it_o with_o a_o equivocation_n as_o for_o example_n if_o one_o have_v be_v present_a when_o his_o companion_n without_o his_o consent_n kill_v another_o if_o the_o judge_n ask_v whether_o he_o be_v not_o present_a he_o may_v deny_v it_o meaning_n he_o be_v not_o so_o present_a as_o to_o consent_v or_o
cooperate_v for_o if_o he_o shall_v confess_v that_o he_o have_v be_v present_a he_o will_v be_v presume_v to_o have_v consent_v or_o cooperate_v &_o so_o shall_v be_v unjust_o condemn_v add_v hereunto_o that_o the_o same_o divine_n affirm_v that_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o answer_v according_a to_o the_o judge_n meaning_n citati_fw-la caietan_n &_o alij_fw-la supra_fw-la citati_fw-la when_o the_o person_n interrogated_a doubt_v whether_o the_o judge_n have_v authority_n or_o proceed_v iuridicallie_o and_o according_a to_o form_n of_o law_n and_o equity_n 63._o all_o which_o be_v so_o this_o clause_n of_o the_o oath_n be_v very_o hard_a for_o notwithstanding_o as_o we_o have_v see_v that_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n have_v not_o authority_n to_o propose_v such_o a_o oath_n which_o contain_v so_o many_o thing_n unlawful_a to_o be_v swear_v and_o which_o so_o derogate_v from_o the_o pope_n lawful_a authority_n as_o also_o from_o counsel_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o which_o beside_o that_o pertain_v not_o to_o the_o temporal_a court_n and_o tribunal_n yet_o this_o clause_n bind_v the_o subject_n to_o answer_v and_o swear_v without_o all_o mental_a reservation_n yea_o to_o swear_v that_o hearty_o and_o willing_o they_o take_v this_o oath_n whereas_o most_o of_o mere_a fear_n and_o altogether_o against_o their_o will_n and_o conscience_n take_v it_o and_o can_v depose_v their_o conscience_n or_o think_v that_o the_o oath_n be_v lawful_a 64._o 8._o disp_n th._n ca._n 8_o and_o newyearesguifte_n cap._n 8._o widdrington_n answer_v that_o this_o clause_n depend_v of_o the_o lawfullnes_n and_o justice_n of_o the_o oath_n &_o see_v that_o the_o oath_n contain_v no_o injustice_n nor_o falsehood_n as_o he_o say_v he_o have_v prove_v it_o follow_v that_o in_o this_o clause_n there_o be_v no_o difficulty_n but_o because_o the_o word_n indeed_o do_v imply_v that_o we_o swear_v all_o that_o go_v before_o he_o use_v much_o art_n to_o make_v this_o clause_n speak_v not_o to_o the_o author_n but_o to_o his_o own_o mind_n for_o whereas_o these_o word_n and_o all_o these_o thing_n i_o do_v plain_o and_o sincere_o acknowledge_v and_o swear_v according_a to_o the_o express_a word_n by_o i_o speak_v etc._n etc._n do_v import_v according_a to_o the_o common_a manner_n of_o speak_v and_o use_v of_o word_n that_o i_o not_o only_o sincere_o acknowledge_v but_o also_o do_v swear_v the_o conjunction_n &_o and_o be_v copulative_a yet_o widdrington_n contrary_a to_o his_o rule_n take_v out_o of_o suarez_n for_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o law_n 2._o disp_n th._n c._n 1._o sec_fw-la 2._o which_o in_o this_o and_o other_o thing_n he_o leave_v at_o his_o pleasure_n say_v that_o the_o word_n swear_v be_v not_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o former_a word_n and_o all_o these_o thing_n but_o to_o the_o word_n plain_o &_o sincere_o as_o if_o the_o sense_n be_v not_o this_o i_o do_v plain_o and_o sincere_o both_o acknowledge_v and_o swear_v all_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v and_o avert_v in_o this_o oath_n but_o this_o that_o which_o i_o have_v acknowledge_v i_o do_v plain_o &_o sincere_o acknowledge_v and_o that_o which_o i_o have_v swear_v i_o do_v plain_o and_o sincere_o swear_v and_o this_o exposition_n he_o put_v because_o in_o diverse_a part_n of_o the_o oath_n as_o he_o aver_v the_o swearer_n declare_v and_o swear_v not_o the_o thing_n as_o for_o example_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v a_o prince_n but_o only_o what_o his_o opinion_n be_v and_o this_o interpretation_n he_o proove_v by_o confer_v this_o last_o clause_n which_o the_o first_o but_o first_o widdrington_n herein_o go_v from_o his_o rule_n of_o interpret_n which_o be_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n unless_o some_o other_o circumstance_n hinder_v aught_o to_o be_v take_v according_a to_o the_o common_a use_n of_o word_n for_o who_o read_v or_o hear_v these_o word_n and_o all_o these_o thing_n i_o do_v plain_o and_o sincere_o acknowledge_v and_o swear_v according_a to_o the_o express_a word_n by_o i_o speak_v will_v not_o by_o &_o by_o understand_v that_o he_o not_o only_o acknowledge_v but_o also_o swear_v all_o these_o thing_n by_o he_o speak_v and_o as_o widdrington_n proove_v his_o interpretation_n by_o confer_v this_o last_o clause_n which_o the_o first_o and_o second_o so_o will_v i_o prove_v i_o by_o the_o same_o conference_n 65._o the_o first_o and_o second_o clause_n then_o be_v these_o i._o a._n b._n do_v true_o and_o sincere_o acknowledge_v profess_v and_o testify_v in_o my_o conscience_n before_o god_n and_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n and_o what_o do_v i_o acknowledge_v profess_v and_o testify_v that_o i_o acknowledge_v and_o testify_v that_o be_v to_o confound_v &_o make_v all_o one_o the_o act_n of_o swear_v and_o the_o object_n of_o swear_v or_o the_o thing_n swear_v what_o then_o do_v i_o acknowledge_v profess_v and_o testify_v that_o which_o follow_v to_o wit_n that_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n king_n james_n be_v lawful_a and_o true_a king_n of_o this_o realm_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o which_o follow_v in_o the_o second_o clause_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o pope_n neither_o by_o himself_o nor_o by_o any_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o sea_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o other_o mean_n with_o any_o other_o have_v any_o authority_n to_o depose_v the_o king_n in_o these_o two_o clause_n as_o even_o here_o and_o above_o i_o have_v prove_v be_v not_o protest_v nor_o swear_v what_o the_o swearer_n think_v for_o that_o present_a because_o according_a to_o widdringtons_n rule_n that_o be_v not_o the_o plain_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n and_o for_o that_o as_o above_o also_o i_o have_v show_v that_o will_v little_o secure_v the_o king_n because_o he_o that_o swear_v may_v afterwards_o change_v his_o opinion_n and_o yet_o not_o contradict_v this_o his_o former_a oath_n but_o the_o swearer_n testify_v in_o his_o conscience_n before_o god_n and_o the_o world_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v the_o king_n now_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o last_o clause_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o all_o these_o thing_n i_o do_v plain_o and_o sincere_o acknowledge_v and_o swear_v according_a to_o the_o express_a word_n by_o i_o speak_v and_o according_a to_o the_o plain_a and_o common_a sense_n and_o understand_v of_o the_o same_o word_n without_o any_o equivocation_n or_o mental_a reservation_n whatsoever_o and_o see_v that_o amongst_o all_o these_o thing_n this_o be_v one_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v king_n james_n that_o also_o be_v acknowledge_v and_o swear_v and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o position_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v a_o prince_n be_v false_a as_o i_o have_v prove_v or_o at_o most_o be_v but_o probable_a and_o therefore_o in_o controversy_n as_o widdrington_n above_o confess_v he_o that_o swear_v this_o clause_n expose_v himself_o to_o perjury_n because_o if_o it_o be_v but_o probable_a that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v a_o prince_n the_o contrary_a to_o wit_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n be_v probable_a and_o if_o it_o be_v probable_a it_o may_v be_v true_a and_o so_o to_o abjure_v it_o by_o oath_n be_v to_o expose_v the_o sweater_n to_o evident_a danger_n of_o perjury_n i_o say_v evident_a danger_n for_o there_o be_v evident_a danger_n of_o perjury_n where_o there_o be_v evident_a probability_n that_o the_o thing_n swear_v may_v be_v false_a but_o so_o it_o be_v in_o our_o case_n ergo_fw-la 66._o this_o i_o think_v brief_o to_o say_v for_o examination_n of_o this_o oath_n and_o some_o instruction_n for_o the_o subject_n especial_o catholic_n to_o who_o this_o oath_n be_v propose_v and_o because_o i_o have_v at_o large_a in_o the_o former_a chapter_n prove_v the_o principal_a object_n &_o thing_n which_o this_o oath_n abiur_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v in_o some_o case_n depose_v prince_n i_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o those_o chapter_n and_o withal_o to_o the_o whole_a treatise_n for_o his_o full_a instruction_n and_o satisfaction_n in_o this_o matter_n which_o if_o he_o peruse_v i_o doubt_v not_o but_o partly_o by_o this_o examination_n part_o by_o the_o former_a chapter_n he_o shall_v see_v how_o unlawful_a this_o oath_n be_v and_o what_o just_a cause_n the_o chief_a vicaire_n of_o christ_n s._n peter_n successor_n paul_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n the_o five_o who_o now_o reign_v and_o sit_v at_o the_o stern_a of_o s._n peter_n ship_n have_v to_o forbid_v by_o his_o breve_n this_o oath_n as_o contain_v thing_n which_o can_v be_v swear_v without_o most_o evident_a and_o grievous_a wrong_v of_o god_n honour_n and_o which_o be_v flat_a contrary_n to_o faith_n and_o salvation_n 67._o king_n little_o socuritie_n give_v by_o widdr._n to_o the_o king_n
but_o now_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o observe_v what_o security_n widdr._n by_o his_o explication_n of_o the_o oath_n have_v procure_v to_o the_o king_n his_o intention_n be_v by_o this_o fovourable_a explication_n to_o make_v the_o world_n to_o see_v how_o loyal_a and_o faithful_a a_o subject_n he_o be_v who_o exempt_v his_o prince_n in_o temporality_n from_o all_o subjection_n to_o the_o chief_a pastor_n and_o what_o security_n he_o procure_v to_o his_o parson_n he_o have_v if_o his_o doctrine_n may_v go_v for_o currant_n cut_v of_o all_o occasion_n of_o conspiracy_n and_o attempt_n of_o subject_n the_o prince_n by_o widdrington_n be_v place_v so_o high_a above_o the_o reach_n so_o far_o out_o of_o the_o sphere_n of_o activity_n of_o the_o chief_a pastors_n authority_n that_o neither_o pope_n nor_o church_n can_v touch_v his_o crown_n or_o meddle_v which_o his_o regality_n by_o way_n of_o deprivation_n yet_o if_o we_o mark_v what_o have_v be_v say_v by_o widdrington_n in_o the_o delivery_n of_o his_o opinion_n and_o explication_n of_o the_o oath_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o he_o have_v much_o injure_v the_o chief_a pastor_n in_o wrest_v from_o he_o as_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v that_o authority_n which_o not_o only_o many_o his_o predecessor_n holy_a and_o learned_a but_o also_o diverse_a counsel_n even_o general_n have_v practise_v and_o which_o the_o christian_a world_n many_o hundred_o year_n have_v approve_v and_o yet_o have_v little_a or_o not_o at_o all_o secure_v the_o king_n person_n or_o assure_v unto_o he_o his_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n 68_o 3._o widdr._n in_o apol._n n._n 92._o &_o 197._o disp_n th._n ca._n 3._o sec_fw-la 4._o n._n 3._o for_o first_o he_o confess_v in_o diverse_a place_n of_o his_o book_n as_o we_o have_v see_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v command_v the_o prince_n or_o common_a wealth_n to_o use_v or_o not_o use_v the_o material_a sword_n he_o admit_v also_o as_o probable_a that_o the_o common_a wealth_n can_v depose_v the_o prince_n in_o case_n of_o intolerable_a tyranny_n and_o consequent_o when_o the_o pope_n shall_v judge_v a_o king_n worthy_a deposition_n he_o may_v according_a to_o widdrington_n command_v the_o common_a wealth_n under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n to_o depose_v the_o prince_n and_o to_o deprive_v he_o of_o regal_a authority_n wherein_o whoesoeth_o not_o that_o he_o as_o little_a secure_v the_o prince_n which_o yet_o be_v intend_v by_o this_o oath_n as_o they_o who_o hold_v that_o the_o chief_a pastor_n can_v in_o some_o case_n deprive_v a_o prince_n because_o it_o be_v in_o effect_n all_o one_o danger_n to_o the_o king_n whether_o he_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o pope_n peremptory_a commandment_n or_o by_o his_o own_o immediate_a authority_n 69._o seqq_n widdr._fw-la disp_n th._n in_o praef_n n._n 2.3_o &_o respon_n apolog._n praef_n ad_fw-la lectorem_fw-la n._n 8.9_o et_fw-fr disp_n th._n c._n 6._o n._n 15_o &_o seqq_n secondlie_o widdr_a affirm_v that_o it_o be_v but_o probable_a that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v a_o prince_n and_o consequent_o that_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o he_o can_v and_o that_o therefore_o the_o pope_n who_o have_v depose_v prince_n followed_z therein_o a_o probable_a opinion_n whereby_o he_o give_v as_o little_a security_n to_o the_o prince_n as_o by_o his_o former_a assertion_n for_o after_o that_o widdrington_n shall_v have_v persuade_v the_o king_n subject_n that_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v the_o prince_n have_v he_o assure_v the_o prince_n of_o his_o subject_n fidelity_n nothing_o less_o because_o this_o subject_n with_o his_o probable_a opinion_n have_v neither_o evidence_n nor_o certainty_n but_o only_o a_o probable_a opinion_n which_o bring_v but_o a_o show_n of_o truth_n and_o that_o join_v with_o fear_n &_o uncertainty_n may_v upon_o the_o least_o discontentment_n or_o probable_a reason_n allege_v by_o other_o of_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n alter_v his_o opinion_n it_o be_v not_o well_o ground_v and_o so_o the_o prince_n shall_v have_v no_o more_o assurance_n of_o he_o then_o have_v the_o mariner_n of_o the_o wind_n in_o march_n or_o the_o fisherman_n of_o a_o wet_a eel_n hold_v by_o the_o tail_n which_o also_o i_o confirm_v because_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o probable_a opinion_n be_v such_o that_o it_o give_v free_a liberty_n to_o follow_v it_o or_o the_o contrary_a that_o also_o be_v probable_a &_o therefore_o in_o speculation_n we_o may_v think_v in_o practice_n we_o may_v follow_v not_o only_o one_o probable_a opinion_n but_o also_o the_o contrary_a that_o also_o be_v probable_a whence_o follow_v that_o if_o the_o subject_n hear_v of_o widdrington_n that_o his_o opinion_n which_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v a_o prince_n be_v but_o probable_a he_o will_v choose_v the_o contrary_a if_o it_o be_v for_o his_o purpose_n or_o please_v more_o his_o humour_n and_o so_o will_v easy_o condescend_v to_o think_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n what_o security_n then_o give_v widdrington_n to_o the_o prince_n who_o security_n depend_v but_o on_o a_o probable_a opinion_n as_o mutable_a as_o a_o rot_a stick_n be_v brickle_z or_o a_o weather_n cock_n waver_v and_o turn_v and_o what_o security_n from_o perjury_n have_v the_o subject_n to_o swear_v absolutlie_o that_o which_o be_v only_o probable_a and_o which_o consequent_o may_v be_v false_a 70._o thirdlie_o widdr_n as_o we_o have_v also_o see_v 3._o widdr._fw-la disp_n th._n c._n 2._o sec_fw-la 2._o n._n 3._o etc._n etc._n 3._o sect_n 2._o n._n 3._o bind_v the_o subject_n to_o swear_v not_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v a_o prince_n but_o only_o that_o he_o think_v in_o his_o conscience_n that_o he_o can_v not_o and_o see_v that_o this_o think_v be_v but_o a_o probable_a conceit_n and_o opinion_n the_o subject_n after_o he_o have_v swear_v what_o he_o think_v may_v easy_o change_v his_o opinion_n and_o yet_o commit_v no_o perjury_n he_o swear_v only_o what_o then_o he_o think_v not_o what_o he_o will_v think_v hereafter_o 71._o seqq_n widdr._fw-la disp_n th._n c._n 6_o sec_fw-la 2_o nu_fw-la 8_o &_o seqq_n fourthlie_o widdrington_n explicate_v that_o four_o clause_n of_o the_o oath_n and_o i_o do_v further_o swear_v that_o i_o do_v from_o any_o heart_n abhor_v detest_v and_o abjure_v as_o impious_a and_o heretical_a this_o damnable_a doctrine_n and_o position_n that_o prince_n which_o be_v excommunicate_a or_o deprive_v by_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v depose_v or_o murder_v by_o their_o subject_n say_v that_o to_o make_v that_o position_n impious_a and_o heretical_a it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o one_o part_n of_o it_o to_o wit_n that_o prince_n deprive_v may_v be_v murder_v be_v impious_a and_o heretical_a and_o so_o by_o his_o explication_n the_o subject_n swear_v only_o in_o that_o clause_n that_o the_o prince_n excommunicate_v can_v not_o be_v murder_v and_o therefore_o he_o secure_v the_o prince_n only_o from_o kill_v not_o from_o deposition_n and_o consequent_o his_o explication_n contradict_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n which_o be_v to_o secure_v the_o prince_n not_o only_o from_o kill_v but_o also_o and_o especial_o from_o depose_v partly_o because_o a_o king_n have_v as_o leave_v be_v kill_v as_o depose_v he_o by_o deposition_n be_v make_v a_o private_a man_n and_o of_o a_o king_n no_o king_n partly_o because_o a_o king_n depose_v be_v in_o danger_n if_o he_o persist_v in_o government_n to_o be_v kill_v by_o his_o subject_n who_o if_o they_o approve_v the_o sentence_n of_o deposition_n hold_v he_o no_o more_o for_o their_o king_n and_o so_o widdrington_n make_v the_o oath_n frustrate_v and_o secure_v not_o the_o king_n either_o from_o deposition_n or_o kill_v 72._o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o widdrington_n have_v do_v ill_a office_n to_o the_o chief_a visible_a pastor_n in_o endeavour_v to_o wrest_v from_o he_o that_o authority_n which_o he_o have_v practise_v many_o hundred_o year_n &_o yet_o have_v do_v no_o good_a office_n or_o service_n to_o the_o king_n have_v not_o secure_v he_o from_o danger_n of_o deposition_n if_o there_o be_v any_o danger_n i_o say_v if_o there_o be_v any_o for_o although_o as_o some_o politian_n will_v continual_o buss_v into_o their_o prince_n ear_n conspiracy_n plot_n and_o treachery_n that_o they_o may_v be_v think_v careful_a subject_n and_o necessary_a about_o the_o king_n person_n so_o widdrington_n make_v show_v of_o many_o bugbear_n &_o scarrcrowe_n of_o danger_n hang_v over_o the_o king_n head_n by_o reason_n of_o this_o catholic_a common_a opinion_n by_o i_o and_o other_o even_o the_o most_o learned_a defend_v so_o to_o insinuate_v himself_o for_o a_o zealous_a subject_n yet_o if_o we_o look_v better_o into_o the_o matter_n we_o shall_v see_v that_o all_o this_o be_v but_o a_o needle_n fear_n &_o that_o there_o
by_o a_o invisible_a blow_n reach_v he_o from_o god_n perish_v most_o miserable_o 561._o miserable_o earon_n tom_fw-mi 7._o au_o 561._o bellisarius_fw-la justinian_o general_n over_o his_o army_n to_o who_o he_o be_v so_o dear_a that_o his_o portrait_n be_v print_v in_o the_o one_o side_n of_o justinians_n coin_n with_o this_o title_n bilisarius_n romanorum_fw-la decus_fw-la bellisarius_fw-la the_o glory_n of_o the_o roman_n for_o his_o molestation_n of_o silverius_n to_o grarifie_v thereby_o theodora_n the_o empress_n have_v for_o suspicion_n of_o conspiracy_n against_o justinian_n his_o eye_n pull_v out_o be_v despoil_v of_o all_o his_o dignity_n and_o force_v in_o fine_a to_o beg_v rom._n beg_v cedren_n in_o anna_n paul_n diac._n li._n 20._o rerum_fw-la roman_n baron_fw-fr tom_fw-mi 8._o a_o 713._o anast_n in_o vital_a baro._n a_o 668._o paul_n diac._n lib._n 19_o rerum_fw-la rom._n philippicus_n for_o his_o contempt_n of_o constantine_n pope_n and_o propagate_a of_o heresy_n be_v deprive_v of_o his_o empire_n and_o his_o eye_n also_o f_o constans_n for_o persecute_v theodorus_n pope_n and_o violent_o carry_v away_o pope_n martin_n from_o rome_n be_v slay_v in_o a_o bath_n 2._o bath_n fascie_a temp._n in_o just_o 2._o martin_n pol._n in_o just_o 2._o just●nian_n the_o second_o for_o infringe_v the_o eight_o synod_n and_o molest_v of_o sergius_n pope_n who_o refuse_v to_o consent_v to_o his_o heresy_n be_v deprive_v of_o his_o empire_n and_o beside_o that_o of_o his_o nose_n and_o tongue_n 1080._o tongue_n baron_fw-fr tom_fw-mi 11._o a_o 1080._o henry_n the_o four_o emperor_n excommunicate_v and_o depose_v by_o gregory_n the_o seven_o as_o we_o have_v see_v be_v by_o his_o own_o son_n persecute_v hold_v in_o prison_n and_o at_o length_n make_v a_o miserable_a end_n out_o of_o his_o own_o country_n 1189_o country_n neubr_n li._n 4._o c._n 13_o palmer_n 〈◊〉_d in_o chron_n a_o 1189_o frederick_z the_o first_o be_v drown_v miserable_o in_o a_o river_n of_o armenia_n for_o punishment_n of_o the_o schism_n he_o raise_v against_o alexander_n pope_n as_o our_o neubrigens●s_n record_v 1245_o record_v fascic_fw-la temp._n in_o frider._n 2_o matt_n westm_n a_o 1245_o frederick_z the_o second_o after_o he_o be_v excommunicate_v and_o depose_v by_o innocent_a the_o four_o pope_n of_o that_o name_n be_v strangle_v by_o his_o own_o son_n and_o die_v without_o sacrament_n 8._o sacrament_n geneb_n lib_n 4._o chron._n anno_fw-la 2294._o in_o bonifacio_n 8._o philip_z le_fw-fr bell_n king_n of_o france_n after_o he_o be_v excommunicate_v and_o depose_v by_o boniface_n the_o eight_o never_o prosper_v as_o genebrard_n la_fw-fr french_n man_n write_v and_o after_o that_o bonifacius_n be_v take_v unaware_o by_o the_o deceit_n which_o philip_n use_v a_o holy_a bishop_n say_v the_o king_n be_v glad_a he_o have_v boniface_n pope_n in_o hold_n but_o no_o good_a thereby_o will_v happen_v to_o he_o and_o his_o posterity_n which_o prophecy_n say_v 1315._o say_v genebr_n lib_n 4._o chron._n anno_fw-la 1315._o genebrard_n be_v short_o after_o fulfil_v for_o the_o king_n perish_v by_o reason_n of_o a_o boar_n that_o rush_v betwixt_o his_o horse_n leg_n three_o of_o his_o son_n that_o reign_v after_o he_o die_v one_o after_o another_o in_o a_o short_a space_n their_o queen_n be_v dishonour_v they_o with_o their_o infamous_a adultery_n and_o the_o issue_n of_o philip_n fail_v the_o contention_n betwixt_o our_o edward_z the_o three_o son_n of_o the_o daughter_n of_o philip_n le_fw-fr bel_n and_o philip_n de_fw-fr valois_n the_o son_n of_o charles_n de_fw-fr valois_n philip_n le_fw-fr bel_n his_o brother_n arise_v which_o contention_n cost_v france_n very_o dear_o and_o to_o spare_v our_o time_n as_o god_n threaten_v by_o his_o prophet_n 60._o isai_n 60._o that_o the_o kingdom_n that_o shall_v not_o serve_v the_o church_n shall_v perish_v as_o we_o see_v all_o greece_n be_v lose_v by_o their_o heresy_n and_o schism_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o england_n germany_n and_o holland_n and_o other_o country_n know_v not_o what_o punishment_n hang_v over_o their_o head_n so_o whosoever_o shall_v observe_v the_o course_n of_o time_n and_o history_n shall_v find_v that_o few_o prince_n have_v long_o prosper_v who_o have_v persecute_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o faith_n or_o have_v be_v by_o she_o excommunicate_v or_o depose_v 26._o wherefore_o king_n and_o prince_n that_o contemn_v and_o despise_v the_o church_n remember_v you_o be_v man_n and_o that_o your_o kingdom_n be_v subject_a to_o a_o high_a state_n of_o the_o church_n fear_v her_o glaive_n that_o strike_v even_o the_o soul_n and_o spirit_n and_o if_o you_o will_v reign_v long_o and_o prosperous_o here_o imitate_v those_o constantine_n martian_n theodosius_n pipins_n charles_n the_o great_a lewis_n and_o other_o who_o be_v more_o glorious_a for_o amplify_a the_o church_n immunity_n and_o domain_v then_o for_o extend_v their_o empire_n more_o renown_a for_o the_o church_n and_o monastery_n they_o found_v they_o for_o the_o city_n and_o castle_n they_o build_v who_o by_o obey_v honour_v and_o enrich_v the_o church_n strengtn_v and_o enrich_v their_o kingdom_n and_o have_v prosper_v in_o all_o their_o war_n and_o battle_n but_o i_o will_v end_v with_o s._n bernard_n counsel_n which_o he_o give_v to_o conradus_n king_n of_o the_o roman_n 13._o bern._n ep_v 183._o ad_fw-la conrade_n regem_fw-la romam_fw-la rom._n 13._o desire_v all_o christian_a prince_n to_o follow_v it_o legi_fw-la quip_n omnia_fw-la anima_fw-la potestatibus_fw-la sublimioribus_fw-la subdita_fw-la sit_fw-la etc._n etc._n quam_fw-la tamen_fw-la sententiam_fw-la cupio_fw-la vos_fw-la &_o omnimodis_fw-la moneo_fw-la custodire_fw-la in_o exhibenda_fw-la reverentia_fw-la summae_fw-la &_o apostolicae_fw-la sedi_fw-la i_o have_v read_v indeed_o let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o high_a power_n and_o he_o that_o resist_v the_o power_n resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n which_o sentence_v not_o withstand_v i_o desire_v and_o by_o all_o mean_n warn_v you_o o_o prince_n to_o keep_v by_o exhibit_v reverence_n to_o the_o high_a and_o apostolical_a seat_n chapter_n vii_o although_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o direct_v temporal_a lord_n and_o superior_a of_o the_o world_n nor_o of_o any_o part_n thereof_o by_o christ_n express_a gift_n and_o donation_n but_o only_o of_o the_o patrimony_n of_o saint_n peter_n give_v he_o by_o constantine_n the_o great_a and_o other_o catholic_a prince_n and_o confirm_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n yet_o by_o the_o spiritual_a power_n which_o christ_n give_v he_o in_o his_o predecessor_n s._n peter_n io_o 21._o he_o may_v dispose_v of_o temporal_a thing_n and_o even_o of_o kingdom_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n and_o conservation_n of_o she_o and_o her_o faith_n &_o right_n and_o the_o manner_n how_o and_o in_o what_o case_n he_o can_v thus_o dispose_v of_o temporality_n be_v explicate_v 1._o have_v show_v by_o many_o argument_n in_o the_o former_a chapter_n that_o the_o prince_n neither_o have_v any_o spiritual_a authority_n neither_o can_v by_o his_o temporal_a power_n intermeddle_v himself_o as_o a_o superior_a in_o matter_n spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a it_o remain_v that_o we_o discuss_v and_o examine_v whether_o contrary_a wise_a the_o pope_n have_v any_o temporal_a power_n or_o can_v by_o his_o spiritual_a power_n dispose_v of_o temporal_a thing_n a_o thing_n i_o confess_v odious_a to_o some_o prince_n who_o can_v hardly_o brook_v it_o that_o you_o shall_v meddle_v with_o their_o crown_n and_o regality_n think_v their_o crown_n so_o fast_o set_v on_o their_o head_n that_o none_o but_o god_n can_v pluck_v they_o of_o and_o imagine_v they_o hold_v their_o sceptre_n so_o fast_o that_o none_o under_o god_n can_v wrest_v they_o out_o of_o their_o hand_n but_o yet_o this_o question_n be_v odious_a only_o to_o such_o as_o set_v little_a by_o the_o church_n authority_n or_o at_o least_o prefer_v the_o state_n before_o religion_n and_o the_o temporal_a advancement_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n before_o the_o spiritual_a good_a of_o the_o church_n for_o otherwise_o as_o guilty_a malefactor_n only_o cry_v out_o of_o the_o prince_n law_n &_o tribunal_n good_a subject_n embrace_v and_o reverence_v they_o so_o those_o prince_n only_o who_o conscience_n accuse_v they_o of_o some_o disloyalty_n towards_o the_o church_n or_o who_o desire_n to_o prefer_v their_o own_o will_n before_o the_o church_n commandment_n or_o to_o extend_v their_o empire_n with_o encroach_a on_o she_o domain_v and_o to_o rule_v so_o independentlie_o as_o they_o may_v not_o be_v control_v such_o prince_n i_o say_v can_v not_o abide_v to_o hear_v of_o any_o authority_n in_o the_o pope_n or_o church_n which_o may_v restrain_v they_o other_o king_n who_o count_v it_o their_o honour_n to_o be_v obedient_a child_n of_o the_o church_n and_o who_o desire_v not_o to_o reign_v over_o their_o subject_n but_o so_o as_o god_n and_o his_o church_n